Skip to main content

Full text of "Dio's Rome : an historical narrative originally composed in Greek during the reigns of Septimus Severus, Geta and Caracalla, Macrinus, Elagabalus and Alexander Severus: and now presented in English form"

See other formats


^  V 


r,272)r 
v.!) 


Be« 


^tidreyiJame^jBell 


(D0xjontjo. 


/T\ 


AMJi^. 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 
in  2007 


http://archive.org/details/diosromehistoric05cassuoft 


Cassius  DiLo  Cocce.Lar\u5 

DIO'S    ROME 


HISTORICAL  NARRATIVE  ORIGINALLY  COMPOSED  IN  GREEK 

DURING  THE  REIGNS  OF  SEPTIMIUS  SEVERUS,  GETA 

AND    CARACALLA,     MACRINUS,    ELAGA- 

BALUS  AND  ALEXANDER  SEVERUS: 


NOW  PRESENTED  IN  ENGLISH   FORM 


HERBERT  BALDWIN  FOSTER, 

A.B.   (Harvard),   Ph.D.    (Johns  Hopkins), 

Acting  Professor  of  Greek  in  Lehigh  University 


FIFTH  VOLUME 

Extant  Books  61-76   (A.  D.  54-211). 


TROY  NEW  YORK 

PAFRAETS  BOOK  COMPANY 

1906 


\^ 


Copyright  1906 


PAFRAETS  BOOK  COMPANY 
TaoY  New  Yohk 


^      ..C 


06 


VOLUME  CONTENTS 


PAGE 

Book  Sixty-one      ----__-__  j 

Book  Sixty-two         _---____  gty 

Book  Sixty-three  -------__  57 

Book  Sixty-four         - 85 

Book  Sixty-five 99 

Book  Sixty-six           ----__._  14J 
Book  Sixty-seven           -       -       -       -       -       -       -       -151 

Book  Sixty-eight I77 

Book  Sixty-nine     -       -       -       - 211 

Book  Seventy 235 

Book  Seventy-one         -______.  243 

Book  Seventy- two 251 

Book  Seventy-three      ---_---.  277 

Book  Seventy-four    --------  305 

Book  Seventy-five         ------«_  325 

Book  Seventy-six      ------__  351 

Book  Seventy-seven      --------  359 


DIO'S 

ROMAN  HISTORY 

61 


VOL.  5—1 


Nero  seizes  the  sovereigfnty  (chapters  1,  2). 

At  the  beginning  he  is  accustomed  to  yield  to  the  influence 
of  his  mother,  whom  Seneca  and  Bumu  thrust  aside  from  con- 
trol of  affairs  (chapter  3). 

Nero's  exhibitions  of  wantonness  and  his  extravagance:  the 
death  of  Silanus  (chapters  4-6). 

Love  for  Acte:  Britannicus  slain:  discord  with  Ag^ippina 
(chapters  7,  8). 

How  Nero's  mind  began  to  gpLve  way  (chapter  9). 

About  the  faults  and  immoralities  of  the  philosopher  Seneca 
(chapter  10) . 

Sabina  an  object  of  love:  Agrippina  murdered  (chapters 
11-16). 

Domitia  put  to  death:  festivities:  Nero  sings  to  the  accom- 
paniment of  his  lyre  (chapters  17-21). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

M.  Asinius  Marcellus,  Manius  Acilius  Aviola.  (A.  D.  54  = 
a.  u.  807=;  First  of  Nero,  from  Oct.  13th.) 

Nero  Csesax  Aug.,  L.  Antistius  Vetus.  (A.  B.  65  =  a.  n. 
808  =  Second  of  Nero.) 

Q.  Volusius  Satuminus,  P.  Cornelius  Scipio.  (A.  D.  56  = 
a.  u.  809  =  Third  of  Nero.) 

Nero  Csesar  Aug.  (11),  L.  Calpumius  Piso.  (A.  D.  67  = 
a.  u.  810  =  Fourth  of  Nero.) 

Nero  Caesar  Aug.  (Ill) ,  M.  Valerius  Messala.  (A.  B.  68  = 
a.  u.  811  =  Fifth  of  Nero.) 

C.  Vipsanius  Apronianus,  L.  Fonteius  Capito.  (A.  B.  59  = 
a.  u.  812  =  Sixth  of  Nero.) 

Nero  Caesar  Aug.  (IV),  Cornelius  Lentulus  Cossus.  (A.  B. 
60  =^  a.  XL.  813  =  Seventh  of  Nero.) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

At  the  death  of  Claudms  the  leadership  on  most  just     ~"    ~ 

•'  A.  D.  54 

principles  belonged  to  Britannicus,  who  had  been  born  (a.  «.  807) 
a  legitimate  son  of  Claudius  and  in  physical  develop- 
ment was  beyond  what  would  have  been  expected  of 
his  years.  Yet  by  law  the  power  passed  to  Nero  on 
account  of  his  adoption.  No  claim,  indeed,  is  stronger 
than  that  of  arms.  Every  one  who  possesses  superior 
force  has  always  the  appearance  of  both  saying  and 
doing  what  is  more  just.  So  Nero,  having  first  dis- 
posed of  Claudius 's  will  and  having  succeeded  him  as 
master  of  the  whole  empire,  put  Britannicus  and  his 
sisters  out  of  the  way.  Why,  then,  should  one  stop  to 
lament  the  misfortunes  of  other  victims  ? 

The  following  signs  of  dominion  had  been  observed  in  —  2  — 
his  Career.  At  his  birth  just  before  dawn  rays  not 
cast  by  any  beam  of  sunlight  yet  visible  surrounded  his 
form.  And  a  certain  astrologer  from  this  and  from 
the  motion  of  the  stars  at  that  time  and  their  relation 
to  one  another  divined  two  things  in  regard  to  him, — 
that  he  would  rule  and  that  he  would  murder  his 
mother.  Agrippina  on  hearing  this  became  for  the 
moment  so  beside  herself  as  actually  to  cry  out :  *  *  Let 
him  kill  me,  if  only  he  shall  rule."  Later  she  was 
destined  to  repent  bitterly  of  her  prayer.  Some  people 
become  so  steeped  in  folly  that  if  they  expect  to  obtain 
some  blessing  mingled  with  evil,  they  at  once  through 
their  anxiety  for  the  advantage  pay  no  heed  to  the 
detriment.  When  the  time  for  the  latter  also  comes, 
they  are  cast  down  and  would  choose  not  to  have  se- 
cured even  the  greatest  good  thing.    Yet  Domitius,  the 

3 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

.^'  ^'  oLx  father  of  Nero,  had  a  sufficient  previous  intimation  of 
(a.   u,  807)      ,  '  ^  . 

his  son's  coming  baseness  and  licentiousness,  not  by 
any  oracle  but  through  the  nature  of  his  own  and 
Agrippina  's  characters.  And  he  declared :  "  It  is  im- 
possible for  any  good  man  to  be  bom  from  me  and 
from  her. ' '  As  time  went  on,  the  finding  of  a  serpent 
skin  around  Nero 's  neck  when  he  was  but  a  boy  caused 
the  seers  to  say :  *  *  He  shall  acquire  great  power 
from  the  aged  man."  Serpents  are  thought  to  slough 
off  their  old  age  with  their  old  skin,  and  so  get  power. 
—3—  Nero  was  seventeen  years  of  age  when  he  began  to 
rule.  He  first  entered  the  camp,  and,  after  reading  to 
the  soldiers  all  that  Seneca  had  written,  he  promised 
them  as  much  as  Claudius  had  been  accustomed  to 
give.  Before  the  senate  he  read  such  a  considerable 
document, —  this,  too,  written  by  Seneca, —  that  it  was 
voted  the  statements  should  be  inscribed  on  a  silver 
tablet  and  should  be  read  every  time  the  new  consuls 
took  up  the  duties  of  their  office.  Consequently  those 
who  heard  him  made  themselves  ready  to  enjoy  a  good 
reign  according  to  the  letter  of  the  compilation.  At 
first  Agrippina  [in  company  with  Pallas,  a  vulgar  and 
tiresome  man,]  managed  all  affairs  pertaining  to  the 
empire,  and  she  and  her  son  went  about  together,  often 
reclining  in  the  same  litter;  usually,  however,  she 
would  be  carried  and  he  would  follow  alongside.  It 
was  she  who  transacted  business  with  embassies  and 
sent  letters  to  peoples  and  governors  and  kings.  When 
this  had  gone  on  for  a  considerable  time,  it  aroused  the 
displeasure  of  Seneca  and  Burrus,  who  were  both  the 

4 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

most  sensible  and  the  most  influential  of  the  advisers  ,-^-  ^-  ^4 

(a.    u.    807) 

of  Nero.  The  one  was  his  teacher  and  the  other  was 
prefect  of  the  Pretorians.  They  took  the  following  oc- 
casion to  stop  this  method  of  procedure.  An  embassy 
of  Armenians  had  arrived  and  Agrippina  wished  to 
ascend  the  platform  from  which  Nero  was  talking  with 
them.  The  two  men,  seeing  her  approach,  persuaded 
the  young  man  to  go  down  before  she  could  reach  there 
and  meet  his  mother,  pretending  some  form  of  greet- 
ing. After  that  was  done  they  did  not  return  again, 
making  some  excuse  to  prevent  the  foreigners  from 
seeing  the  flaw  in  the  empire.  Subsequently  they  la- 
bored to  keep  any  public  business  from  being  again 
committed  to  her  hands. 

When  they  had  accomplished  this,  they  themselves 
took  charge  of  the  entire  empire  and  gave  it  the  very 
best  and  fairest  management  that  they  could.  Nero 
was  not  in  general  fond  of  affairs  and  was  glad  to 
live  at  leisure.  [The  reason,  indeed,  that  he  had  previ- 
ously distrusted  his  mother  and  now  was  fond  of  her 
lay  in  the  fact  that  now  he  was  free  to  enjoy  himself, 
and  the  government  was  being  carried  on  no  less  well. 
And  his  advisers  after  consultation  made  many 
changes  in  existing  customs,  abolishing  some  things 
altogether  and  passing  a  number  of  new  laws.]  They 
let  Nero  sow  his  wild  oats  with  the  intention  of  bring- 
ing about  in  him  through  the  satisfaction  of  all  his  de- 
sires a  changed  attitude  of  mind,  while  in  the  mean- 
time no  great  damage  should  be  done  to  public  inter- 
ests.   Surely  they  must  have  known  that  a  young  and 

5 


—  4-- 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

f^'  ^'  oLv  self-willed  spirit,  when  reared  in  unreproved  license 

[a.    u.   807)  .  .  . 

and  in  absolute  authority,  so  far  from  becoming  sati- 
ated by  the  indulgence  of  its  passions  is  ruined  more 
and  more  by  these  very  agencies.  Indeed,  Nero  at  first 
gave  but  simple  dinners ;  his  revels,  his  drunkenness, 
his  amours  were  moderate.  Afterward,  as  no  one  re- 
proved him  for  them  and  public  business  was  carried 
forward  none  the  worse  for  all  of  it,  he  began  to  be- 
lieve that  what  he  did  was  right  and  that  he  could  carry 
his  practices  to  even  greater  lengths.  [Consequently 
he  began  to  indulge  in  each  of  these  pursuits  in  a  more 
open  and  precipitate  fashion.  And  in  case  his  guar- 
dians gave  him  any  warning  or  his  mother  any  rebuke, 
he  would  appear  abashed  while  they  were  present  and 
promise  to  reform ;  but  as  soon  as  they  were  gone,  he 
would  again  become  the  slave  of  his  desire  and  yield 
to  those  who  were  dragging  him  ia  the  other  direction, 
—  a  straight  course  down  hill.]  Next  he  came  to  de- 
spise instruction,  inasmuch  as  he  was  always  hearing 
from  his  associates,  **  Do  you  submit  to  this? "  or  '*  Do 
you  fear  these  people?  ",  "  Don't  you  know  that  you 
are  CaBsar?  ",  '*  Have  not  you  the  authority  over  them 
rather  than  they  over  you?  "  He  was  also  animated 
by  obstinacy,  not  wishing  to  acknowledge  his  mother 
as  superior  and  himself  as  inferior,  nor  to  admit  the 
greater  good  sense  of  Seneca  and  Burrus. 
—  6—  Finally  he  passed  the  possibility  of  being  shamed, 
dashed  to  the  ground  and  trampled  under  foot  all  their 
suggestions,  and  began  to  follow  in  the  steps  of  Gains. 
[When  he  had  once  felt  a  desire  to  emulate  him,  he  quite 

6 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

outdid  him,  for  he  believed  that  the  imperial  power  ,^-  ^-  ^4 

'  ^  ^  (a.    u.    807) 

must  manifest  itself  among  other  ways  by  allowing 
no  one  to  surpass  it  even  in  the  vilest  deeds.  [As  he 
was  praised  for  this  by  the  crowds,  and  received  many 
pleasant  compliments  from  them,  he  gave  himself  no 
rest.  His  doings  were  at  first  confined  to  his  home  and 
associates,  but  were  later  on  carried  abroad.  Thus  he 
attached  a  mighty  disgrace  to  the  whole  Roman  race 
and  committed  many  outrages  upon  the  individuals 
composing  it.  Innumerable  acts  of  violence  and  insult, 
of  rape  and  murder,  were  committed  both  by  the  em- 
peror himself  and  by  those  who  at  one  time  or  another 
had  influence  with  him.  And,  as  certainly  and  inevi- 
tably follows  in  all  such  practices],  great  sums  of 
money  naturally  were  spent,  great  sums  unjustly  pro- 
cured, and  great  sums  seized  by  force.  For  under  no 
circumstances  was  Nero  niggardly.  Here  is  an  illus- 
tration. He  had  ordered  no  less  than  two  hundred  and 
fifty  myriads  at  one  time  to  be  given  to  Doryphorus, 
who  attended  to  the  state  documents  of  his  empire. 
Agrippina  had  it  all  piled  in  a  heap,  hoping  by  show- 
ing him  the  money  all  together  to  make  him  change  his 
mind.  Instead,  he  asked  how  much  the  mass  before 
him  amounted  to,  and  when  he  was  informed  he 
doubled  it,  saying:  ''  I  was  not  aware  that  I  had  al- 
lowed him  so  little."  It  can  clearly  be  seen,  then,  that 
as  a  result  of  the  magnitude  of  his  expenditures  he 
would  quickly  exhaust  the  treasures  in  the  royal  vaults 
and  quickly  need  new  revenues.  Hence  unusual  taxes 
were  imposed  and  the  property  of  the  well-to-do  was 

7 


—  6  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

(^'  ^"  807)  ^^^  ^^^^  intact.  Some  lost  their  possessions  to  spite 
him  and  others  destroyed  themselves  with  their  liveli- 
hoods. Similarly  he  hated  and  made  away  with  some 
others  who  had  no  considerable  wealth ;  for,  if  they  pos- 
sessed any  excellent  trait  or  were  of  a  good  family,  he 
became  suspicious  that  they  disliked  him. 

Such  were  the  general  characteristics  of  Nero.  I 
shall  now  proceed  to  details. 

In  the  matter  of  horse-races  Nero  grew  so  enthusi- 
astic that  he  adorned  famous  race-horses  that  had 
passed  their  prime  with  the  regular  street  costume  for 
men  and  honored  them  with  money  for  their  fodder. 
The  horsebreeders  and  charioteers,  elated  at  this  en- 
thusiasm of  his,  proceeded  to  abuse  unjustifiably  even 
the  prastors  and  consuls.  But  Aulus  Fabricius,  when 
praetor,  finding  that  they  refused  to  hold  contests  on 
fair  terms,  dispensed  with  them  entirely.  He  trained 
dogs  to  draw  chariots  and  introduced  them  in  place  of 
horses.  When  this  was  done,  the  wearers  of  the  white 
and  of  the  red  immediately  entered  their  chariots :  but, 
as  the  Greens  and  the  Blues  would  not  even  then  par- 
ticipate, Nero  at  his  own  cost  gave  the  prizes  to  the 
horses,  and  the  regular  program  of  the  circus  was 
carried  out. 

^  Agrippina  showed  readiness  to  attack  the  greatest 
undertakings,  as  is  evidenced  by  her  causing  the  death 
of  Marcus  Julius  Silanus,  to  whom  she  sent  some  of 
the  poison  with  which  she  had  treacherously  murdered 
her  husband. 

If  Silanus  was  governor  of  Asia,  and  was  in  no  respect 

8 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

inferior  to  the  general  character  of  his  family.  It  was  .^-  ^-  ^* 
for  this,  more  than  for  anything  else,  she  said,  that  she 
killed  hitn,  not  wishing  to  have  him  preferred  before 
Nero,  by  reason  of  the  latter 's  manner  of  life.  More- 
over, she  turned  everything  into  trade  and  gathered 
money  from  the  most  insignificant  and  basest  sources. 

H  Laelianus,  who  was  despatched  to  Armenia  in  place 
of  Pollio,  had  been  assigned  to  the  command  of  the 
night  watch.  And  he  was  no  better  than  Pollio,  for, 
while  surpassing  him  in  reputation,  he  was  all  the 
more  insatiable  in  respect  to  gain. 

Agrippina  found  a  grievance  in  the  fact  that  she  aT'd.Ts 
was  no  longer  supreme  in  affairs  of  the  palace.  It  was  ^°"  "*  ^^^^ 
chiefly  because  of  Acte.  Acte  had  been  brought  as  a 
slave  from  Asia.  She  caught  the  fancy  of  Nero,  was 
adopted  into  the  family  of  Attains,  and  was  cherished 
much  more  carefully  than  was  Nero's  wife  Octavia. 
Agrippina,  indignant  at  this  and  at  other  matters,  first 
attempted  to  rebuke  him,  and  set  herself  to  humiliat- 
ing his  associates,  some  by  beatings  and  by  getting  rid 
of  others.  But  when  she  accomplished  nothing,  she 
took  it  greatly  to  heart  and  remarked  to  him:  '*  It 
was  I  who  made  you  emperor, ' '  just  as  if  she  had  the 
power  to  take  away  the  authority  from  him  again.  She 
did  not  comprehend  that  every  form  of  independent 
power  given  to  any  one  by  a  private  citizen  immedi- 
ately ceases  to  be  the  property  of  the  giver  and  belongs 
to  the  one  who  receives  it  to  use  against  his  benefactor. 

Britannicus  Nero  murdered  treacherously  by  poison, 
and  then,  as  the  skin  was  turned  livid  by  the  action  of 

9 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  55    the  drug,  he  smeared  the  body  with  gypsum.    But  as  it 

(o.   u.   808) 

was  being  carried  through  the  Forum  a  heavy  rain 
falling  while  the  gypsum  was  still  damp  washed  it  all 
away,  so  that  the  horror  was  exposed  not  only  to  com- 
ment but  to  view.  [After  Britannicus  was  dead  Seneca 
and  Burrus  ceased  to  give  careful  attention  to  public 
interests  and  were  satisfied  if  they  might  manage  them 
conservatively  and  still  preserve  their  lives.  Conse- 
quently Nero  now  made  himself  conspicuous  by  giving 
free  rein  to  all  his  desires  without  fear  of  retribution. 
His  behavior  began  to  be  absolutely  insensate,  as  is 
shown,  for  instance,  by  his  punishing  a  certain  knight, 
Antonius,  as  a  seller  of  poisons  and  by  further  burn- 
ing the  poisons  publicly.  He  took  great  credit  for  this 
action  as  well  as  for  prosecuting  some  persons  who 
had  tampered  with  wills ;  but  other  people  only  laughed 
to  see  him  punishing  his  own  acts  in  the  persons  of 
others. 
«— 8—  His  secret  acts  of  licentiousness  were  many,  both  at 
home  and  throughout  the  City,  by  night  and  by  day. 
He  used  to  frequent  the  taverns  and  wandered  about 
everywhere  like  a  private  person.  Any  number  of 
beatings  and  insults  took  place  in  this  connection  and 
the  evil  spread  to  the  theatres,  so  that  those  who 
worked  as  dancers  and  who  had  charge  of  the  horses 
paid  no  attention  either  to  prsBtors  or  to  consuls. 
They  were  disorderly  themselves  and  led  others  to  be 
the  same,  while  Nero  not  only  did  not  restrain  them 
even  by  words,  but  stirred  them  up  all  the  more.  He 
delighted  in  their  actions  and  used  to  be  secretly  con- 

10 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

veyed  in  a  litter  into  the  theatres,  where  unseen  by  the  ^-  J^-  g^| 
rest  he  watched  the  proceedings.  Indeed,  he  forbade 
the  soldiers  who  had  usually  been  in  attendance  at  all 
public  gatherings  to  appear  there  any  longer.  The 
reason  he  assigned  was  that  they  ought  not  to  super- 
intend anything  but  strictly  military  affairs,  but  his 
true  purpose  was  to  afford  those  who  wished  to  raise 
a  disturbance  the  amplest  scope.  He  made  use  of  the 
same  excuse  in  reference  to  his  not  allowing  any 
soldier  to  attend  his  mother,  saying  that  no  one  except 
the  emperor  ought  to  be  guarded  by  them.  In  this 
way  he  displayed  his  enmity  toward  the  masses,]  and 
as  for  his  mother  he  was  already  openly  at  variance 
with  her.  Everything  that  they  said  to  each  other, 
or  that  the  imperial  pair  did  each  day,  was  reported 
outside  the  palace,  yet  it  did  not  all  reach  the  public 
and  hence  conjectures  were  made  to  supply  missing 
details  and  different  versions  arose.  What  was  con- 
ceivable as  happening,  in  view  of  the  baseness  and 
lewdness  of  the  pair,  was  noised  abroad  as  having 
already  taken  place,  and  reports  possessing  some  credi- 
bility were  believed  as  true.  The  populace,  seeing 
Agrippina  now  for  the  first  time  without  Pretorians, 
took  care  not  to  fall  in  with  her  even  by  accident ;  and 
if  any  one  did  chance  to  meet  her  he  would  hastily  get 
out  of  the  way  without  saying  a  word. 

At  one  spectacle  men  on  horseback  overcame  bulls     _  9  — 
while  riding  along  beside  them,  and  the  knights  who 
served  as  Nero's  personal  guard  brought  down  with 
their  javelins  four  hundred  bears  and  three  hundred 

11 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

(a^'i?*  808)  ^^o^s-  ^^  ^^^  same  occasion  thirty  knights  belonging 
to  the  military  fought  in  the  arena.  The  emperor 
sanctioned  such  proceedings  openly.  Secretly,  how- 
ever, he  carried  on  nocturnal  revels  throughout  the 
length  and  breadth  of  the  city,  insulting  the  women, 
practicing  lewdness  on  boys,  stripping  those  whom  he 
encountered,  striking,  wounding,  murdering.  He  had 
an  idea  that  his  incognito  was  impenetrable,  for  he 
used  all  sorts  of  different  costumes  and  false  hair  at 
different  times:  but  he  would  be  recognized  by  his 
retinue  and  by  his  deeds.  No  one  else  would  have 
dared  to  commit  so  many  and  such  gross  outrages  so 
recklessly.    It  was  becoming  unsafe  even  for  a  person 

A.  D.  56    to  stay  at  home,  since  he  would  break  into  shops  and 

(a.   u.   809) 

houses.  It  came  about  that  a  certain  Julius  Montanus,^ 
a  senator,  enraged  on  his  wife's  account,  fell  upon  this 
reveler  and  inflicted  many  blows  upon  him,  so  that  he 
had  to  remain  several  days  in  concealment  by  reason 
of  the  black  eyes  he  had  received.  Montanus  did  not 
suffer  for  it,  since  Nero  thought  the  violence  had  been 
all  an  accident  and  was  for  showing  no  anger  at  the 
occurrence,  had  not  the  other  sent  him  a  letter  begging 
his  pardon.  Nero  on  reading  the  epistle  remarked: 
"  So  he  knew  that  he  was  striking  Nero."  The  suicide 
of  Montanus  followed  hard  after. 
A,  D.  57  -^^  ^^®  course  of  producing  a  spectacle  at  one  of  the 
(a.  «.  810)  theatres,  he  suddenly  filled  the  place  with  sea- water  so 

1  C.  luUus  Montanus  C.  F.     ( Cp.  Suetoniiis,  Life  of  Nero,  chapter  60. ) 

12 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

that  the  fishes  and  sea-monsters^  swam  in  it,  and  had  a  Z-^-  ^-  oJ^^^ 

'  (a.   u.    810) 

naval  battle  between  "  Persians  "  and  '*  Athenians." 
At  the  close  of  it  he  suddenly  withdrew  the  water, 
dried  the  subsoil,  and  continued  land  contests,  not  only 
between  two  men  at  a  time  but  with  crowds  pitted 
against  other  crowds. 

Subsequent  to  this,  oratorical  contests  took  place,  J"})°T^ 
and  as  a  result  even  of  these  numbers  were  exiled  and  («•  «•  sii) 
put  to  death. —  Seneca  also  was  held  to  account,  one  of 
the  charges  against  him  being  that  he  was  intimate 
with  Agrippina.  [It  had  not  been  enough  for  him  to 
debauch  Julia,  nor  had  he  become  better  as  a  result 
of  exile,  but  he  went  on  to  make  advances  to  such  a 
woman  as  Agrippina,  with  such  a  son.]  Not  only  in 
this  instance  but  in  others  he  was  convicted  of  doing 
precisely  the  opposite  of  what  he  taught  in  his  philo- 
sophical doctrines.  He  brought  accusations  against 
tyranny,  yet  he  made  himself  a  teacher  of  tyrants :  he 
denounced  such  of  his  associates  as  were  powerful, 
yet  he  did  not  hold  aloof  from  the  palace  himself:  h© 
had  nothing  good  to  say  of  flatterers,  yet  he  had  so 
fawned  upon  Messalina  and  Claudius's  freedmen  [that 
he  had  sent  them  from  the  island  a  book  containing 
eulogies  upon  them ;  this  latter  caused  him  such  morti- 
fication that  he  erased  the  passage.]  While  finding 
fault  with  the  rich,  he  himself  possessed  a  property 
of  seven  thousand  five  hundred  myriads;  and  though 

1  XTTJVT}  of  the  MSS.  was  changed  to  xtjttj  on  the  conjecture  of 
Sylburgius,  who  was  followed  by  Bekker,  Dindorf,  and  Boissevain. 
(Compare  also  Suetoniiis,  Life  of  Nero,  chapter  12.) 

13 


A.  D.  58 

(o.   u.   811) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

he  censured  the  extravagances  of  others,  he  kept  five 
hundred  three-legged  tables  of  cedar  wood,  every  one 
of  them  with  identical  ivory  feet,  and  he  gave  banquets 
on  them.  In  mentioning  these  details  I  have  at  least 
given  a  hint  of  their  inevitable  adjuncts, —  the  licen- 
tiousness in  which  he  indulged  at  the  very  time  that 
he  made  a  most  brilliant  marriage,  and  the  delight 
that  he  took  in  boys  past  their  prime  (a  practice  which 
he  also  taught  Nero  to  follow).  Nevertheless,  his  aus- 
terity of  life  had  earlier  been  so  severe  that  he  had 
asked  his  pupil  neither  to  kiss  him  nor  to  eat  at  the 
same  table  with  him.  [iFor  the  latter  request  he  had  a 
good  reason,  namely,  that  Nero's  absence  would  enable 
him  to  conduct  his  philosophical  studies  at  leisure  with- 
out being  hindered  by  the  young  man 's  dinners.  But  as 
for  the  kiss,  I  can  not  conceive  how  that  tradition  came 
about.  The  only  explanation  which  one  could  imagine, 
namely,  his  unwillingness  to  kiss  that  sort  of  mouth, 
is  proved  to  be  false  by  the  facts  concerning  his  favor- 
ites. For  this  and  for  his  adultery  some  complaints 
were  lodged  against  him,  but  at  this  time  he  was  him- 
self released  without  formal  accusations  and  succeeded 
in  begging  off  Pallas  and  Burrus.  Later  on  he  did 
not  come  out  so  well.] 


\ 


14 


(BOOK  62,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

There  was   a  certain  Marcus   Salvius   Otho,  who    —  ii  — 

A    D    5S 

through  similarity  of  character  and  sharing  in  wrong-  (o.  «.  8ii) 
doing  had  become  so  intimate  with  Nero  that  he  was 
not  even  punished  for  saying  one  day  to  the  latter: 
*  *  Then  I  hope  you  may  see  me  Caesar. ' '  All  that  came 
of  it  was  the  response:  ''  I  sha'n't  see  you  even  con- 
sul." It  was  to  him  that  the  emperor  gave  Sabina,  of 
patrician  family,  after  separating  her  from  her  hus- 
band, and  they  both  enjoyed  her  together.  Agrippina, 
therefore,  fearing  that  Nero  would  marry  the  woman 
(for  he  was  now  beginning  to  entertain  a  mad  passion 
for  her),  ventured  upon  a  most  unholy  course.  As  if 
it  were  not  enough  for  her  story  that  she  had  attracted 
her  uncle  Claudius  into  love  for  her  by  her  blandish- 
ments and  uncontrolled  looks  and  kisses,  she  under- 
took to  enslave  Nero  also  in  similar  fashion.  How- 
ever, I  am  not  sure  whether  this  actually  occurred,  or 
whether  it  was  invented  to  fit  their  characters:  but  I 
state  here  what  is  admitted  by  all,  that  Nero  had  a 
mistress  resembling  Agrippina  of  whom  he  was  es- 
pecially fond  because  of  this  very  resemblance.  And 
when  he  toyed  with  the  girl  herself  or  threw  out  hints 
about  it  to  others,  he  would  say  that  he  was  having  in- 
tercourse with  his  mother. 

Sabina  on  hearing  about  this  began  to  persuade    a.  d.  59 
Nero  to  get  rid  of  his  mother  in  order  to  forestall  her 

15 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  59    alleged  plots  against  him.    He  was  likewise  incited, — 

(a.   «.   812)  o        J.  o  7 

SO  many  tnistworthy  men  have  stated, —  by  Seneca, 
whether  it  was  to  obscure  the  complaint  against  his 
own  name  that  the  latter  was  anxious  or  to  lead  Nero 
on  to  a  career  of  unholy  bloodguiltiness  that  should 
bring  about  most  speedily  his  destruction  by  gods  and 
men.  But  they  shrank  from  doing  the  deed  openly  and 
were  not  able  to  put  her  out  of  the  way  secretly  by 
means  of  poison,  for  she  took  extreme  precautions 
against  all  such  things.  One  day  they  saw  in  the 
theatre  a  ship  that  automatically  separated  in  two, 
let  out  some  beasts,  and  came  together  again  so  as  to 
be  once  more  seaworthy ;  and  they  at  once  had  another 
one  built  like  it.  By  the  time  the  ship  was  finished 
Agrippina  had  been  quite  won  over  by  Nero's  atten- 
tions, for  he  exhibited  devotion  to  her  in  every  way 
to  make  sure  that  she  should  suspect  nothing  and  be 
off  her  guard.  He  dared,  however,  do  nothing  in  Rome 
for  fear  the  crime  should  become  widely  known.  Hence 
he  went  some  distance  into  Campania  accompanied  by 
his  mother,  and  took  a  sail  on  the  fatal  ship  itself, 
which  was  adorned  in  the  most  brilliant  fashion  to  the 
end  that  she  might  feel  a  desire  to  use  the  vessel  con- 
— 13—  tinually.  When  they  reached  Bauli,  he  gave  for  several 
days  most  costly  dinners  at  which  he  showed  great 
solicitude  in  entertaining  his  mother.  If  she  were  ab- 
sent he  feigned  to  miss  her  sorely,  and  if  she  were 
present  he  was  lavish  of  caresses.  He  bade  her  ask 
whatever  she  desired  and  bestowed  many  gifts  without 
her  asking.   When  he  had  shaped  the  situation  to  this 

16 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

extent,*  then  rising  from  dinner  about  midnight  he    ^-  ^' }Z\ 

embraced  her,  and  straining  her  to  his  breast  kissed 

her  eyes  and  hands,  exclaiming:    '^  Mother,  farewell, 

and  happiness  attend  you !    For  you  I  live  and  because 

of  you  I  rule."    He  then  gave  her  in  charge  of  Ani- 

cetus,  a  freedman,  supposedly  to  convey  her  home  on 

the  ship  that  he  had  prepared. 

But  the  sea  would  not  endure  the  tragedy  about  to 
be  enacted  on  it  nor  would  it  submit  to  assume  re- 
sponsibility for  the  deception  wrought  by  the  mon- 
strous contrivance;  therefore,  though  the  ship  parted 
asunder  and  Agrippina  fell  into  the  water,  she  did  not 
perish.  In  spite  of  the  fact  that  it  was  dark  and  she 
was  full  of  strong  drink  and  that  the  sailors  used  their 
oar  blades  on  her,  so  much  so  that  they  killed  Acer- 
ronia  Polla,  her  fellow  voyager,  she  nevertheless  saved 
her  life  and  reached  home.  Thereupon  she  affected 
not  to  realize  that  it  was  a  plot  and  let  not  a  word  of 
it  be  known,  but  sent  speedily  to  her  son  an  account  of 
the  occurrence  with  the  implication  that  it  had  hap- 
pened by  accident,  and  conveyed  to  him  the  good  news 
(as  she  assumed  it  to  be)  that  she  was  safe.  Nero 
hearing  this  could  not  endure  the  unexpected  outcome 
but  punished  the  messenger  as  savagely  as  if  he  had 
come  to  assassinate  him,  and  at  once  despatched 
Anicetus  with  the  sailors  to  make  an  end  of  his  mother. 
He  would  not  entrust  the  killing  of  her  to  the  Pre- 
torians.  When  she  saw  them,  she  knew  for  what  they 
had  come,  and  leaping  from  her  bed  tore  open  her 

1  Adopting  Keiske's  conjecture,  ^v. 

VOL.  5-2  17 


—  14  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

'^  ^' ^1  clothiiig,  exposing  her  abdomen,  and  cried  out: 
"  Strike  here,  Anicetus,  strike  here,  for  this  bore 
Nero!  " 

Thus  was  Agrippina,  daughter  of  Germanicus, 
grandchild  of  Agrippa,  descendant  of  Augustus,  slain 
by  the  very  son  to  whom  she  had  given  the  sovereignty 
and  for  whose  sake  she  had  killed  her  uncle  and  others. 
Nero  when  informed  that  she  was  dead  would  not  be- 
lieve it,  for  the  monstrousness  of  his  bold  deed  plunged 
him  in  doubts ;  therefore  he  desired  to  behold  the  vic- 
tim with  his  own  eyes.  So  he  laid  bare  her  body, 
looked  her  all  over  and  inspected  her  wounds,  finally 
uttering  a  remark  far  more  abominable  even  than  the 
crime.  What  he  said  was :  '  *  I  did  not  know  I  had  so 
beautiful  a  mother." 

To  the  Pretorians  he  gave  money  evidently  to  se- 
cure their  prayers  for  many  such  occurrences,  and 
he  sent  to  the  senate  a  message  in  which  he  enumer- 
ated the  offences  of  which  he  knew  she  was  guilty, 
stating  also  that  she  had  plotted  against  him  and  on 
being  detected  had  committed  suicide.  Yet  for  all  this 
calm  explanation  to  the  governing  body  he  was  fre- 
quently subject  to  agitation  at  night,  so  that  he  would 
even  leap  suddenly  from  his  bed.  And  by  day  terror 
seized  him  at  the  sound  of  trumpets  that  seemed  to 
blare  forth  some  horrid  din  of  war  from  the  spot 
where  lay  Agrippina 's  bones.  Therefore  he  went  else- 
where. And  when  in  his  new  abode  he  had  again  the 
same  experience,  he  distractedly  transferred  his  resi- 
dence to  some  other  place. 

18 


DTO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

If  Nero,  not  having  a  word  of  truth  from  any  one  and  -7  ^^^^ 
seeing  that  all  approved  what  he  had  been  doing,  («•  «•  8 12). 
thought  that  either  his  actions  had  escaped  notice  or 
that  he  had  conducted  himself  correctly.  Hence  he  be- 
came much  worse  also  in  other  respects.  He  came  to 
think  that  all  that  it  was  in  his  power  to  do  was  right 
and  gave  heed  to  those  whose  speech  was  prompted  by 
fear  or  flattery  as  if  they  told  absolute  truth.  For  a 
time  he  was  subject  to  fears  and  questionings,  but, 
after  the  ambassadors  had  made  him  a  number  of 
pleasing  speeches,  he  regained  courage. 

The  population  of  Rome,  on  hearing  the  report,  — 15  — 
though  horrified  were  nevertheless  joyful,  because  they 
thought  that  now  he  would  surely  come  to  ruin.  Nearly 
all  of  the  senators  pretended  to  rejoice  at  what  had 
taken  place,  participated  in  Nero's  pleasure,  and  voted 
many  measures  of  which  they  thought  he  would  be 
glad.  Publius  Thrasea  Paetus  had  also  come  to  the 
senate-house  and  listened  to  the  letter.  When,  how- 
ever, the  reading  was  done,  he  at  once  rose  without 
making  any  comment  and  went  out.  Thus  what  he 
would  have  said  he  could  not,  and  what  he  could  have 
said  he  would  not.  He  behaved  in  the  same  way  under 
all  other  conditions.  For  he  used  to  say :  * '  If  it  were 
a  matter  of  Nero's  putting  only  me  to  death,  I  could 
easily  pardon  the  rest  who  load  him  with  flatteries. 
But  since  among  those  even  who  praise  him  so  exces- 
sively he  has  gotten  rid  of  some  and  will  yet  destroy 
others,  why  should  one  stoop  to  indecent  behavior  and 
perish  like  a  slave,  when  like  a  freeman  one  may  pay; 

19 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D-  59    tjie  debt  to  nature?    There  shall  be  talk  of  me  here- 

(a.  u.  812) 

'  after,  but  of  these  men  not  a  word  save  for  the  single 
fact  that  they  were  killed. ' '  Such  was  the  kind  of  man 
Thrasea  showed  himself,  and  he  would  always  en- 
courage himself  by  saying:  "  Nero  can  kill  me,  but 
he  can  not  harm  me." 
—  16—  "When  Nero  after  his  mother's  murder  reentered 
Rome,  people  paid  him  reverence  in  public,  but  in 
private  so  long  as  any  one  could  speak  frankly  with 
safety  they  tore  his  character  to  very  tatters.  And 
first  they  hung  by  night  a  piece  of  hide  on  one  of  his 
statues  to  signify  that  he  himself  ought  to  have  a  hid- 
ing. Second,  they  threw  down  in  the  Forum  a  baby 
to  which  was  fastened  a  board,  saying:  '*  I  will  not 
take  you  up  for  fear  you  may  slay  your  mother. '  * 

If  At  Nero's  entrance  into  Rome  they  took  down  the  statues  of  Agrip- 
pina.  But  there  was  one  which  they  did  not  cut  loose  soon  enough,  and 
80  they  threw  over  it  a  cloth  which  gave  it  the  appearance  of  being 
veiled.  Thereupon  somebody  at  once  aflBxed  to  the  statue  the  following 
inscription :     "  I  am  abashed  and  thou  art  unashamed." 

In  many  quarters  at  once,  also,  might  be  read  the 
inscription : 

"  Nero,  Orestes,  Alcmeon,  matricides." 

Persons  could  actually  be  heard  saying  in  so  many 
words :  *  *  Nero  put  his  mother  out  of  the  way. ' '  Not 
a  few  lodged  information  that  certain  persons  had 
spoken  in  this  way,  their  object  being  not  so  much  to 
destroy  those  whom  they  accused  as  to  bring  reproach 
on  Nero.  Hence  he  would  admit  no  suit  of  that  kind, 
either  not  wishing  that  the  rumor  should  become  more 
widespread  by  such  means,  or  out  of  utter  contempt 

20 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

for  what  was  said.    However,  in  the  midst  of  the  sacri-  ,  ^-  ^-  ^9 

'  .  (o.   u.   812) 

fices  offered  in  memory  of  Agrippina  according  to  de- 
cree, the  sun  suffered  a  total  eclipse  and  the  stars  could 
be  seen.  Also,  the  elephants  drawing  the  chariot  of 
Augustus  entered  the  hippodrome  and  went  as  far  as 
the  senators  *  seats,  but  at  that  point  they  stopped  and 
refused  to  proceed  farther.  And  the  event  which  one 
might  most  readily  conjecture  to  have  taken  place 
through  divine  means  was  that  a  thunderbolt  de- 
scended upon  his  dinner  and  consumed  it  all  as  it  was 
being  brought  to  him,  like  some  tremendous  harpy 
snatching  away  his  food. 

[In  spite  of  this  he  killed  by  poison  also  his  aunt  —17  — 
Domitia,  whom  likewise  he  used  to  say  he  revered  like 
a  mother.  He  would  not  even  wait  a  few  days  for  her 
to  die  a  natural  death  of  old  age,  but  was  eager  to  de- 
stroy her  also.  His  haste  to  do  this  was  inspired  by 
her  possessions  at  BaisB  and  Eavenna,  which  included 
magnificent  amusement  pavilions  that  she  had  erected 
and]  are  in  fine  condition  even  now.  In  honor  of  his 
mother  he  celebrated  a  very  great  and  costly  festival, 
events  taking  place  for  several  days  in  five  or  six 
theatres  at  once.  It  was  then  that  an  elephant  was  led 
to  the  very  top  of  the  vault  of  the  theatre  and  walked 
down  from  that  point  on  ropes,  carrying  a  rider. 
There  was  another  exhibition  at  once  most  disgraceful 
and  shocking.  Men  and  women  not  only  of  equestrian 
but  even  of  senatorial  rank  appeared  in  the  orchestra, 
the  hippodrome,  and  even  the  hunting-theatre,  like  the 
veriest  outcasts.    Some  of  them  played  the  flute  and 

21 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D,  59    danced  or  acted  tragedies  and  comedies  or  sang  to  the 

(a.   u.   812)  °  ° 

lyre.  They  drove  horses,  killed  beasts,  fought  as  gladi- 
ators, some  willingly,  others  with  a  very  bad  grace. 
Men  of  that  day  beheld  the  great  families, —  the  Furii, 
the  Horatii,  the  Fabii,  Porcii,  Valerii,  and  all  the  rest 
whose  trophies,  whose  temples  were  to  be  seen, — 
standing  down  below  the  level  of  the  spectators  and 
doing  some  things  to  whicE  no  common  citizen  even 
would  stoop.  So  they  would  point  them  out  to  one  an- 
other and  make  remarks,  Macedonians  saying:  *'  That 
is  the  descendant  of  Paulus  ' ' ;  Greeks,  * '  Yonder 
the  offspring  of  Mummius  ' ' ;  Sicilians,  * '  Look  at 
Claudius  ";  the  Epirots,  ' '  Look  at  Appius  '*;  Asiatics, 
**  There's  Lucius";  Iberians,  ''There's  Publius  "; 
Carthaginians,  ''  There's  Africanus  *';  Romans, 
*'  There  they  all  are  ".  Such  was  the  expiation  that 
the  emperor  chose  to  offer  for  his  own  indecency. 
— 18  —  All  who  had  sense,  likewise,  bewailed  the  multitude 
of  expenditures.  Every  costliest  viand  that  men  eat, 
everything  else,  indeed,  of  the  highest  value, —  horses, 
slaves,  teams,  gold,  silver,  raiment  of  varied  hues, — 
was  given  away  by  tickets.  Nero  would  throw  tiny 
balls,  each  one  appropriately  inscribed,  among  the 
populace  and  that  article  represented  by  the  token 
received  would  be  presented  to  the  person  who  had 
seized  it.  The  sensible,  I  say,  reflected  that,  when  he 
'spent  so  much  to  prevent  molestation  in  his  disgrace- 
ful course,  he  would  not  be  restrained  from  any  most 
outrageous  proceedings  through  mere  hope  of  profit. 
Some  portents  had  taken  place  about  this  time, 

22 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

which  the  seers  declared  imported  destruction  to  him,    ^-  ^-  ^9 

^  '   (a.   u.   812) 

and  they  advised  him  to  divert  the  danger  upon  others. 
So  he  would  have  immediately  put  numbers  ef  men 
out  of  the  way,  had  not  Seneca  said  to  him:  *'  No 
matter  how  many  you  may  slay,  you  can  not  kill  your 
successor. ' ' 

It  was  now  that  he  celebrated  a  corresponding  num- 
ber of  *'  Preservation  Sacrifices,"  as  he  called  them, 
and  dedicated  the  forum  for  the  sale  of  dainties, 
called  Macellum.  Somewhat  later  he  instituted  a  dif-  _  19  — 
ferent  kind  of  feast  (called  Juvenalia,  a  word  that 
showed  it  belonged  in  some  way  to  ''  youth  ").  The 
occasion  was  the  shaving  of  his  beard  for  the  first 
time.  The  hairs  he  cast  into  a  small  golden  globe  and 
offered  to  Jupiter  Capitolinus.  To  furnish  amuse- 
ment members  of  the  noblest  families  as  well  as  others 
did  not  fail  to  give  exhibitions.  For  instance,  ^lia 
Catella  danced:  he  was  first  of  all  a  man  prominent 
for  family  and  wealth  and  also  advanced  in  years, — 
he  was  eighty  years  of  age.  Others  who  on  account  of 
old  age  or  disease  could  not  do  anything  on  their  own 
account  sang  as  chorus.  All  devoted  themselves  to 
practicing  as  much  as  and  by  whatever  way  they  were 
able.  Eegularly  appointed  *'  schools  "  were  fre- 
quented by  the  most  distinguished  men,  women,  girls, 
lads,  old  women,  old  men.  In  case  any  one  was  unable 
to  appear  in  any  other  fashion,  he  would  enter  the 
choruses.  And  whereas  some  of  them  out  of  shame 
had  put  on  masks  to  avoid  being  recognized,  Nero  at 
the  request  of  the  populace  had  them  taken  off  and 

23 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  59    showed  these  people  to  those  by  whom  they  had  once 
(o.  u.  812)  ^     ^  ''  -^ 

been  ruled.    Now  most  of  all  it  was  that  these  amateur 

performers  and  others  deemed  the  dead  happy;  for 
many  of  the  foremost  men  this  year  had  been  slain. 
Some  of  them,  charged  with  conspiracy  against  Nero, 
were  surrounded  by  the  soldiers  and  stoned  to  death. 
—  20—  And,  as  there  needed  to  be  a  fitting  climax  to  these 
deeds,  Nero  himself  appeared  as  an  actor  and  Gal- 
lio^  proclaimed  him  by  name.  There  stood  Caesar  on 
the  stage  wearing  the  garb  of  a  singing  zither-player. 
Spoke  the  emperor:  *'  My  lords,  of  your  kindness 
give  me  ear."  Then  did  the  Augustus  sing  to  the 
zither  a  thing  called  *'Attis  or  the  Bacchantes,"^ 
whilst  many  soldiers  stood  by  and  all  the  people  that 
the  seats  would  hold  sat  watching.  Yet  had  he  (ac- 
cording to  the  tradition)  but  a  slight  voice  and  an  in- 
distinct, so  that  he  moved  all  present  to  laughter  and 
tears  at  once.  Beside  him  stood  Burrus  and  Seneca 
like  teachers  prompting  a  pupil :  they  would  wave  their 
hands  and  togas  at  every  utterance  and  draw  others 
on  to  do  the  same.  Indeed,  Nero  had  ready  a  peculiar 
corps  of  about  five  thousand  soldiers,  called  Augus- 
tans ;  these  would  begin  the  applause,  and  all  the  rest, 
however  loath,  were  obliged  to  shout  aloud  with  them, 
—  except  Thrasea.  He  would  never  stoop  to  such  con- 
duct. But  the  rest,  and  especially  the  prominent  men, 
gathered  with  alacrity  even  when  in  grief  and  joined 
as  if  glad  in  all  the  shouts  of  the  Augustans.    One 

1 L.  Junius  Gallio. 

2  The  title  of  one  of  Nero's  poems. 

24 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

could  hear  them  saying:  **  Excellent  Caesar!  Apollo!  .^'  ^-  f^ 
Augustus !  One  like  unto  the  Pythian !  By  thine  own 
self,  0  Caesar,  no  one  can  surpass  thee !  ' '  After  this 
performance  he  entertained  the  people  at  a  feast  on 
boats  on  the  site  of  the  naval  battle  given  by  Augus- 
tus ;  thence  at  midnight  he  sailed  through  a  canal  into 
the  Tiber. 

This,  then,  he  did  to  celebrate  the  shaving  of  his  7~^~Z 
chin.  In  behalf  of  his  preservation  and  the  continu-  (a.  u.  8i3) 
ance  of  his  authority, —  thus  he  gave  notice, —  he  in- 
stituted quinquennial  games,  naming  them  Neronia. 
In  honor  of  the  event  he  also  constructed  the  gymna- 
sium at  the  dedication  of  which  he  made  a  free  dis- 
tribution of  olive  oil  to  the  senators  and  knights.  The 
crown  for  singing  to  the  zither,  moreover,  he  took 
without  a  contest,  for  all  others  were  debarred  on  the 
assumption  that  they  were  unworthy  of  victory.  [And 
immediately  in  their  garb  he  was  enrolled  on  the  very 
lists  of  the  gymnasium.]  Thenceforward  all  other 
crowns  for  zither  playing  at  all  the  contests  were  sent 
to  him  as  the  only  person  competent  to  win  victories 
of  that  sort. 


25 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

62 


27 


About  the  disaster  to  the  Romans  in  Britain,  brought  upon 
them  by  Buduica  (chapters  1-7). 

Paulinus,  returning  from  subduing  the  island  of  Mona,  con- 
quers in  battle  (chapters  8-12). 

Octavia  Aug^usta  and  Burrus,  likewise  Plaulus  and  Pallas,  are 
put  to  death  by  Nero  (chapters  13,  14). 

Most  swinish  reveling  at  the  games  of  Tigillinus  (chapter 
15). 

How  Nero  set  the  city  on  fire  (chapters  16-18). 

The  uprightness  of  Corbulo:  proceedings  against  Vologaesus 
and  Tiridates  (chapters  19,  20). 

Misfortune  attends  the  endeavors  of  Psetus :  Vologaesus  forms 
a  compact  with  Corbulo  (chapters  21-23). 

Seneca,  Soranus,  Thrasea,  Sabina  are  put  to  death:  Musonius 
and  Gomutus  are  banished  (chapters  24-29) . 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

Nero  Aug.  (IV),  Cornelius  Cossus  Cossi  F.  Lentulus.  (A.  D. 
60  =  a.  u.  813  =^  Seventh  of  Nero,  from  Oct.  13th.) 

Caesonius  Psetus,  P.  Petronius  Turpilianus.  (A.  D.  61  =  a.  u. 
814  =  Eighth  of  Nero.) 

P.  Marius  Celsus,  L.  Asinius  Gallus.  (A.  D.  62=;  a.  u.  81& 
=  Ninth  of  Nero.) 

C.  Memmlus  Regfulus,  L.  Vcrginius  Rufus.  (A.  D.  63  =  a.  n. 
816  =  Tenth  of  Nero.) 

C.  Lecanius  Bassus,  M.  Licinius  Crassus  Frugi.  (A.  D.  64  = 
a.  XL.  817  =  Eleventh  of  Nero.) 

A.  Licinius  Nerva  Silanus,  M.  Vestinus  Atticus.  (A.  D.  65  = 
a.  n.  818  =  Twelfth  of  Nero.) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

While  this  sport  was  going  on  at  Rome,  a  terrible  r"^"!, 
disaster  had  taken  place  in  Britain.  Two  cities  had  («•  w.  8i4) 
been  sacked,  eight  myriads  of  Romans  and  of  their 
allies  had  perished,  and  the  island  had  been  lost. 
Moreover,  all  this  ruin  was  brought  upon  them  by  a 
woman,  a  fact  which  in  itself  caused  them  the  greatest 
shame.  Heaven  evidently  gave  them  in  advance  an 
indication  of  the  catastrophe.  At  night  there  was 
heard  to  issue  from  the  senate-house  foreign  jargon 
mingled  with  laughter  and  from  the  theatre  outcries 
with  wailing:  yet  no  mortal  man  had  uttered  the 
speeches  or  the  groans.  Houses  under  water  came  to 
view  in  the  river  Thames,*  and  the  ocean  between  the 
island  and  Gaul  sometimes  grew  bloody  at  flood-tide. 

The  casus  belli  lay  in  the  confiscation  of  the  money     —  a  — 
which  Claudius  had  given  to  the  foremost  Britons, — 
Decianus  Catus,  governor  of  the  island,  announcing 
that  this  must  now  be  sent  back.    This  was  one  reason 

^    and  another  was  that  Seneca  had  lent 

them  on  excellent  terms  as  regards  interest  a  thousand 
myriads  that  they  did  not  want,^  and  had  afterward 
called  in  this  loan  all  at  once  and  levied  on  them  for 
it  with  severity.  But  the  person  who  most  stirred  their 
spirits  and  persuaded  them  to  fight  the  Romans,  who 
was  deemed  worthy  to  stand  at  their  head  and  to  have 
the  conduct  of  the  entire  war,  was  a  British  woman, 

1  Compare  Tacitus,  Annals,  XIV,  32  ("visamque  speciem   in    aestuario 
Tamesse  subversae  Colonise"). 

2  It  would  seem  natural  to  supply  "  for  the  uprising,"  as  does  Reiske. 

3  The   meaning   of    this    phrase    (     axouaiv    )    is   not   wholly   clear. 
Naber  purposes  to  substitute  alrouacv  ("that  they  were  asking  for"). 

29 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  61    Buduica/  of  the  royal  family  and  possessed  of  greater 

(a.  tt.   814)    ^ 

judgment  than  often  belongs  to  women.  It  was  she 
who  gathered  the  army  to  the  number  of  nearly  twelve 
myriads  and  ascended  a  tribunal  of  marshy  soil  made 
after  the  Eoman  fashion.  In  person  she  was  very 
tall,  with  a  most  sturdy  figure  and  a  piercing  glance ; 
her  voice  was  harsh ;  a  great  mass  of  yellow  hair  fell 
below  her  waist  and  a  large  golden  necklace  clasped 
her  throat ;  wound  about  her  was  a  tunic  of  every  con- 
ceivable color  and  over  it  a  thick  chlamys  had  been 
fastened  with  a  brooch.  This  was  her  constant  attire. 
She  now  grasped  a  spear  to  aid  her  in  terrifying  all 
beholders  and  spoke  as  follows :  — 
^8_  ''  You  have  had  actual  experience  of  the  difference 
between  freedom  and  slavery.  Hence,  though  some  of 
you  previously  through  ignorance  of  which  was  better 
may  have  been  deceived  by  the  alluring  announce- 
ments of  the  Romans,  yet  now  that  you  have  tried  both 
you  have  learned  how  great  a  mistake  you  made  by 
preferring  a  self-imposed  despotism  to  your  ances- 
tral mode  of  life.  You  have  come  to  recognize  how  far 
superior  is  the  poverty  of  independence  to  wealth  in. 
servitude.  What  treatment  have  we  met  with  that  is 
not  most  outrageous,  that  is  not  most  grievous,  ever 
since  these  men  insinuated  themselves  into  Britain? 
Have  we  not  been  deprived  of  our  most  numerous  and 
our  greatest  possessions  entire,  while  for  what  re- 
mains we  must  pay  taxes?  Besides  pasturing  and 
tilling  all  the  various  regions  for  them  do  we  not  con- 

1  Known  commonly  as  Boadicea. 

30 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

tribute  a  yearly  suin  for  our  very  bodies  ?    How  mucb  ,  ■^*  ^-  ^}^ , 

''  •'  •'  {a.  u.  814) 

better  it  would  have  been  to  be  sold  to  masters  once 
and  for  all  than  to  ransom  ourselves  annually  and  pos- 
sess empty  names  of  freedom!  How  much  better  to 
have  been  slain  and  perish  rather  than  go  about  with 
subservient  heads!  Yet  what  have  I  said?  Even 
dying  is  not  free  from  expense  among  them,  and  you 
know  what  fees  we  deposit  on  behalf  of  the  dead. 
Throughout  the  rest  of  mankind  death  frees  even  those 
who  are  in  slavery ;  only  in  the  case  of  the  Romans  do 
the  very  dead  live  for  their  profit.  Why  is  it  that 
though  none  of  us  has  any  money, — and  how  or  whence 
should  we  get  it?, —  we  are  stripped  and  despoiled  like 
a  murderer's  victims?  How  should  the  Romans  grow 
milder  in  process  of  time,  when  they  have  conducted 
themselves  so  toward  us  at  the  very  start, —  a  period 
when  all  men  show  consideration  for  even  newly  cap- 
tured beasts  ? 

''  But,  to  tell  the  truth,  it  is  we  who  have  made  our-  —4— 
selves  responsible  for  all  these  evils  in  allowing  them 
so  much  as  to  set  foot  on  the  island  in  the  first  place 
instead  of  expelling  them  at  once  as  we  did  their  fam- 
ous Julius  Caesar, —  yes,  in  not  making  the  idea  of  at- 
tempting the  voyage  formidable  to  them,  while  they 
were  as  yet  far  off,  as  it  was  to  Augustus  and  to  Gains 
Caligula.  So  great  an  island,  or  rather  in  one  sense 
a  continent  encircled  by  water,  do  we  inhabit,  a  verita- 
ble world  of  our  own,  and  so  far  are  we  separated  by 
the  ocean  from  all  the  rest  of  mankind  that  we  have 
been  believed  to  dwell  on  a  different  earth  and  under 

31 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  61     a  different  sky  and  some  of  their  wisest  men  were  not 

(a.  u.  814) 

previously  sure  of  even  our  exact  name.  Yet  for  all 
this  we  have  been  scorned  and  trampled  under  foot  hy- 
men who  know  naught  else  than  how  to  secure  gain. 
Still,  let  us  even  at  this  late  day,  if  not  before,  fellow- 
citizens,  friends  and  relatives, —  for  I  deem  you  all 
relatives,  in  that  you  inhabit  a  single  island  and  are 
called  by^  one  common  name, —  let  us  do  our  duty  while 
the  memory  of  freedom  still  abides  within  us,  that  we 
may  leave  both  the  name  and  the  fact  of  it  to  our  chil- 
dren. For  if  we  utterly  lose  sight  of  the  happy  con- 
ditions amid  which  we  were  bom  and  bred,  what  pray 
will  they  do,  reared  in  bondage  ? 
—  5—  '*  This  I  say  not  to  inspire  you  with  a  hatred  of 
present  circumstances, —  that  hatred  is  already  ap- 
parent,—  nor  with  a  fear  of  the  future, —  that  fear 
you  already  have, —  but  to  commend  you  because  of 
your  own  accord  you  choose  to  do  just  what  you  ought, 
and  to  thank  you  for  cooperating  so  readily  with  me 
and  your  own  selves  at  once.  Be  nowise  afraid  of  the 
Romans.  They  are  not  more  numerous  than  are  we 
nor  yet  braver.  And  the  proof  is  that  they  have  pro- 
tected themselves  with  helmets  and  breastplates  and 
greaves  and  furthermore  have  equipped  their  camps 
with  palisades  and  walls  and  ditches  to  make  sure  that 
they  shall  suffer  no  harm  by  any  hostile  assault.^ 
Their  fears  impel  them  to  choose  this  method  rather 
than  engage  in  any  active  work  like  us.   We  enjoy  such 

1  Reading  xsxXrjfiivows   (van  Henverden). 
a  Corruptions  in  the  text  emended  by  Reiske. 

32 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

a  superabundance  of  bravery  that  we  regard  tents  as  a.  d.  61 
safer  than  walls  and  our  shields  as  affording  greater 
protection  than  their  whole  suits  of  mail.  As  a  con- 
sequence, we  when  victorious  can  capture  them,  and 
when  overcome  by  force  can  elude  them.  And  should 
we  ever  choose  to  retreat,  we  can  conceal  ourselves  in 
swamps  and  mountains  so  inaccessible  that  we  can  be 
neither  found  nor  taken.  The  enemy,  however,  can 
neither  pursue  any  one  by  reason  of  their  heavy  armor 
nor  yet  flee.  And  if  they  ever  should  slip  away  from 
us,  taking  refuge  in  certain  designated  spots,  there,  too, 
they  are  sure  to  be  enclosed  as  in  a  trap.  These  are 
some  of  the  respects  in  which  they  are  vastly  inferior  to 
us,  and  others  are  their  inability  to  bear  up  under 
hunger,  thirst,  cold,  or  heat,  as  we  can;  for  they  re- 
quire shade  and  protection,  they  require  kneaded  bread 
and  wine  and  oil,  and  if  the  supply  of  any  of  these 
things  fails  them  they  simply  perish.  For  us,  on  the 
other  hand,  any  root  or  grass  serves  as  bread,  any 
plant  juice  as  olive  oil,  any  water  as  wine,  any  tree 
as  a  house.  Indeed,  this  very  region  is  to  us  an  ac- 
quaintance and  ally,  but  to  them  unknown  and  hostile. 
As  for  the  rivers,  we  swim  them  naked,  but  they  even 
with  boats  can  not  cross  easily.  Let  us  therefore  go 
against  them  trusting  boldly  to  good  fortune.  Let  us 
show  them  that  they  are  hares  and  foxes  trying  to  rule 
dogs  and  wolves." 

At  these  words,  employing  a  species  of  divination,     —e— 
she  let  a  hare  escape  from  her  bosom,  and  as  it  ran  in 
what  they  considered  a  lucky  direction,  the  whole  multi- 
voL.  5—8  33 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

(a' u  8U)  *^^®  shouted  with  pleasure,  and  Buduica  raising  her 
hand  to  heaven,  spoke:  "  I  thank  thee,  Andraste,^ 
and  call  upon  thee,  who  are  a  woman,  being  myself  also 
a  woman  that  rules  not  burden-bearing  Egyptians  like 
Mtocris,  nor  merchant  Assyrians  like  Semiramis  (of 
these  things  we  have  heard  from  the  Eomans),  nor 
even  the  Eomans  themselves,  as  did  Messalina  first 
and  later  Agrippina ;  —  at  present  their  chief  is  Nero, 
in  name  a  man,  in  fact  a  woman,  as  is  shown  by  his 
singing,  his  playing  the  cithara,  his  adorning  himself : 
—  but  ruling  as  I  do  men  of  Britain  that  know  not  how 
to  till  the  soil  or  ply  a  trade  yet  are  thoroughly  versed 
in  the  arts  of  war  and  hold  all  things  common,  even 
children  and  wives;  wherefore  the  latter  possess  the 
same  valor  as  the  males :  being  therefore  queen  of  such 
men  and  such  women  I  supplicate  and  pray  thee  for 
victory  and  salvation  and  liberty  against  men  insolent, 
unjust,  insatiable,  impious, —  if,  indeed  we  ought  to 
term  those  creatures  men  who  wash  in  warm  water,  eat 
artificial  dainties,  drink  unmixed  wine,  anoint  them- 
selves with  myrrh,  sleep  on  soft  couches  with  boys  for 
bedfellows  (and  past  their  prime  at  that),  are  slaves 
to  a  zither-player,  yes,  an  inferior  zither-player. 
Wherefore  may  this  Domitia-Nero  woman  reign  no 
more  over  you  or  over  me :  let  the  wench  sing  and  play 
the  despot  over  the  Eomans.  They  surely  deserve  to 
be  in  slavery  to  such  a  being  whose  tyranny  they  have 

1  Not  much  information  is  preserved  regarding  this  indigenous  god- 
dess of  Britain.  Reimar  asserts  that  she  is  practically  identical  with 
Boccharte,  Astarte,  or  Venus. 

34 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

patiently  borne  already  this  long  time.    But  may  we,  ^-  ^-  ^}.. 
mistress,  ever  look  to  thee  alone  as  our  head." 

After  an  harangue  of  this  general  nature  Buduica  _  7  — 
led  her  army  against  the  Romans.  The  latter  chanced 
to  be  without  a  leader  for  the  reason  that  Paulinus 
their  commander  had  gone  on  an  expedition  to  Mona, 
an  island  near  Britain.  This  enabled  her  to  sack  and 
plunder  two  Roman  cities,  and,  as  I  said,  she  wrought 
indescribable  slaughter.  Persons  captured  by  the  Bri- 
tons underwent  every  form  of  most  frightful  treat- 
ment. The  conquerors  committed  the  most  atrocious 
and  bestial  outrages.  For  instance,  they  hung  up 
naked  the  noblest  and  most  distinguished  women,  cut 
off  their  breasts  and  sewed  them  to  their  mouths,  to 
make  the  victims  appear  to  be  eating  them.  After 
that  they  impaled  them  on  sharp  skewers  run  perpen- 
dicularly the  whole  length  of  the  body.  All  this  they 
did  to  the  accompaniment  of  sacrifices,  banquets,  and 
exhibitions  of  insolence  in  all  of  their  sacred  places, 
but  chiefly  in  the  grove  of  Andate, —  that  being  the 
name  of  their  personification  of  Victory,  to  whom  they 
paid  the  most  excessive  reverence. 

It  happened  that  Paulinus  had  already  brought  —  8— 
Mona  to  terms;  hence  on  learning  of  the  disaster  in 
Britain  he  at  once  set  sail  thither  from  Mona.  He  was 
unwilling  to  risk  a  conflict  with  the  barbarians  immedi- 
ately, for  he  feared  their  numbers  and  their  frenzy; 
therefore  he  was  for  postponing  the  battle  to  a  more 
convenient  season.  But  as  he  grew  short  of  food  and 
the  barbarians  did  not  desist  from  pressing  him  hard, 

35 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

i^'  ^'fiu^  ^®  ^^^  compelled,  though  contrary  to  his  plan,  to  en- 
ter into  an  engagement  with  them.  Buduica  herself, 
heading  an  army  of  about  twenty-three  myriads  of 
men,  rode  on  a  chariot  and  assigned  the  rest  to  their 
several  stations.  Now  Paulinus  could  not  extend  his 
phalanx  the  width  of  her  whole  line,  for,  even  if  the 
men  had  been  drawn  up  only  one  deep,  they  would  not 
have  stretched  far  enough,  so  inferior  were  they  in 
numbers :  nor  did  he  dare  to  join  battle  with  one  com- 
pact force,  for  fear  he  should  be  surrounded  and  cut 
down.  Accordingly,  he  separated  his  army  into  three 
divisions  in  order  to  fight  at  several  points  at  once, 
and  he  made  each  of  the  divisions  so  strong  that  it 
could  not  easily  be  broken  through.  While  ordering 
and  arranging  his  men  he  likewise  exhorted  them,  say- 
ing: 
^9—  ''Up,  fellow-soldiers  I  Up,  men  of  Rome!  Show 
these  pests  how  much  even  in  misfortune  we  surpass 
them.  It  is  a  shame  for  you  now  to  lose  ingloriously 
what  but  a  short  while  ago  you  gained  by  your  valor. 
Often  have  we  ourselves  and  also  our  fathers  with  far 
fewer  numbers  than  we  have  at  the  present  conquered 
far  more  numerous  antagonists.  Fear  not  the  host  of 
them  or  their  rebellion:  their  boldness  rests  on  noth- 
ing better  than  headlong  rashness  unaided  by  arms 
and  exercise.  Fear  not  because  they  have  set  on  fire  a 
few  cities :  they  took  these  not  by  force  nor  after  a  bat- 
tle, but  one  was  betrayed  and  the  other  abandoned. 
Do  you  now  exact  from  them  the  proper  penalty  for 
these  deeds,  that  so  they  may  learn  by  actual  experi- 

36 


—  10  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

ence  what  they  undertook  when  they  wronged  such  ,^-  ^-  ^i 

•^  -^  °  (o.    u.    814) 

men  as  us. ' ' 

After  speaking  these  words  to  some  he  came  to  a 
second  group  and  said:  '^  Now  is  the  occasion,  now, 
fellow-soldiers,  for  zeal,  for  daring.  If  to-day  you 
prove  yourselves  brave  men,  you  will  recover  what 
has  slipped  from  your  grasp.  If  you  overcome  this 
enemy,  no  one  else  will  any  longer  withstand  us.  By 
one  such  battle  you  will  both  make  sure  of  your  pres- 
ent possessions  and  subdue  whatever  is  left.  All 
soldiers  stationed  anywhere  else  will  emulate  you  and 
foes  will  be  terror-stricken.  Therefore,  since  it  is  in 
your  own  hands  either  to  rule  fearlessly  all  mankind, 
both  the  nations  that  your  fathers  left  under  your  con- 
trol and  those  which  you  yourselves  have  gained  in  ad- 
dition, or  else  to  be  bereft  of  them  utterly,  choose  rather 
to  be  free,  to  rule,  to  live  in  wealth,  to  enjoy  pros- 
perity, than  through  indolence  to  suffer  the  reverse 
of  these  conditions. " 

After  making  an  address  of  this  sort  to  the  group 
in  question,  he  came  up  to  the  third  division  and  said 
also  to  them :  ' '  You  have  heard  what  sort  of  acts 
these  wretches  have  committed  against  us,  nay  more, 
you  have  even  seen  some  of  them.  Therefore  choose 
either  yourselves  to  suffer  the  same  treatment  as  pre- 
vious victims  and  furthermore  to  be  driven  entirely 
out  of  Britain,  or  else  through  victory  to  avenge  those 
that  perished  and  also  to  give  to  the  rest  of  mankind 
an  example  of  mild  clemency  toward  the  obedient,  of 
necessary  severity  toward  the  rebellious.    I  entertain 

37 


—  11 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  61  the  higliest  hopes  of  victory  for  our  side,  counting  on 
the  following  factors :  first,  the  assistance  of  the  gods ; 
they  usually  cooperate  with  the  party  that  has  been 
wronged:  second,  our  inherited  bravery;  we  are  Ro- 
mans and  have  shown  ourselves  superior  to  all  man- 
kind in  various  instances  of  valor:  next,  our  experi- 
ence; we  have  defeated  and  subdued  these  very  men 
that  are  now  arrayed  against  us :  last,  our  good  name ; 
it  is  not  worthy  opponents  but  our  slaves  with  whom 
we  are  coming  in  conflict,  persons  who  enjoyed  free- 
dom and  self-government  only  so  far  as  we  allowed  it. 
Yet  even  should  the  outcome  prove  contrary  to  our 
hope, —  and  I  will  not  shrink  from  mentioning  even 
this  contingency, —  it  is  better  for  us  to  fall  fighting 
bravely  than  to  be  captured  and  impaled,  to  see  our 
own  entrails  cut  out,  to  be  spitted  on  red  hot  skewers, 
to  perish  dissolved  in  boiling  water,  when  we  have  fal- 
len into  the  power  of  creatures  that  are  very  beasts, 
savage,  lawless,  godless.  Let  us  therefore  either  beat 
them  or  die  on  the  spot.  Britain  shall  be  a  noble  me- 
morial to  us,  even  though  all  subsequent  Romans 
should  be  driven  from  it;  for  in  any  case  our  bodies 
shall  forever  possess  the  land." 

—  12—  At  the  conclusion  of  exhortations  of  this  sort  and 
others  like  them  he  raised  the  signal  for  battle.  There- 
upon they  approached  each  other,  the  barbarians  mak- 
ing a  great  outcry  intermingled  with  menacing  incan- 
tations, but  the  Romans  silently  and  in  order  until 
they  came  within  a  javelin's  throw  of  the  enemy. 
Then,  while  the  foe  were  advancing  against  them  at 

38 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

a  walk,   the  Eomans  started  at  a  given  word  and  ,^-  ^-S}.. 

'  °  (a.   u.   814) 

charged  them  at  full  speed,  and  when  the  clash  came 
easily  broke  through  the  opposing  ranks ;  but,  as  they 
were  surrounded  by  the  great  numbers,  they  had  to  be 
fighting  everywhere  at  once.  Their  struggle  took  many 
forms.  In  the  first  place,  light-armed  troops  might  be 
in  conflict  with  light-armed,  heavy-armed  be  arrayed 
against  heavy-armed,  cavalry  join  issue  with  cavalry; 
and  against  the  chariots  of  the  barbarians  the  Eoman 
archers  would  be  contending.  Again,  the  barbarians 
would  assail  the  Romans  with  a  rush  of  their  chariots, 
knocking  them  helter-skelter,  but,  since  they  fought 
without  breastplates,  would  be  themselves  repulsed  by 
the  arrows.  Horseman  would  upset  foot-soldier,  and 
foot-soldier  strike  down  horseman;  some,  forming  in 
close  order,  would  go  to  meet  the  chariots,  and  others 
would  be  scattered  by  them ;  some  would  come  to  close 
quarters  with  the  archers  and  rout  them,  whereas  oth- 
ers were  content  to  dodge  their  shafts  at  a  distance: 
and  all  these  things  went  on  not  at  one  spot,  but  in 
the  three  divisions  at  once.  They  contended  for  a  long 
time,  both  parties  being  animated  by  the  same  zeal  and 
daring.  Finally,  though  late  in  the  day,  the  Romans 
prevailed,  having  slain  numbers  in  the  battle,  beside 
the  wagons,  or  in  the  wood:  they  also  captured  many 
alive.  Still,  not  a  few  made  their  escape  and  went  on 
to  prepare  to  fight  a  second  time.  Meanwhile,  how- 
ever, Buduica  fell  sick  and  died.  The  Britons  mourned 
her  deeply  and  gave  her  a  costly  burial ;  but,  as  they 
themselves  were  this  time  really  defeated,  they  scat- 

39 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 


A.  D.  Gl 
(o.   u.   814) 


—  13 


tered  to  their  homes. —  So  far  the  history  of  affairs  in 
Britain. 
In  Rome  Nero  had  before  this  sent  away  Octavia 
la  u  815)  Augusta,  on  account  of  his  concubine  Sabina,  and  sub- 
sequently he  put  her  to  death.  This  he  did  in  spite 
of  the  opposition  of  Burrus,  who  tried  to  prevent  his 
sending  her  away,  and  once  said  to  him :  * '  Well,  then, 
give  her  back  her  dowry  "  (by  which  he  meant  the 
sovereignty).  Indeed,  Burrus  used  such  unmitigated 
frankness  that  on  one  occasion,  when  he  was  asked  by 
the  emperor  a  second  time  for  an  opinion  on  matters 
regarding  which  he  had  already  made  clear  his  atti- 
tude, he  answered  bluntly:  '*  When  I  have  once  had 
my  say  about  anything,  don't  ask  me  again."  So 
Nero  disposed  of  him  by  poison.  He  also  appointed 
to  command  the  Pretorians  a  certain  Ofonius  Tigil- 
linus,  who  outstripped  all  his  contemporaries  in  licen- 
tiousness and  bloodiness.  [It  was  he  who  won  Nero 
away  from  them  and  made  light  of  his  colleague 
Rufus.^]  To  him  the  famous  sentence  of  Pythias  is 
said  to  have  been  directed.  She  had  proved  the  only 
exception  when  all  the  other  attendants  of  Octavia 
had  joined  Sabina  in  attacking  their  mistress,  despis- 
ing the  one  because  she  was  in  misfortune  and  toady- 
ing to  the  other  because  her  influence  was  strong. 
Pythias  alone  had  refused  though  cruelly  tortured  to 
utter  lies  against  Octavia,  and  finally,  as  Tigillinus 
continued  to  urge  her,  she  spat  in  his  face,  saying: 

1  Fcenitis  Rufus. 

40 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

*^  My  mistress's  privy  parts  are  cleaner,  Tigillinus,    ■^-  ^-  62 

(o.   u,   815) 

than  your  mouth.*' 

The  troubles  of  his  relatives  Nero  turned  into  —14  — 
laughter  and  jest.  For  instance,  after  killing  Plautus^ 
he  took  a  look  at  his  head  when  it  was  brought  to  him 
and  remarked:  "  I  didn't  know  he  had  such  a  big 
nose,"  as  much  as  to  say  that  he  would  have  spared 
him,  had  he  been  aware  of  this  fact  beforehand.  And 
though  he  spent  practically  his  whole  existence  in 
tavern  life,  he  forbade  others  to  sell  in  taverns  any- 
thing boiled  save  vegetables  and  pea-soup.  He  put 
Pallas  out  of  the  way  because  the  latter  had  accumu- 
lated great  wealth  that  could  be  counted  by  the  ten 
thousand  myriads.  Likewise  he  was  very  liable  to 
peevishness  that  showed  in  his  behavior,  and  at  such 
times  he  would  not  speak  a  word  to  his  servants  or 
freedmen  but  write  on  tablets  whatever  he  wanted  as 
well  as  any  orders  that  he  had  to  give  them. 

H  Indeed,  when  many  of  those  who  had  gathered  at  Antium  perished,      15 

Nero  made  that,  too,  an  occasion  for  a  festival.  A.  D.  63 

If  A  certain  Thrasea  gave  his  opinion  to  the  effect  that  for  a  senator  the  ^   •   **•      ^*^/ 
extreme  penalty  should  be  exile. 

To  such  lengths  did  Nero's  self-indulgence  go  that  — 15  — 
he  actually  drove  chariots  in  public.  Again,  one  time  (a.  «.  8i7) 
after  the  slaughter  of  beasts  he  straightway  brought 
water  into  the  theatre  by  means  of  pipes  and  pro- 
duced a  sea-fight:  then  he  let  the  water  out  again, 
and  arranged  a  gladiatorial  combat.  Last  of  all  he 
flooded  the  place  once  more  and  gave  a  costly  public 
banquet.    The  person  who  had  been  appointed  director 

1  Rubellius  Plautus. 

41 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A-  ^- ^i  of  the  banquet  was  Tigillinus,  and  a  large  and  com- 
plete equipment  had  been  furnished.  The  arrange- 
ments made  were  as  follows.  In  the  center  and  rest- 
ing on  the  water  were  placed  the  great  wooden  wine 
vessels,  over  which  boards  had  been  fastened.  Bound 
about  it  had  been  built  taverns  and  booths.  Thus 
Nero  and  Tigillinus  and  their  fellow-banqueters, 
being  in  the  center,  held  their  feast  on  purple  carpets 
and  soft  mattresses,  while  all  the  other  people 
caroused  in  the  taverns.  These  also  entered  the 
brothels,  where  unrestrictedly  they  might  enjoy  abso- 
lutely any  woman  to  be  found  there.  Now  the  latter 
were  some  of  the  most  beautiful  and  distinguished  in 
the  city,  both  slaves  and  free,  some  hetaerae,  some  vir- 
gins, some  wives, — not  merely,  that  is  to  say,  public 
wenches,  but  both  girls  and  women  of  the  very  noblest 
families.  Every  man  was  given  authority  to  have 
whichever  one  he  wished,  for  the  women  were  not 
allowed  to  refuse  any  one.  Consequently,  the  mul- 
titude being  a  regular  rabble,  they  drank  greedily  and 
reveled  in  wanton  conduct.  So  a  slave  debauched 
his  mistress  in  the  presence  of  his  master  and  a 
gladiator  ravished  a  girl  of  noble  family  while  her 
father  looked  on.  The  shoving  and  striking  and 
uproar  that  went  on,  first  on  the  part  of  those  who 
were  going  in  and  second  on  the  part  of  those  who 
stood  around  outside,  was  disgraceful.  Many  men 
met  their  death  in  these  encounters,  and  of  the  women 
some  were  strangled  and  some  were  seized  and 
carried  off. 

42 


DIO'S  ROMAN    HISTORY 

After  this  Nero  had  the  wish   (or  rather  it  had    r~J?T; 

A.   D.  64 

always  been  a  fixed  purpose  of  his)  to  make  an  end  («•  «•  8i7.i; 
of  the  whole  city  and  sovereignty  during  his  lifetime. 
Priam  he  deemed  wonderfully  happy  in  that  he  had 
seen  his  country  perish  at  the  same  moment  as  his 
authority.  Accordingly  he  sent  in  different  directions 
men  feigning  to  be  drunk  or  engaged  in  some  indif- 
ferent species  of  rascality  and  at  first  had  one  or  two 
or  more  blazes  quietly  kindled  in  different  quarters: 
people,  of  course,  fell  into  the  utmost  confusion,  not 
being  able  to  find  any  beginning  of  the  trouble  nor  to 
put  any  end  to  it,  and  meanwhile  they  became  aware 
of  many  strange  sights  and  sounds.  For  soon  there 
was  nothing  to  be  observed  but  many  fires  as  in  a 
camp,  and  no  other  phrases  fell  from  men*s  lips  but 
''  This  or  that  is  burning  ";  ''  Where?  ";  ''  How?  "; 
*' Who  set  it?";  ''To  the  rescue!"  An  extraor- 
dinary perturbation  laid  hold  on  all  wherever  they 
might  be,  and  they  ran  about  as  if  distracted,  some 
in  one  direction  and  some  in  another.  Some  men  in 
the  midst  of  assisting  their  neighbors  would  learn 
that  their  own  premises  were  on  fire.  Others  received 
the  first  intimation  of  their  own  possessions  being 
aflame  when  informed  that  they  were  destroyed.  Per- 
sons would  run  from  their  houses  into  the  lanes  with 
some  idea  of  being  of  assistance  from  the  outside,  or 
again  they  would  dash  into  the  dwellings  from  the 
streets,  appearing  to  think  they  could  accomplish 
something  inside.  The  shouting  and  screaming  of 
children,  women,  men,  and  graybeards  all  together 

43 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  64    were  incessant,  so  that  one  could  have  no  conscious- 

(a.   M.   817)  . 

ness  nor  comprehension  of  anything  by  reason  of  the 
smoke  and  shouting  combined.  On  this  account  some 
might  be  seen  standing  speechless,  as  if  dumb.  All 
this  time  many  who  were  carrying  out  their  goods 
and  many  more  who  were  stealing  what  belonged  to 
others  kept  encountering  one  another  and  falling  over 
the  merchandise.  It  was  not  possible  to  get  anywhere, 
nor  yet  to  stand  still ;  but  people  pushed  and  were 
pushed  back,  they  upset  others  and  were  themselves 
upset,  many  were  suffocated,  many  were  crushed:  in 
fine,  no  evil  that  can  possibly  happen  to  men  at  such 
a  crisis  failed  to  befall  them.  They  could  not  with 
ease  find  even  any  avenue  of  escape,  and,  if  any  one 
did  save  himself  from  some  immediate  danger,  he 
_17__  usually  fell  into  another  one  and  was  lost.  This  did 
not  all  take  place  on  one  day,  but  lasted  for  several 
days  and  nights  together.  Many  houses  were  de- 
stroyed through  lack  of  some  one  to  defend  them  and 
many  were  set  on  fire  in  still  more  places  by  persons 
who  presumably  came  to  the  rescue.  For  the  soldiers 
(including  the  night  watch),  having  an  eye  upon  plun- 
der, instead  of  extinguishing  any  blaze  kindled  greater 
conflagrations.  While  similar  scenes  were  being  en- 
acted at  various  points  a  sudden  wind  caught  the  fire 
and  swept  it  over  whatever  remained.  Consequently 
no  one  concerned  himself  any  longer  about  goods  or 
houses,  but  all  the  survivors,  standing  in  a  place  of 
safety,  gazed  upon  what  seemed  to  be  many  islands 
and  cities  burning.     There  was  no  longer  any  grief 

44 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.   D.  64 

(a.   «.    817) 


over  individual  losses,  for  it  was  swallowed  up  in  the 
public  lamentation,  as  men  reminded  one  another  how 
once  before  most  of  their  city  had  been  similarly  laid 
waste  by  the  Gauls.  While  the  whole  population  was  —  is  — 
in  this  state  of  mind  and  many  crazed  by  the  disaster 
were  leaping  into  the  blaze  itself,  Nero  mounted  to 
the  roof  of  the  palace,  where  nearly  the  whole  con- 
flagration could  be  taken  in  by  a  sweeping  glance,  and 
having  assumed  the  lyrist's  garb  he  sang  the  Taking 
(as  he  said)  of  Ilium,  which,  to  the  ordinary  vision, 
however,  appeared  to  be  the  Taking  of  Rome. 

The  calamity  which  the  city  at  this  time  experienced 
has  no  parallel  before  or  since,  except  in  the  Gallic 
invasion.  The  whole  Palatine  hill,  the  theatre  of 
Taurus,  and  nearly  two-thirds  of  the  remainder  of  the 
city  were  burned  and  countless  human  beings  perished. 
The  populace  invoked  curses  upon  Nero  without 
intermission,  not  uttering  his  name  but  simply  cursing 
those  who  had  set  the  city  on  fire:  and  this  was 
especially  the  case  because  they  were  disturbed  by 
the  memory  of  the  oracle  chanted  in  Tiberius 's  day. 
These  were  the  words: — 

"  Thrice  three  hundred  cycles  of  tireless  years  being  ended. 
Civil  strife  shall  the  Romans  destroy."! 

And  when  Nero  by  way  of  encouraging  them  re- 
ported that  these  verses  were  nowhere  to  be  found, 
they  changed  and  went  to  repeating  another  oracle, 
which  they  averred  to  be  a  genuine  Sibylline  pro- 
duction, namely: — 

"  Last  of  the  sons  of  ^neas  a  matricide  shall  govern." 
1  Compare  Book  Fifty-seven,  chapter  18, 

45 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  64  And  so  it  proved,  whether  this  was  actually  re- 
vealed beforehand  by  some  divination  or  whether  the 
populace  now  for  the  first  time  gave  it  the  form  of  a 
divine  saying  adapted  to  existing  circumstances.  For 
Nero  was  indeed  the  last  emperor  of  the  Julian  line 
descended  from  ^neas. 

He  now  began  to  collect  vast  sums  from  both  indi- 
viduals and  nations,  sometimes  using  compulsion,  with 
the  conflagration  for  his  excuse,  and  sometimes  obtain- 
ing it  by  ' '  voluntary  ' '  offers ;  and  the  mass  of  the 
Romans  had  the  food  supply  fund  withdrawn. 

-—19—  While  he  was  so  engaged,  he  received  news  from 
Armenia  and  soon  after  a  laurel  wreath  in  honor  of 
victory.  The  scattered  bodies  of  soldiery  in  that 
region  had  been  united  by  Corbulo,  who  trained  them 
sedulously  after  a  period  of  neglect,  and  then  by  the 
very  report  of  his  coming  had  terrified  both  Volo- 
gaesus,  king  of  Parthia,  and  Tiridates,  chief  of  Ar- 
menia. He  resembled  the  primitive  Romans  in  that 
besides  coming  of  a  brilliant  family  and  besides  pos- 
sessing much  strength  of  body  he  was  still  further 
gifted  with  a  shrewd  intelligence:  and  he  behaved 
with  great  bravery,  with  great  fairness,  and  with 
great  good  faith  toward  all,  both  friends  and  ene- 
mies. For  these  reasons  Nero  had  despatched  him 
to  the  scene  of  war  in  his  own  stead  and  had  en- 
trusted to  him  a  larger  force  than  to  anybody  else, 
being  equally  assured  that  the  man  would  subdue  the 
barbarians  and  would  not  revolt  against  him.  And 
Corbulo  proved  neither  of  these  assumptions  false. 

46 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

All  other  men,  however,  had  it  as  a  particular  griev-  ,^-  ^- ^,tv 

'  '  ^  °  (a.  u.   817) 

ance  against  him  that  he  kept  faith  with  Nero.  They 
were  very  anxious  to  get  him  as  emperor  in  place  of 
the  actual  despot,  and  this  conduct  of  his  seemed  to 
them  his  only  defect. 

Corbulo,  accordingly,  had  taken  Artaxata  without  a  —20— 
struggle  and  had  razed  the  city  to  the  ground.  This 
exploit  finished,  he  marched  in  the  direction  of  Ti- 
granocerta,  sparing  all  the  districts  that  yielded  them- 
selves but  devastating  the  lands  of  all  such  as  re- 
sisted him.  Tigranocerta  submitted  to  him  volun- 
tarily, and  he  performed  other  brilliant  and  glorious 
deeds,  as  a  result  of  which  he  induced  the  formidable 
Vologsesus  to  accept  terms  that  accorded  with  the  Eo- 
man  reputation.  [For  Vologaesus,  on  hearing  that 
Nero  had  assigned  Armenia  to  others  and  that  Adia- 
bene  was  being  ravaged  by  Tigranes,  made  prepara- 
tions himself  to  go  on  a  campaign  into  Syria  against 
Corbulo,  but  sent  into  Armenia  Monobazus,  king  of 
Adiabene,  and  Monaeses,  a  Parthian.  These  two  had 
shut  up  Tigranes  in  Tigranocerta.  But  since  they  did 
not  succeed  in  harming  him  at  all  by  their  siege  and  as 
often  as  they  tried  conclusions  with  him  were  repulsed 
by  both  the  native  troops  and  the  Romans  that  were 
in  his  army,  and  since  Corbulo  guarded  Syria  with 
extreme  care,  Vologaesus  recognized  the  hopelessness 
of  his  attempt  and  disbanded  his  forces.  Then  he  sent 
to  Corbulo  and  obtained  peace  on  condition  that  he 
should  send  a  new  embassy  to  Nero,  raise  the  siege, 
and  withdraw  his  soldiers  from  Arlnenia.    Nero  made 

47 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  64    i^ijij  no  immediate  nor  speedv  nor  definite  reply,  but 

(a.    u.    S17)  ^  .      " 

despatched  Lucius  Caesennius  Paetus  to  Cappadocia  to 
see  to  it  that  there  should  be  no  Armenian  uprising.] 
—  21—  [So  Vologsesus  attacked  Tigranocerta  and  drove 
back  Paetus,  who  had  come  to  its  aid.  When  the  latter 
fled  he  pursued  him,  beat  back  the  garrison  left  by 
Paetus  at  the  Taurus,  and  shut  him  up  in  Rhandea,  near 
the  river  Arsanias.  Then  he  was  on  the  point  of  re- 
tiring without  accomplishing  anything;  for  destitute 
as  he  was  of  heavy-armed  soldiers  he  could  not  ap- 
proach close  to  the  wall,  and  he  had  no  large  stock  of 
I)rovender,  particularly  as  he  had  come  at  the  head  of 
a  vast  host  without  making  arrangements  for  food 
supplies.  P.aetus,  however,  stood  in  terror  of  his  arch> 
ery,  which  took  effect  in  the  very  camp  itself,  as  well 
as  of  the  cavalry,  which  kept  appearing  at  all  points. 
Hence  he  made  peace  proposals  to  his  antagonist,  ac- 
cepted his  terms,  and  took  an  oath  that  he  would  him- 
self abandon  all  of  Armenia  and  that  Nero  should  give 
it  to  Tiridates.  The  Parthian  was  satisfied  enough 
with  this  agreement,  seeing  that  he  was  to  obtain  con- 
trol of  the  country  without  a  contest  and  would  be  mak- 
ing the  Romans  his  debtors  for  a  very  considerable 
kindness.  And,  as  he  learned  that  Corbulo  (whom 
Paetus  several  times  sent  for  before  he  was  surrounded) 
was  drawing  near,  he  dismissed  the  beleaguered  sol- 
diers, having  first  made  them  agree  to  build  a 
bridge  over  the  river  Arsanias  for  him.  He  was  not 
really  in  need  of  a  bridge,  for  he  had  crossed  on  foot, 
but  he  wished  to  give  them  a  practical  example  of  the 

48 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

fact  that  he  was  stronger  than  they.  Indeed,  he  did  not 
retire  by  way  of  the  bridge  even  on  this  occasion,  but 
rode  across  on  an  elephant,  while  the  rest  got  over  as 
before. 

The  capitulation  had  scarcely  been  made  when  Cor- 
bulo  with  inconceivable  swiftness  reached  the  Euphra- 
tes and  there  waited  for  the  retreating  force.  When 
the  two  armies  approached  each  other  you  would  have 
been  struck  with  the  difference  between  them  and  be- 
tween their  generals :  one  set  were  fairly  aglow  with 
delight  at  their  rapidity;  the  others  were  grieved  and 
ashamed  of  their  compact.  Vologaesus  sent  Monaeses  to 
Corbulo  with  the  demand  that  the  newcomer  should 
give  up  the  fort  in  Mesopotamia.  So  they  held  a  pro- 
longed conference  together  right  at  the  bridge  cross- 
ing the  Euphrates,  after  first  destroying  the  center  of 
the  structure.  Corbulo  having  promised  to  leave  the 
country  if  the  Parthian  would  also  abandon  Armenia, 
both  of  these  things  were  done  temporarily  until  Nero 
could  learn  the  outcome  of  the  engagements  and  be- 
gin negotiations  with  the  envoys  of  Vologaesus,  whom 
the  latter  had  sent  a  second  time.  The  answer  given 
them  by  the  emperor  was  that  he  would  bestow  Arme- 
nia upon  Tiridates  if  this  aspirant  would  come  to 
Rome.  Psetus  was  deposed  from  his  command  and  the 
soldiers  that  had  been  with  him  were  sent  somewhere 
else.  Corbulo  was  again  assigned  to  the  war  against 
the  same  foes.  Nero  had  intended  to  accompany  the 
expedition  in  person,  but  after  falling  down  during 
VOL.  5—4  49 


A.  D.  64 
(a.  u.   817) 


22  — 


—  23 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  64    ^]^Q  ceremony  of  sacrificing  he  would  not  venture  to  go 
abroad  but  remained  where  he  was.] 

[Corbulo  therefore  oflficially  prepared  for  war  upon 
Vologaesus  and  sent  a  centurion  bidding  him  depart 
from  the  country.  Privately,  however,  he  suggested 
to  the  king  that  he  send  his  brother  to  Rome,  and  this 
advice  met  with  acceptance,  since  Corbulo  seemed  to 
have  the  stronger  force.  Thus  it  came  about  that  they 
both,  Corbulo  and  Tiridates,  met  at  no  other  place  than 
Ehandea,  which  suited  them  both.  It  appealed  to  the 
Parthian  because  there  his  people  had  cut  off  the  Ro- 
mans and  had  sent  them  away  under  a  capitulation,  a 
visible  proof  of  the  favor  that  had  been  done  them.  To 
the  Roman  it  appealed  because  his  men  were  going  to 
wipe  out  the  ill  repute  that  had  attached  to  them  there 
before.  For  the  meeting  of  the  two  was  not  limited 
merely  to  conversation;  a  lofty  platform  had  been 
erected  on  which  were  set  images  of  Nero,  and  in  the 
presence  of  crowds  of  Armenians,  Parthians,  and  Ro- 
mans Tiridates  approached  and  did  them  reverence; 
after  sacrificing  to  them  and  calling  them  by  laudatory 
names  he  took  off  the  diadem  from  his  head  and  set  it 
upon  them.  Monobazus  and  Vologsesus  also  came  to 
Corbulo  and  gave  him  hostages.  In  honor  of  this  event 
Nero  was  a  number  of  times  saluted  as  imperator  and 
held  a  triumph,  contrary  to  precedent.]  But  Corbulo 
in  spite  of  the  large  force  that  he  had  and  the  very  con- 
siderable reputation  that  he  enjoyed  did  not  rebel  and 
was  never  accused  of  rebellion.  He  might  easily  have 
been  made  emperor,  since  men  thoroughly  detested 

50 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Nero  but  all  admired  him  in  every  way.  [In  addition  ■^-  ^- ^* 
to  the  more  striking  features  of  his  submissive  be- 
havior he  voluntarily  sent  to  Eome  his  son-in-law 
Annius,  who  served  as  his  lieutenant;  this  was  done 
professedly  that  Annius  might  escort  Tiridates  back, 
but  in  fact  this  relative  stood  in  the  position  of  a 
hostage  to  Nero.  The  latter  was  so  firmly  persuaded 
that  his  general  would  not  revolt  that  Corbulo  obtained 
his  son-in-law  as  lieutenant^  before  he  had  been 
praetor.] 

,[And  Junius  Torquatus,  a  descendant  of  Augustus,  (—27—) 
made  himself  liable  to  a  most  strange  indictment.  He 
had  squandered  his  property  in  a  rather  lavish  way, 
whether  following  his  native  bent  or  with  the  intention 
of  not  being  very  rich.  Nero  therefore  declared  that, 
as  he  lacked  many  things,  he  must  be  covetous  of  the 
goods  of  others,  and  consequently  caused  a  fictitious 
charge  to  be  brought  against  him  of  aspiring  to  im- 
perial power.] 

Seneca,  however,  and  Rufus  the  prefect  and  some  —  S34— 
other  prominent  men  formed  a  plot  against  Nero.  (o.  m.'sis) 
They  could  no  longer  endure  his  ignoble  behavior,  his* 
licentiousness,  and  his  cruelty.  They  desired  at  one 
and  the  same  time  to  be  rid  of  these  evils  and  to  give 
Nero  his  release  from  them.  Indeed,  Sulpicius  Asper, 
a  centurion,  and  Subrius  Flavins,  a  military  tribune, 
both  belonging  to  the  body-guards,  admitted  this  to 
him  point  blank.  Asper,  when  interrogated  by  the  em- 
peror as  to  the  reason  for  his  attempt,  replied :    *  *  I 

1  Reading  onap^ov  (Boissevain)  for  otzutov. 

51 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.  65 
(a.   u.   818) 


could  help  you  in  no  other  way. ' '  And  the  response  of 
Flavins  was :  '  *  I  both  loved  you  and  hated  you  above 
all  men.  I  loved  you,  hoping  that  you  would  prove  a 
good  emperor :  I  have  hated  you  because  you  do  so-and- 
so.  I  can  not  be  slave  to  charioteer  or  lyre-player."— 
Information  was  lodged  and  these  men  were  punished, 
besides  many  others  indirectly  associated  with  them. 
Everything  in  the  nature  of  a  complaint  that  could  be 
entertained  against  any  one  for  excessive  joy  or  grief, 
for  words  or  gestures,  was  brought  forward  and  was 
believed.  Not  one  of  these  complaints,  even  if  ficti- 
tious, could  be  refused  credence  in  view  of  Nero's  ac- 
tual deeds.  Hence  conscienceless  friends  and  house 
servants  of  some  men  flourished  greatly.  Persons 
guarded  against  strangers  and  foes, —  for  of  these 
they  were  suspicious,—  but  were  bound  to  expose 
themselves  whether  they  would  or  no  to  their  as- 
sociates. 
—  25—  It  would  be  no  small  task  to  record  details  about 
most  of  those  that  perished,  but  the  fate  of  Seneca 
needs  a  few  words  by  itself.  It  was  his  wish  to  end 
the  life  of  his  wife  Paulina  at  the  same  time  with  his 
own,  for  he  declared  that  he  had  taught  her  to  despise 
death  and  that  she  desired  to  leave  the  world  in  com- 
pany with  him.  So  he  opened  her  veins  as  well  as 
his  own.  As  he  failed,  however,  to  yield  readily  to 
death,  his  end  was  hastened  by  the  soldiers;  and  his 
dying  so  speedily  enabled  Paulina  to  survive.  He  did 
not  lay  hands  upon  himself,  however,  until  he  had  re- 
vised the  book  which  he  had  composed  and  had  de- 

52 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

posited  with  various  persons  certain  other  valued  pos-  ,^-  ^' ^,^, 

•^  ^  ^  (a.   u.   818) 

sessions  which  he  feared  might  come  into  Nero 's  hands 
and  be  destroyed.  Thus  was  Seneca  forced  to  part 
with  life  in  spite  of  the  fact  that  he  had  on  the  pre- 
text of  illness  abandoned  the  society  of  the  emperor 
and  had  bestowed  upon  him  his  entire  property,  sup- 
jjosedly  to  help  defray  the  expense  of  necessary  build- 
ing operations.    His  brothers,  too,  perished  after  him. 

Likewise  Thrasea  and  Soranus,  who  had  no  superi-  _26  — 
ors  in  family,  wealth,  and  every  excellence,  met  their 
death  not  because  they  were  accused  of  conspiracy  but 
because  they  were  what  they  were.  Against  Soranus 
Publius  Egnatius  Celer,  a  philosopher,  gave  false  evi- 
dence. The  victim  had  had  two  associates, —  Cassius 
Asclepiodotus  of  Nicsea  and  this  Publius  of  Berytus. 
Now  Asclepiodotus  so  far  from  speaking  against  So- 
ranus bore  witness  to  his  noble  qualities;  he  was  at 
the  time  exiled  for  his  pains,  but  later,  under  Galba, 
was  restored.  Publius  in  return  for  his  services  as 
blackmailer  received  money  and  honors  (as  did  others 
of  the  same  profession),  but  subsequently  he  was  ban- 
ished. Soranus  was  slain  on  the  charge  of  having 
caused  his  daughter  to  employ  a  species  of  magic,  the 
foundation  for  this  story  being  that  when  he  was  sick 
his  family  had  offered  some  sacrifices.  Thrasea  was 
executed  for  not  appearing  regularly  at  the  senate- 
house,  thus  showing  that  he  did  not  like  the  measures 
passed,  for  not  listening  to  the  emperor's  singing  and 
zither-playing,  for  not  sacrificing  to  Nero's  Divine 
Voice  as  did  the  rest,  and  for  not  giving  any  public 

53 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

it'  .?*  e^ie^  exhibitions :  for  it  was  remarked  that  at  Patavium,  his 
native  place,  he  had  acted  in  a  tragedy  given  in  pur- 
suance of  some  old  custom  at  a  festival  held  every 
thirty  years.  As  he  made  the  incision  in  his  artery,  he 
raised  his  hand,  exclaiming:  *'  To  thee,  Jupiter,  pa- 
tron of  freedom,  I  pour  this  libation  of  blood." 

—  27—        And  why  should  one  be  surprised  that  such  complaints 

were  fastened  upon  them,i  seeing  that  one  man^  was 
brought  to  trial  and  slain  for  living  near  the  Forum, 
for  letting  out  some  shops,  or  for  receiving  a  few 
friends  in  them;  and  another^  because  he  possessed  a 
likeness  of  Cassius,  the  murderer  of  CsBsar? 

The  conduct  of  a  woman  named  Epicharis  also  de- 
serves mention.  She  had  been  included  in  the  con- 
spiracy and  all  its  details  had  been  trusted  to  her  with- 
out reserve;  yet  she  revealed  none  of  these  though 
often  tortured  in  all  the  ways  that  the  skill  of  Tigil- 
linus  could  devise.  And  why  should  one  enumerate 
the  sums  given  to  the  Pretorians  on  the  occasion  of 
this  conspiracy  or  the  excessive  honors  voted  to  Nero 
and  his  friends?  Let  me  say  only  that  it  led  to  the 
banishment  of  Rufus  Musonius,  the  philosopher.  Sa- 
bina  also  perished  at  this  time  through  an  act  of 
Nero's.  Either  accidentally  or  intentionally  he  had 
given  her  a  violent  kick  while  she  was  pregnant. 

—  28  —         The  extremes  of  luxury  indulged  in  by  this  Sabina  I 

will  indicate  in  the  briefest  possible  terms.    She  had 

1  A  slight  gap  in  the  MS.  exists  here,  filled  by  a  doubtful  conjecture 
of  Boissevain's. 

^Salvidienus  Orfitus  (according  to  Suetonius,  Life  of  Nero,  chap.  37 ) . 
3  C.  Cassius  Longinus  ( ibid. ) . 

54 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

gilded  girths  put  upon  the  mules  that  carried  her  and  ■^-  ^- ^|. 
caused  five  hundred  asses  that  had  recently  foaled  to 
be  milked  each  day  that  she  might  bathe  in  their  milk. 
She  devoted  great  thought  to  making  her  person  ap- 
pear youthful  and  lustrously  beautiful, —  and  withi 
brilliant  results ;  and  this  is  why,  not  fancying  her  ap- 
pearance in  a  mirror  one  day,  she  prayed  that  she 
might  die  before  she  passed  her  prime.  Nero  missed 
her  so  that  [after  her  death,  at  first,  on  learning  that 
there  was  a  woman  resembling  her  he  sent  for  and  • 

kept  this  female:  later]  because  a  boy  of  the  liberti 
class,  named  Sporus,  resembled  Sabina,  he  had  him 
castrated  and  used  him  in  every  way  like  a  woman; 
and  in  due  time  he  formally  married  him  though  he 
[Nero]  was  already  married  to  a  freedman  Pythag- 
oras. He  assigned  the  boy  a  regular  dowry  according 
to  contract,  and  Romans  as  well  as  others  held  a  pub- 
lic celebration  of  their  wedding. 

II  While  Nero  had  Sporus  the  eunuch  as  a  wife,  one  of  his  associates 
in  Rome,  who  had  made  a  specialty  of  philosophy,  on  being  asked  whether 
the  marriage  and  cohabitation  in  question  met  with  his  approval  re- 
plied :  "  You  do  well,  Csesar,  to  seek  the  company  of  such  wives.  If 
only  your  father  had  had  the  same  ambition  and  had  dwelt  with  a 
similar  consort !  " —  indicating  that  if  this  bad  been  the  case,  Nero 
would  not  have  been  born,  and  the  government  would  have  been  relieved 
of  great  evils. 

This  was,  however,  later.  At  the  time  with  which 
we  are  immediately  concerned  many,  as  I  stated,  were 
put  to  death  and  many  who  purchased  their  preserva- 
tion with  Tigillinus  with  a  great  price  were  released. 

Nero   continued  to  commit  many  ridiculous   acts,     _29  — 
among  which  may  be  cited  his  descending  at  a  kind  of 

55 


A.  D.  65 

(a.   u.    818) 


DTO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

popular  festival  to  the  orchestra  of  the  theatre,  where 
he  read  some  Trojan  lays  of  his  own :  and  in  honor  of 
these  there  were  offered  numerous  sacrifices,  as  there 
were  over  everything  else  that  he  did.  He  was  now 
making  preparations  to  compile  in  verse  a  narration  of 
all  the  achievements  of  the  Romans :  before  composing 
any  of  it,  however,  he  began  to  consider  the  proper 
number  of  books,  and  took  as  his  adviser  AnnaBus 
Cornutus,  who  at  this  time  was  famed  for  his  learning. 
This  man  he  came  very  near  putting  to  death  and  did 
deport  to  an  island,  because,  while  some  were  urging 
him  to  write  four  hundred  books,  Cornutus  said  that 
was  too  many  and  nobody  would  read  them.  And 
v/hen  some  one  objected;  "  Yet  Chrysippus,  whom 
you  praise  and  imitate,  has  composed  many  more,"  the 
savant  retorted:  *'  But  they  are  a  help  to  the  con- 
duct of  men's  lives."  So  Cornutus  was  punished  with 
exile  for  this.  And  Lucanus  was  enjoined  from  writ- 
ing poetry  because  he  was  securing  great  praise  for  his 
work. 


56 


DIO'S 

ROMAN  HISTORY 

63 


57 


Kero,  receiving  Tiridates  with  imposing  state,  places  a  crown 
upon  his  head  (chapters  1-7). 

He  journeys  to  Greece  in  order  to  become  Periodonikes  (chap- 
ters 8-10). 

With  the  help  of  Tigillinns  and  Crispinilla  he  lays  Greece 
waste :  Helius  and  Polycletus  perform  the  same  office  for  Rome 
and  Italy  (chapters  11,  12). 

Nero's  marriages  and  abominations  with  Sporus  and  Pythag- 
oras (chapter  13). 

His  victories  and  proclamation :  frenzy  against  Apollo :  hatred 
toward  the  senators  (chapters  14,  15). 

Digging  a  canal  through  the  Isthmus  (chapter  16). 

Demise  of  the  Scribonii,  of  Corbulo,  of  Paris,  of  the  Sulpicii 
(chapters  17,  18). 

At  the  solicitation  of  Helius,  Nero  returning  conducts  an 
Iselasticum  triumph  (chapters  19-21). 

Vindex's  conspiracy  against  Nero,  and  his  extinction  (chap- 
ters 22-24). 

Rufus,  saluted  as  Csesar  and  Augustus,  refuses  the  sovereignty 
(chapter  25). 

Nero's  flight  and  demise  (chapters  26-29). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

C.  Lucius  Telesinus,  C.  Suetonius  Paulinus.  (A.  D.  66  =  a.  u. 
819  =  Thirteenth  of  Nero,  from  Oct.  13th.) 

Fonteius  Capito,  lunius  Rufus.  (A.  D.  67  =  a.  u.  820  = 
Pourteenth  of  Nero.) 

C.  Silius  Italicus,  Galerius  Trachalus  Turpilianus.  (A.  D. 
68  =  a.  u.  821,  to  June  9th.) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

In  the  consulship  of  Gains  Telesinus  and  Suetonius  ^""jj  "^g 
Paulinus  one  event  of  great  glory  and  another  of  deep  («•  "•  ^^^^ 
disgrace  took  place.  For  one  thing  Nero  contended 
among  the  zither-players,  and  after  Menecrates/  the 
teacher  of  this  art,  had  celebrated  a  triumph  for  him 
in  the  hippodrome,  he  appeared  as  a  charioteer.  For 
the  other,  Tiridates  presented  himself  in  Eome,  bring- 
ing with  him  not  only  his  own  children  but  those  of 
Vologaesus,  of  Pacorus,  and  of  Monobazus.  They  were 
the  objects  of  interest  in  a  quasi-triumphal  procession 
through  the  whole  country  west  from  the  Euphrates. 
Tiridates  himself  was  in  the  prime  of  life,  a  notable  —  a  — 
figure  by  reason  of  his  youth,  beauty,  family,  and  in- 
telligence: and  his  whole  train  of  servants  together 
with  the  entourage  of  a  royal  court  accompanied  the 
advance.  Three  thousand  Parthian  horsemen  and  be- 
sides them  numerous  Romans  followed  his  train.  They 
were  received  by  gaily  decorated  cities  and  by  peoples 
who  shouted  their  compliments  aloud.  Provisions  were 
furnished  them  free  of  cost,  an  expenditure  of  twenty 
myriads  for  their  daily  support  being  thus  charged  to 
the  public  treasury.  This  went  on  without  change  for 
the  nine  months  occupied  in  their  journey.  The  prince 
covered  the  whole  distance  to  the  confines  of  Italy  on 
horseback  and  beside  him  rode  his  wife,  wearing  a 
golden  helmet  in  place  of  a  veil,  so  as  not  to  defy  the 
traditions  of  her  country  by  letting  her  face  be  seen. 
In  Italy  he  was  conveyed  in  a  two-horse  carriage  sent 
by  Nero  and  met  the  emperor  at  Naples,  which  he 

1  This  proper  name  is  the  result  of  an  emendation  hj  Reimar. 

59 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  6(5     reached  by  way  of  the  Picentes.    He  refused,  how- 

(a.  u.   819)  ^  ^  > 

ever,  to  obey  the  order  to  put  down  his  dagger  when 
he  approached  the  Roman  monarch,  and  he  nailed  it 
firmly  to  the  scabbard.  Yet  he  knelt  upon  the  ground, 
and  with  arms  crossed  called  him  master  and  did  obei- 

—  3—  sance.  Nero  manifested  his  approbation  of  this  act 
and  entertained  him  in  many  ways,  one  of  which  was 
a  gladiatorial  show  at  Puteoli.  The  person  who  di- 
rected the  contests  was  Patrobius,  one  of  his  freedmen. 
He  managed  to  make  it  a  brilliant  and  costly  affair,  as 
is  shown  by  the  fact  that  on  one  of  the  days  not  a  per- 
son but  Ethiopians,  men,  women,  and  children,  ap- 
peared in  the  theatre.  By  way  of  showing  Patrobius 
some  proper  honor  Tiridates  shot  at  beasts  from  his 
elevated  seat.  And,  if  we  may  trust  the  report,  he 
transfixed  and  killed  two  bulls  together  with  one 
arrow. 

—4—  After  this  affair  Nero  took  him  up  to  Rome  and  set 
the  diadem  upon  his  head.  The  entire  city  had  been 
decorated  with  lights  and  garlands,  and  great  crowds 
of  people  were  to  be  seen  everj^where,  the  Forum, 
however,  being  especially  full.  The  center  was  occupied 
by  the  populace,  arranged  according  to  rank,  clad  in 
white  and  carrying  laurel  branches:  everywhere  else 
were  the  soldiers,  arrayed  in  shining  armor,  their 
weapons  and  standards  reflecting  back  the  sunbeams. 
The  very  roof  tiles  of  the  buildings  in  this  vicinity 
were  completely  hidden  from  view  by  the  spectators 
who  had  ascended  to  these  points  of  vantage.  Every- 
thing was  in  readiness  by  the  time  night  drew  to  a 

60 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

close  and  at  daybreak  Nero,  wearing  tke  trmmphal  ■^-  ^-  ^^ 
garb  and  accompanied  by  the  senate  and  the  Pretor- 
ians,  entered  the  Forum.  He  ascended  the  rostra  and 
seated  himself  upon  the  chair  of  state.  Next  Tiri- 
dates  and  his  suite  passed  through  rows  of  heavy- 
armed  men  drawn  up  on  each  side,  took  their  stand 
close  to  the  rostra,  and  did  obeisance  to  the  emperor 
as  they  had  done  before.  At  this  a  great  roar  went  —  5  — 
up  which  so  alarmed  Tiridates  that  for  some  moments 
he  stood  speechless,  in  terror  of  his  life.  Then,  silence 
having  been  proclaimed,  he  recovered  courage  and 
quelling  his  pride  made  himself  subservient  to  the 
occasion  and  to  his  need,  caring  little  how  humbly  he 
spoke,  in  view  of  the  prize  he  hoped  to  obtain.  These 
were  his  words :  ' '  Master,  I  am  the  descendant  of 
Arsaces,  brother  of  the  princes  Vologaesus  and  Pa- 
corus,  and  thy  slave.  And  I  have  come  to  thee,  my 
deity,  to  worship  thee  as  I  do  Mithra.  The  destiny 
thou  spinnest  for  me  shall  be  mine :  for  thou  art  my 
Fortune  and  my  Fate." 

Nero  replied  to  him  as  follows :  ' '  Well  hast  thou 
done  to  come  hither  in  person,  that  present  in  my 
presence  thou  mayest  enjoy  my  benefits.  For  what 
neither  thy  father  left  thee  nor  thy  brothers  gave  and 
preserved  for  thee,  this  do  I  grant  thee.  King  of 
Armenia  I  now  declare  thee,  that  both  thou  and  they 
may  understand  that  I  have  power  to  take  away  king- 
doms and  to  bestow  them. ' '  At  the  end  of  these  words 
he  bade  him-  come  up  the  inclined  plane  built  for  this 
very  purpose  in  front  of  the  rostra,  and  Tiridates 

61 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D-  66    j^aving  been  made  to  sit  beneath  his  feet  he  placed  the 
(a.  u.  819)      ^        °  ^ 

diadem  upon  his  head.  At  this  there  was  no  end  of 
—6—  shouts  of  ^11  sorts.  According  to  decree  there  also 
took  place  a  celebration  in  the  theatre.  Not  merely 
the  stage  but  the  whole  interior  of  the  theatre  round 
about  had  been  gilded,  and  all  properties  brought  in 
had  been  adorned  with  gold,  so  that  people  came  to 
refer  to  the  very  day  as  *'  golden."  The  curtains 
stretched  across  the  sky-opening  to  keep  off  the  sun 
were  of  purple  and  in  the  centre  of  them  was  an  em- 
broidered figure  of  Nero  driving  a  chariot,  with  golden 
stars  gleaming  all  about  him.  So  much  for  the  setting : 
and  of  course  they  had  a  costly  banquet. 

Afterward  Nero  san^  publicly  with  zither  accompani- 
ment and  drove  a  chariot,  clad  in  the  costume  of  the 
Greens  and  wearing  a  charioteer's  helmet.  This 
made  Tiridates  disgusted  with  him;  but  for  Corbulo 
the  visitor  had  only  praise  and  deemed  the  one  thing 
against  him  to  be  that  he  would  put  up  with  such  a 
master.  Indeed,  he  made  no  concealment  of  his  views 
to  Nero 's  face,  but  one  day  said  to  him : ' '  Master,  you 
have  in  Corbulo  a  good  slave."  The  person  addressed, 
however,  did  not  comprehend  his  speech. —  In  all  other 
matters  he  flattered  the  emperor  and  ingratiated  him- 
self most  skillfully,  with  the  result  that  he  received 
all  kinds  of  gifts,  said  to  have  possessed  in  the  ag- 
gregate a  value  of  five  thousand  myriads,  and  obtained 
permission  to  rebuild  Artaxata.  Moreover,  he  took 
with  him  from  Eome  many  artisans,  some  of  whom  he 
got  from  Nero,  and  some  whom  he  persuaded  by  of- 

62 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

fers  of  high  wages.    Corbulo,  however,  would  not  let    A.  d.  66 

(a.   u.   819) 

them  all  cross  into  Armenia,  but  only  the  ones  whom 
Nero  had  given  him.  That  caused  Tiridates  to  ad- 
mire him  all  the  more  and  to  despise  his  chief. 

The  return  was  made  not  by  the  same  route  as  he  —  7  — 
followed  in  coming, —  through  Illyricum  and  north  of 
the  Ionian  Gulf,— but  instead  he  sailed  from  Brun- 
dusium  to  Dyrrachium.  He  viewed  also  the  cities  of 
Asia,  which  helped  to  increase  his  amazement  at  the 
strength  and  beauty  of  the  Roman  empire. 

If  Tiridates  one  day  viewed  an  exhibition  of  pancratium.  One  of  the 
contestants  fell  to  the  ground  and  was  being  pummeled  by  his  oppo- 
Hent.  When  the  prince  saw  it,  he  exclaimed :  "  That's  an  unfair  con- 
test.   It  isn't  fair  that  a  man  who  has  fallen  should  be  beaten." 

On  rebuilding  Artaxata  Tiridates  named  it  Neronia. 
But  Vologaesus  though  often  summoned  refused  to 
come  to  Nero,  and  finally,  when  the  latter 's  invitations 
became  burdensome  to  him,  sent  back  a  despatch  to 
this  effect ;  ' '  It  is  far  easier  for  you  than  for  me  to 
traverse  so  great  a  body  of  water.  Therefore,  if  you 
will  come  to  Asia,  we  can  then  arrange  [where  we 
shall  be  able]  to  meet  each  other."  [Such  was  the 
message  which  the  Parthian  wrote  at  last.] 

Nero  though  angry  at  him  did  not  sail  against  him,  —s  — 
nor  yet  against  the  Ethiopians  or  the  Caspian  Pylae, 
as  he  had  intended.  [He  saw  that  the  subjugation  of 
these  regions  demanded  time  and  labor  and  hoped 
that  they  would  submit  to  him  of  their  own  accord:] 
and  he  sent  spies  to  both  places.  But  he  did  cross 
over  into  Greece,  not  at  all  as  Flamininus  or  Mum- 
mius  or  as  Agrippa  and  Augustus  his  ancestors  had 

63 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^  ^  8^19^  <3one,  but  for  the  purpose  of  chariot  racing,  of  playing 
and  singing,  of  making  proclamations,  and  of  acting  in 
tragedies.  Eome  was  not  enough  for  him,  nor  Pom- 
pey's  theatre,  nor  the  great  hippodrome,  but  he  de- 
sired also  a  foreign  tour,  in  order  to  become,  as  he 
said,  victor  in  all  the  four  contests.^  And  a  multitude 
not  only  of  Augustans  but  of  other  persons  were  taken 
with  him,  large  enough,  if  it  had  been  a  hostile  host, 
to  have  subdued  both  Parthians  and  all  other  nations. 
But  they  were  the  kind  you  would  have  expected  Nero's 
soldiers  to  be,  and  the  arms  they  carried  were  zithers 
and  plectra,  masks  and  buskins.  The  victories  Nero 
won  were  such  as  befitted  that  sort  of  army,  and 
he  overcame  Terpnus  and  Diodorus  and  Pammenes, 
instead  of  Philip  or  Perseus  or  Antiochus.  It  is 
probable  that  his  purpose  in  forcing  the  Pammenes 
referred  to,  who  had  been  in  his  prime  in  the  reign  of 
Gains,  to  compete  in  spite  of  his  age,  was  that  he 
might  overcome  him  and  vent  his  dislike  in  abuse  of, 
his  statues. 

—9—  Had  he  done  only  this,  he  would  have  been  the  sub- 
ject of  ridicule.  So  how  could  one  endure  to  hear 
about,  let  alone  seeing,  an  emperor,  an  Augustus,  listed 
on  the  program  among  the  contestants,  training  his 
voice,  practicing  certain  songs,  wearing  long  hair  on 
his  head  but  with  his  chin  shaven,  throwing  his  toga 
over  his  shoulder  in  the  races,  walking  about  with  one 
or  two  attendants,  eyeing  his  adversaries  suspiciously 

1  Literally  "  victor  of  the  periodos.''  This  was  a  name  applied  to  an 
athlete  who  had  conquered  in  the  Pythian,  Isthmian,  Nemean  and 
Olympian  games. 

64 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  ever  and  anon  throwing  out  a  word  to  them  in  the  A.  D.  67  ( ?) 
midst  of  a  boxing  match ;  how  he  dreaded  the  directors 
of  the  games  and  the  wielders  of  the  whip  and  spent 
money  on  all  of  them  secretly  to  avoid  being  shown  up 
in  his  true  colors  and  whipped;  and  how  all  that  he 
did  to  make  himself  victor  in  the  citharoedic  contest 
only  contributed  to  his  defeat  in  the  Contest  of  the 
Cassars?  How  find  words  to  denounce  the  wickedness 
of  this  proscription  in  which  it  was  not^  Sulla  that 
bulletined  the  names  of  others,  but  Nero  bulletined  his 
own  name?  What  victory  less  deserves  the  name  than 
that  by  which  one  receives  the  olive,  the  laurel,  the 
parsley,  or  the  fir-tree  garland,  and  loses  the  political 
crown?  And  why  should  one  bewail  these  acts  of  his 
alone,  seeing  that  he  also  by  treading  on  the  high-soled 
buskins  lowered  himself  from  his  eminence  of  power, 
and  by  hiding  behind  the  mask  lost  the  dignity  of  his 
sovereignty  to  beg  in  the  guise  of  a  runaway  slave, 
to  be  led  like  a  blind  man,  to  conceive,  to  bear  chil- 
dren, to  go  mad  [to  drive  a  chariot],  as  he  acted  out 
time  after  time  the  story  of  OEdipus,  and  of  Thyestes, 
of  Heracles  and  Alcmeon,  and  of  Orestes  ?  The  masks 
he  wore  were  sometimes  made  to  resemble  the  charac- 
ters and  sometimes  had  his  own  likeness.  The  wo- 
men's masks  were  all  fashioned  to  conform  to  the 
features  of  Sabina  [in  order  that  though  dead  she 
might  still  move  in  stately  procession.  All  the  situa- 
tions that  common  actors  simulate  in  their  acting  he, 
too,  would  undertake  to  present,  by  speech,  by  action, 

1     oh  supplied  by  Reiske. 

VOL.  5—5  65 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A. D. 67  (?)  i)y  being  acted  upon, —  save  only  that]  golden  chains 
were  used  to  bind  him :  apparently  it  was  not  thought 
proper  for  a  Eoman  emperor  to  be  bound  in  iron 
shackles. 
—  10—  All  this  behavior,  nevertheless,  the  soldiers  and  all 
the  rest  saw,  endured,  and  approved.  They  entitled 
him  Pythian  Victor,  Olympian  Victor,  National  Victor, 
Absolute  Victor,  besides  all  the  usual  expressions,  and 
of  course  added  to  these  names  the  honorific  designa- 
tions belonging  to  his  imperial  office,  so  that  every 
one  of  them  had  *^  Caesar  "  and  '^  Augustus  "  as  a  tag. 

1[  He  conceived  a  dislike  for  a  certain  man  because  while  he  was 
speaking  the  man  frowned  and  was  not  overlavish  of  his  praises;  and 
so  he  drove  him  away  and  would  not  let  him  come  into  his  presence. 
He  persisted  in  his  refusal  to  grant  him  audience,  and  when  the  person 
asked :  "  Where  shall  I  go,  then  ?  "  Phcebus,  Nero's  f reedman,  replied : 
"To  the  deuce!  " 

No  one  of  the  people  ventured  either  to  pity  or  to 
hate  the  wretched  creature.  One  of  the  soldiers,  to  be 
sure,  on  seeing  him  bound,  grew  indignant,  ran  up, 
and  set  him  free.  Another  in  reply  to  a  question: 
**  What  is  the  emperor  doing?  "  had  to  answer:  ''  He 
is  in  labor  pains, ' '  for  Nero  was  then  acting  the  part  of 
Canace.  Not  one  of  them  conducted  himself  in  a  way 
at  all  worthy  of  a  Roman.  Instead,  because  so  much 
money  fell  to  their  share,  they  offered  prayers  that  he 
might  give  many  such  performances  and  they  in  this 
way  get  still  more. 
_ii__  And  if  things  had  merely  gone  on  like  this,  the  af- 
fair, while  being  a  source  of  shame  and  of  ridicule  alike, 
would  still  have  been  deemed  free  from  danger.  But 
as  a  fact  he  devastated  the  whole  of  Greece  precisely 

66 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

as  if  lie  had  been  despatched  to  some  war  and  with-  ^-  d.  67  ( ?) 
out  regard  to  the  fact  that  he  had  declared  the  country 
free,  also  slaying  great  numbers  [of  men,  women  and 
children.  At  first  he  commanded  the  children  and  . 
freedmen  of  those  who  were  executed  to  leave  him 
half  their  property  at  their  death,  and  allowed  the  orig- 
inal victims  to  make  wills  in  order  to  make  it  seem  less 
likely  that  he  had  killed  them  for  their  money ;  and  he 
invariably  took  all  that  was  bequeathed  to  him,  if  not 
more.  In  case  any  one  left  to  him  or  to  Tigillinus  less 
than  they  were  expecting,  the  wills  were  of  no  avail. — 
Later  he  deprived  persons  of  their  entire  property  and 
banished  all  their  children  at  once  by  one  decree.  Not 
even  this  satisfied  him,  but  he  destroyed  not  a  few  of 
the  exiles.]  For  no  one  could  begin  to  enumerate  all 
the  confiscated  possessions  of  men  allowed  to  live  and 
all  the  votive  offerings  that  he  stole  from  the  very 
temples  in  Rome.  [The  despatch-bearers  hurried 
hither  and  thither  with  no  piece  of  news  other  than 
*  *  kill  this  man !  "  or  that  that  man  was  dead.  No 
private  messages,  only  state  documents,  were  deliv- 
ered ;  for  Nero  had  taken  many  of  the  foremost  men  to 
Greece  under  pretence  of  needing  some  assistance 
from  them  merely  in  order  that  they  might  perish 
there.  The  whole  population  of  Rome  and  Italy  he  —12  — 
surrendered  like  captives  to  a  certain  Helius,  a  Caesa- 
rian. The  latter  had  been  given  absolutely  complete 
authority,  so  that  he  might  confiscate,  banish,  and  put 
to  death  (even  before  notifying  Nero)  ordinary  per- 
sons, knights,  and  senators  alike. 

67 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  67  ( ?)  Thus  the  Eoman  domain  was  at  that  time  a  slave  to 
two  emperors  at  once, —  Nero  and  Helius;  and  I  do 
not  feel  able  to  say  which  was  the  worse.  In  most  re- 
spects they  behaved  entirely  alike,  and  the  one  point 
of  difference  was  that  the  descendant  of  Augustus  was 
emulating  zither-players,  whereas  the  freedman  of 
Claudius  was  emulating  Caesars.  I  consider  the  acts 
of  Tigillinus  as  a  part  of  Nero 's  career  because  he  was 
constantly  with  him:  but  Polyclitus  and  Calvia  Cris- 
pinilla  by  themselves  plundered,  sacked,  despoiled  all 
the  places  they  could  get  at.  The  former  was  associ- 
ated with  Helius  at  Eome,  and  the  latter  with  Sabina, 
born  Sporus.  Calvia  had  been  entrusted  with  the  care 
of  the  boy  and  with  the  oversight  of  the  wardrobe, 
though  a  woman  and  of  high  rank;  and  she  saw  to  it 
that  all  were  stripped  of  their  possessions. 
—  13—  Now  Nero  called  Sporus  Sabina  not  merely  on  ac- 
count of  the  fact  that  by  reason  of  resemblance  to  her 
he  had  been  made  a  eunuch,  but  because  the  boy  like 
the  mistress  had  been  solemnly  contracted  to  him  in 
Greece,  with  Tigillinus  to  give  the  bride  away,  as  the 
law  ordained.  All  the  Greeks  held  a  festal  celebration 
of  their  marriage,  uttering  all  the  customary  good 
wishes  (as  they  could  not  well  help)  even  to  the  extent 
of  praying  that  legitimate  children  might  be  born  to 
them.  After  that  Nero  took  to  himself  two  bedfellows, 
Pythagoras  to  treat  as  a  man  and  Sporus  as  a  woman. 
The  latter,  in  addition  to  other  forms  of  address,  was 
termed  lady,  queen,  and  mistress. 

Yet  why  should  one  wonder  at  this,  seeing  that  this 

68 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

monarch  would  fasten  naked  boys  and  girls  to  poles,  a.  D.  67(?) 
and  then  putting  on  the  hide  of  a  wild  beast  would  ap- 
proach them  and  satisfy  his  brutal  lust  under  the  ap- 
pearance of  devouring  parts  of  their  bodies'?     Such 
were  the  indecencies  of  Nero.. 

When  he  received  the  senators  he  wore  a  short 
flowered  tunic  with  muslin  collar,  for  he  had  already 
begun  to  transgress  precedent  in  wearing  ungirt  tunics 
in  public.  It  is  stated  also  that  knights  belonging  to 
the  army  used  in  his  reign  for  the  first  time  saddle- 
cloths during  their  public  review. 

At  the  Olympic  games  he  fell  from  the  chariot  he  —14  — 
was  driving  and  came  very  near  being  crushed  to 
death :  yet  he  was  crowned  victor.  In  acknowledgment 
of  this  favor  he  gave  to  the  Hellanodikai  the  twenty- 
five  myriads  which  Galba  later  demanded  back  from 
them.  [And  to  the  Pythia  he  gave  ten  myriads  for 
giving  some  responses  to  suit  him:  this  money  Galba 
recovered.]  Again,  whether  from  vexation  at  Apollo 
for  making  some  unpleasant  predictions  to  him  or  be- 
cause he  was  merely  crazy,  he  took  away  from  the  god 
the  territory  of  Cirrha  and  gave  it  to  the  soldiers.  In 
fact,  he  abolished  the  oracle,  slaying  men  and  throwing 
them  into  the  rock  fissure  from  which  the  divine  af- 
flatus  arose.  He  contended  in  every  single  city  that 
boasted  any  contest,  and  in  all  cases  requiring  the  ser- 
vices of  a  herald  he  employed  for  that  purpose  Cluvius 
Rufus,  an  ex-consul.  Athens  and  the  Lacedaemonians 
were  exceptions  to  this  rule,  being  the,only  places  that 
he  did  not  visit  at  all.    He  avoided  the  second  because 

69 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  67  ( ?)  of  the  laws  of  Lycurgus,  which  stood  in  the  way  of  his 
designs,  and  the  former  because  of  the  story  about  the 
Furies. —  The  proclamation  ran :  ' '  Nero  Caesar  wins 
this  contest  and  crowns  the  Eoman  people  and  his 
world."  Possessing  according  to  his  own  statement 
a  world,  he  went  on  singing  and  playing,  making  proc- 
lamations, and  acting  tragedies. 
—  15—  His  hatred  for  the  senate  was  so  fierce  that  be  took 
particular  pleasure  in  Vatinius,  who  kept  always  say- 
ing to  him :  *  *  I  hate  you,  Caesar,  for  being  of  sena- 
torial rank." — I  have  used  the  exact  expression  that 
he  uttered. —  Both  the  senators  and  all  others  were 
constantly  subjected  to  the  closest  scrutiny  in  their 
entrances,  their  exits,  their  attitudes,  their  gestures, 
their  outcries.  The  men  that  stuck  constantly  by  Nero, 
listened  attentively,  made  their  applause  distinct,  were 
commended  and  honored :  the  rest  were  both  degraded 
and  punished,  so  that  some,  when  they  could  endure  it 
DO  longer  (for  they  were  frequently  expected  to  be  on 
the  qui  vive  from  early  morning  until  evening),  would 
feign  to  swoon  and  would  be  carried  out  of  the  theatres 
as  if  dead. 
— 16  —  As  an  incidental  labor  connected  with  his  sojourn  in 
Greece  he  conceived  a  desire  to  dig  a  canal  across  the 
isthmus  of  the  Peloponnesus,  and  he  did  begin  the 
task.  Men  shrank  from  it,  however,  because,  when  the 
first  workers  touched  the  earth,  blood  spouted  from  it, 
groans  and  bellowings  were  heard,  and  many  phan- 
toms appeared.  Nero  himself  thereupon  grasped  a 
mattock  and  by  throwing  up  some  of  the  soil  fairly 

70 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

compelled  the  rest  to  imitate  him.    For  this  work  he  a.  d.  67  ( ?) 

sent  for  a  large  number  of  men  from  other  nations  as 

well. 

For  this  and  other  purposes  he  needed  great  sums  of  — 17  — 
money ;  and  as  he  was  a  promoter  of  great  enterprises 
and  a  liberal  giver  and  at  the  same  time  feared  an  at- 
tack from  the  persons  of  most  influence  while  he  was 
thus  engaged,  he  destroyed  many  excellent  men.  Of 
most  of  these  I  shall  omit  any  mention,  merely  saying 
that  the  stock  complaint  under  which  all  of  them  were 
brought  before  him  was  uprightness,  wealth,  and 
family:  all  of  them  either  killed  themselves  or  were 
slaughtered  by  others.  I  shall  pause  to  consider  only 
Corbulo  and  (of  the  Sulpicii  Scribonii)  Eufus  and 
Proculus.  These  two  deserve  attention  because  they 
were  in  a  way  brothers  and  contemporaries,  never  do- 
ing anything  separately  but  united  in  purpose  and  in 
property  as  they  were  in  family :  they  had  for  a  long 
time  administered  the  affairs  of  the  Germanics  and 
had  come  to  Greece  at  the  summons  of  Nero,  who  af- 
fected to  want  something  from  them.  A  complaint  of 
the  kind  which  that  period  so  prodigally  afforded  was 
lodged  against  them.  They  could  obtain  no  hearing  on 
the  matter  nor  even  get  within  sight  of  Nero ;  and  as 
this  caused  them  to  be  slighted  by  all  persons  without 
exception,  they  began  to  long  for  death  and  so  met 
their  end  by  slitting  open  their  veins. —  And  I  notice 
Corbulo,  because  the  emperor,  after  giving  him  also  a 
most  courteous  summons  and  invariably  calling  him 
(among  other  names)  *'  father  "  and  '*  benefactor," 
then,  as  this  general  approached  Cenchrea,  commanded 

71 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  67  ( ?)  that  he  be  slain  before  he  had  even  entered  his  presence. 
Some  explain  this  by  saj'^ing  that  Nero  was  about  to 
sing  with  zither  accompaniment  and  could  not  endure 
the  idea  of  being  seen  by  Corbulo  while  he  wore  the 
long  ungirded  tunic.  The  condemned  man,  as  soon  as 
he  understood  the  import  of  the  order,  seized  a  sword, 
and  dealing  himself  a  lusty  blow  exclaimed:  "  Your 
due!  "  Now  for  the  first  time  in  his  career  was  he 
ready  to  believe  that  he  had  done  ill  both  in  sparing  the 
zither-player  and  in  going  to  him  unarmed. 
— 18  —  This  is  the  substance  of  what  took  place  in  Greece. 
Does  it  add  much  to  mention  that  Nero  ordered  Paris 
the  dancer  killed  because  he  wished  to  learn  dancing 
from  him  and  was  disappointed?  Or  that  he  banished 
CaBcina  Tuscus,  governor  of  Egypt,  for  bathing  in  the 
tub  that  had  been  specially  constructed  for  his  coming 
visit  to  Alexandria? 

In  Rome  about  this  same  time  Helius  committed 
many  acts  of  outrage.  One  of  these  was  his  killing  of 
a  distinguished  man,  Sulpicius  Camerinus,  together 
with  his  son;  the  complaint  against  them  was  that 
whereas  they  were  called  Pythici  after  some  of  their 
ancestors  they  would  not  abandon  possession  of  this 
name,  thus  blaspheming  Nero's  Pythian  victories  by 
the  use  of  a  similar  title. — And  when  the  Augustans 
offered  to  build  a  shrine  to  the  emperor  worth  a  thou- 
sand librae,  the  whole  equestrian  order  was  compelled 
to  help  defray  the  expense  they  had  undertaken. —  As 
for  the  doings  of  the  senate,  it  would  be  a  task  to  de^ 
scribe  them  all  in  detail.  For  so  many  sacrifices  and 
days  of  thanksgiving  were  announced  that  the  whole 
year  would  not  hold  them  all. 

72 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Helius  having  for  some  time  sent  Nero  repeated    — 19  — 

.  .  ^    .  A.  D.  67(?) 

messages  urging  him  to  return  as  quickly  as  possible, 
when  he  found  that  no  attention  was  paid  to  them, 
went  himself  to  Greece  on  the  seventh  day  and  fright- 
ened him  by  saying  that  a  great  conspiracy  against  him 
was  on  foot  in  Eome.  This  news  made  him  embark  at 
double  quick  rate.  There  was  some  hope  of  his  perish- 
ing in  a  storm  and  many  rejoiced,  but  to  no  purpose : 
he  came  safely  to  land.  And  cause  for  destroying  some 
few  persons  was  found  in  the  very  fact  that  they  had 
prayed  and  hoped  that  he  might  perish.  So,  when  he  —  20  — 
marched  into  Eome,  a  portion  of  the  wall  was  torn  (cm.  821) 
down  and  a  section  of  the  gates  broken  in,  because 
some  asserted  that  each  of  these  ceremonies  was  cus- 
tomary upon  the  return  of  garlanded  victors  from  the 
games.  First  entered  men  wearing  the  garlands  which 
had  been  won,  and  after  them  others  with  boards 
borne  aloft  on  spears,  upon  which  were  inscribed  the 
name  of  the  set  of  games,  the  kind  of  contest,  and  a 
statement  that  ''  Nero  Caesar  first  of  all  the  Romans 
from  the  beginning  of  the  world  has  conquered  in  it.'* 
Next  came  the  victor  himself  on  a  triumphal  car  in 
which  Augustus  once  had  celebrated  his  many  victo- 
ries :  he  wore  a  vesture  of  purple  sprinkled  with  gold 
and  a  garland  of  wild  olive;  he  held  in  his  hand  the 
Pythian  laurel.  By  his  side  in  the  vehicle  sat  Diodorus 
the  citharoedist.  After  passing  in  this  manner  through 
the  hippodrome  and  through  the  Forum  in  company 
with  the  soldiers  and  the  knights  and  the  senate  he  as- 
cended the  Capitol  and  proceeded  thence  to  the  palace. 

73 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  68    The  city  was  all  decked  with  garlands,  was  ablaze  with 

(c.  u.   821)     ,  . 

lights  and  smoky  with  incense,  and  the  whole  popula- 
tion,—  the  senators  themselves  most  of  all, —  kept 
shouting  aloud :  '  *  Vah,  Olympian  Victor !  Vah, 
Pythian  Victor!  Augustus!  Augustus!  Hail  to  Nero 
the  Hercules,  hail  to  Nero  the  Apollo ! !  The  one  Na- 
tional Victor,  the  only  one  from  the  beginning  of  time ! 
Augustus!  Augustus!  0,  Divine  Voice!  Blessed  are 
they  that  hear  thee !  " 

—  Why  should  I  employ  circumlocutions  instead  of 
letting  you  see  their  very  words'?  The  actual  expres- 
sions used  do  not  disgrace  my  history:  no,  the  con- 
cealment of  none  of  them  rather  lends  it  distinction. 
—21—  When  he  had  finished  these  ceremonies,  he  an- 
nounced a  series  of  horse-races,  and  transferring  to  the 
hippodrome  these  crowns  and  all  the  rest  that  he  had 
secured  by  victories  in  chariot  racing,  he  put  them 
about  the  Egyptian  obelisk.  The  number  of  them  was 
cne  thousand  eight  hundred  and  eight.  After  doing 
this  he  appeared  as  charioteer. —  A  certain  Larcius,  a 
Lydian,  approached  him  with  an  offer  of  twenty-five 
myriads  if  he  would  play  and  sing  for  them.  Nero 
would  not  take  the  money,  disdaining  to  do  anything 
for  pay;  and  so  Tigillinus  collected  it,  as  the  price  of 
not  putting  Larcius  to  death.  However,  the  emperor 
did  appear  on  the  stage  with  an  accompanied  song  and 
he  also  gave  a  tragedy.  In  the  equestrian  contests  he 
was  seldom  absent,  and  sometimes  he  would  volunta- 
rily let  himself  be  defeated  in  order  to  make  it  more 
credible  that  he  really  won  at  other  times. 

Dio  62nd  Book :     "  And  he  inflicted  uncounted  woes  on  many  cities." 

74 


k 


{BOOK  63,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

TMs  was  the  kind  of  life  Nero  led,  this  was  the  way    _  22  — 
he  ruled.    I  shall  narrate  also  how  he  was  put  down  ,  ^-  ^-  ^^, , 
and  driven  from  his  throne. 

While  Nero  was  still  in  Greece,  the  Jews  revolted  openly  and  he  sent 
Vespasian  against  them.  The  inhabitants  of  Britain  and  of  Gaul,  like- 
wise, oppressed  by  the  taxes,  experienced  an  even  keener  distress,  which 
added  fuel  to  the  already  kindled  fire  of  their  indignation. 

—  There  was  a  Ganl  named  Gains  Julius  Vindex 
'[an  Aquitanian] ,  descended  from  the  native  royal  race 
and  on  his  father's  side  entitled  to  rank  as  a  Eoman 
senator.  He  was  strong  of  body,  had  an  intelligent 
mind,  was  skilled  in  warfare  and  was  full  of  daring 
for  every  enterprise.  [He  was  to  the  greatest  degree 
a  lover  of  freedom  and  was  ambitious ;  and  he  stood  at 
the  head  of  the  Gauls.]  Now  this  Vindex  made  an  as- 
sembly of  the  Gauls,  who  had  suffered  much  during  the 
numerous  forced  levies  of  money,  and  were  still  suf- 
fering at  Nero's  hands.  And  ascending  a  tribunal 
he  delivered  a  long  and  detailed  speech  against  Nero, 
saying  that  they  ought  to  revolt  from  the  emperor  and 
join  him  in  an  attack  [upon  him], — ''  because,"  said 
he,  *  *  he  has  despoiled  the  whole  Roman  world,  because 
he  has  destroyed  all  the  flower  of  their  senate,  because 
he  debauched  and  likewise  killed  his  mother,  and  does 
not  preserve  even  the  semblance  of  sovereignty.  Mur- 
ders, seizures  and  outrages  have  often  been  committed 
and  by  many  other  persons:  but  how  may  one  find 

75 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

i^'  ^"oo^,  ^  words  to  describe  the  remainder  of  his  conduct  as  it 
deserves?  I  have  seen,  my  friends  and  allies, —  be- 
lieve me,—  I  have  seen  that  man  (if  he  is  a  man,  who 
married  Sporus  and  was  given  in  marriage  to  Pythag- 
oras) in.  the  arena  of  the  theatre  and  in  the  orchestra, 
sometimes  with  the  zither,  the  loose  tunic,  the  cothur- 
nus,* sometimes  with  wooden  shoes^  and  mask.  I  have 
often  heard  him  sing,  I  have  heard  him  make  proclama- 
tions, I  have  heard  him  perform  tragedy.  I  have  seen 
him  in  chains,  I  have  seen  him  dragged  about,  preg- 
nant, bearing  children,  going  through  all  the  situations 
of  mythology,  by  speech,  by  being  addressed,  by  being 
acted  upon,  by  acting.  Who,  then,  will  call  such  a  per- 
son Caesar  and  emperor  and  Augustus  1  Let  no  one  for 
any  consideration  so  abuse  those  sacred  titles.  They 
were  held  by  Augustus  and  by;  Claudius.  This  fellow 
might  most  properly  be  termed  Thyestes  and  CEdipus, 
Alcmeon  and  Orestes.  These  are  the  persons  he  rep- 
resents on  the  stage  and  it  is  these  titles  that  he  has 
assumed  rather  than  the  others.  Therefore  now  at 
length  rise  against  him:  come  to  the  succor  of  your- 
selves and  of  the  Romans ;  liberate  the  entire  world !  ' ' 
_  23  _  Such  words  falling  from  the  lips  of  Vindex  met  with 
entire  approval  from  all.  Vindex  was  not  working  to 
get  the  imperial  office  for  himself  but  chose  Servius 
Sulpicius  Galba  for  that  position:   this  man  was  dis- 

1  The  two  kinds  of  footwear  mentioned  here  appear  in  the  Greek  as 
x6dopvo<i  and  ifi/Sdrrj^  respectively.  These  words  are  often  synonymous, 
and  both  may  refer,  as  a  rule,  to  high  boots.  In  tlie  present  passage, 
however,  some  kind  of  contrast  is  evidently  intended,  and  the  most 
acceptable  solution  of  the  question  is  that  given  by  Sturz,  in  his  edition, 
who  says  that  the  xddopi/o^  seems  to  have  been  used  by  Nero  only  in 
singing,  whereas  he  wore  the    e/x/Sanjy  (as  also  the  mask)  while  acting. 

76 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

tinguished  for  his  upright  behavior  and  knowledge  of    ^-  ^-  |8 
war,  was  governor  of  Spain,  and  had  a  not  inconsider- 
able force.    He  was  also  nominated  by  the  soldiers  as 
emperor. 

Euf us,  governor  of  Germany,  set  out  to  make  war  on  —  24  — 
Vindex ;  but  when  he  reached  Vesontio  he  sat  down  to 
besiege  the  city,  for  the  alleged  reason  that  it  had  not 
received  him.  Vindex  came  against  him  to  the  aid  of 
the  city  and  encamped  not  far  off.  They  then  sent 
messages  back  and  forth  to  each  other  and  finally  held 
a  conference  together  at  which  no  one  else  was  present 
and  made  a  mutual  agreement,—  against  Nero,  as  it 
was  thought.  After  this  Vindex  set  his  army  in  motion 
for  the  apparent  purpose  of  occupying  the  town :  and 
the  soldiers  of  Rufus,  becoming  aware  of  their  ap- 
proach, and  thinking  the  force  was  marching  straight 
y gainst  them,  set  out  without  being  ordered  to  oppose 
their  progress.  They  fell  upon  the  advancing  troop 
while  the  men  were  off  their  guard  and  in  disarray, 
and  so  cut  down  great  numbers  of  them.  Vindex  see- 
ing this  was  afflicted  with  so  great  grief  that  he  slew 

himself.  For  he  felt,  besides,  at  odds  with  Heaven  itself,  in  that 
he  had  not  been  able  to  attain  his  goal  in  an  undertaking  of  so  great 
magnitude,  involving  the  overthrow  of  Nero  and  the  liberation  of  the 
Romans. 

This  is  the  truth  of  the  matter.  Many  afterwards 
inflicted  wounds  on  his  body,  and  so  gave  currency  to 
the  erroneous  supposition  that  they  had  themselves 
killed  him. 

Rufus  mourned  deeply  his  demise,  but  refused  to    —-25  — 
accept  the  office  of  emperor,  although  his  soldiers  fre^- 

77 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

,  ^"  ^'  £^,  X  quently  urged  it  upon  him  and  he  might  easily  have 

(a.  tt.   821)    -^  -'         <^  *■  <=> 

obtained  it.,  He  was  an  energetic  man  and  had  a  large, 
wide-awake  body  of  troops.  His  soldiers  tore  down 
and  shattered  the  image  of  Nero  and  called  their  gen- 
eral CaBsar  and  Augustus.  When  he  would  not  heed 
them,  one  of  the  soldiers  thereupon  quickly  inscribed 
these  words  on  one  of  his  standards.  He  erased  the 
terms,  however,  and  after  a  great  deal  of  trouble 
brought  the  men  to  order  and  persuaded  them  to  sub- 
mit the  question^  to  the  senate  and  the  people.  It  is 
hard  to  say  whether  this  was  merely  because  he  did  not 
deem  it  right  for  the  soldiers  to  bestow  the  supreme 
authority  upon  any  one  (for  he  declared  this  to  be  the 
prerogative  of  the  senate  and  the  people),  or  because 
he  was  entirely  highminded  and  felt  no  personal  desire 
for  the  imperial  power,  to  secure  which  others  were 
willing  to  do  everything. 

[Nero  was  informed  of  the  Vindex  episode  as  he  was 
in  Naples  viewing  the  gymnastic  contest  just  after 
luncheon.  He  was  naturally  far  from  sorry,  and  leap- 
ing from  his  seat  vied  in  prowess  with  some  athlete. 
He  did  not  hurry  back  to  Rome  but  merely  sent  a  letter 
to  the  senate,  in  which  he  asked  them  to  regard 
leniently  his  nou'-arrival,  because  he  had  a  sore  throat, 
implying  that  when  he  did  come  he  wanted  to  sing  to 
them.  And  he  continued  to  devote  the  same  care  and 
attention  to  his  voice,  to  his  songs,  and  to  the  zither 
tunes,  not  only  just  then  but  also  subsequently :  so  he 
would  not  try  a  tone  of  his  intended  program.    If  he 

1    rd  irpdyfiara  supplied  by  Polak. 

78 


—  26  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

was  at  any  time  compelled  by  circumstances  to  make  ,^-  ^-  ^^ 

J  ^  ^  -^  ^  {a.   u.   821) 

some  exclamation,  yet  somebody,  reminding  him  that 
he  was  to  appear  as  citharcedist,  would  straightway 
check  and  control  him. 

It  is  stated  that  Nero  having  offered  by  proclama-  (—  23  — ) 
tion  two  hundred  and  fifty  myriads  to  the  person  who 
should  kill  Vindex,  the  latter  when  he  heard  of  it 
remarked :  * '  The  person  who  kills  Nero  and  brings  his 
head  to  me  may  take  mine  in  return."  That  was  the 
sort  of  man  Vindex  was. 

In  general  he  still  behaved  in  his  accustomed  manner  —  26  — 
and  he  was  pleased  with  the  news  brought  him  because 
he  had  been  expecting  in  any  event  to  overcome  Vindex 
and  because  he  thought  he  had  now  secured  a  justifiable 
ground  for  money-getting  and  murders.  He  enjoyed 
the  same  degree  of  luxury;  and  upon  the  completion 
and  adornment  of  the  heroiim  of  Sabina  he  gave  it  a 
brilliant  dedication,  taking  care  to  have  inscribed  upon 
it:  **  The  Women  have  built  This  to  Sabina,  the 
Goddess  Venus."  And  the  writing  told  the  truth: 
for  the  building  had  been  constructed  with  money  of 
which  a  great  part  had  been  stolen  from  women.  Also 
he  had  his  numerous  little  jokes,  of  which  I  shall  men- 
tion only  one,  omitting  the  rest.]  One  night  he  sud- 
denly summoned  in  haste  the  foremost  senators  and 
knights,  apparently  to  make  some  communication  to 
them  regarding  the  political  situation.  When  they 
were  assembled,  he  said :  ' '  I  have  discovered  a  way  by 
which  the  water  organ  "  —  I  must  write  exactly  what 
he  said  — '  *  will  produce  a  greater  and  more  har- 

79 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  68    monious  volume  of  sound."  Such  were  his  iokes  about 

(a.   u.   821) 

this  period.  And  httle  did  he  reck  that  both  sets  of 
doors,  those  of  the  monument  and  those  of  the  bed- 
chamber of  Augustus,  opened  of  their  own  accord  in 
one  and  the  same  night,  or  that  at  Albanum  it  rained 
so  much  blood  that  rivers  of  it  flowed  over  the  land, 
or  that  the  sea  retreated  a  good  distance  from  Egypt 
—  27—  and  covered  a  large  portion  of  Lycia.  But  when  he 
heard  about  Galba's  being  proclaimed  emperor  by  the 
soldiers  and  about  the  desertion  of  Kufus,  he  fell  into 
great  fear:  he  made  preparations  in  person  at  Rome 
and  he  sent  against  the  rebels  Rubrius  Gallus  and  some 
others. 

On  learning  that  Petronius,!  whom  he  had  sent  ahead  against  the 
rebels  with  the  larger  portion  of  the  army,  also  favored  the  cause  of 
Galba,  Nero  reposed  no  further  hope  in  arms. 

Being  abandoned  by  all  without  exception  he  began 
forming  plans  to  kill  the  senators,  burn  the  city  to  the 
ground,  and  sail  to  Alexandria.  He  dropped  this  hint 
in  regard  to  his  future  course :  ' '  Even  though  we  be 
driven  from  our  empire,  yet  this  little  artistic  gift  of 
ours  shall  support  us  there."  To  such  a  pitch  of  folly 
had  he  come  as  to  believe  that  he  could  live  for  a 
moment  as  a  private  citizen  and  would  be  able  to  ap- 
pear as  a  musician. 

He  was  on  the  point  of  putting  those  measures  into  effect  when  the 
senate  first  withdrew  the  guard  that  surrounded  Nero,  then  entered  the 
camp,  and  declared  Nero  an  enemy  but  chose  Galba  in  his  place  as 
emperor. 

But  when  he  perceived  that  he  had  been  deserted 
also  by  his  body-guards  (he  happened  to  be  asleep  in 

1  p.  Petronius  Turpilianus. 

80 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

some  warden),  he  undertook  to  make  his  escape.    Ac-    ^-  ^-  ^^ 

.  .  (a.   u.   821) 

cordingly,  he  assmned  shabby  clothing  and  momited  a 
horse  no  better  than  his  attire.  Closely  veiled  he  rode 
while  it  was  yet  night  towards  an  estate  of  Phao,  a 
Cassarian,  in  company  with  the  owner  of  the  place,  and 
Epaphroditus  and  Sporus.  While  he  was  on  the  —28  — 
way  an  extraordinary  earthquake  occurred,  so  that 
one  might  have  thought  the  whole  world  was  break- 
ing apart  and  all  the  spirits  of  those  murdered  by 
him  were  leaping  nip  to  assail  him.  Being  recog- 
nized, they  say,  in  spite  of  his  disguise  by  some  one 
who  met  him  he  was  saluted  as  emperor;  conse- 
quently he  turned  aside  from  the  road  and  hid  him- 
self in  a  kind  of  reedy  place.  There  he  waited  till 
daylight,  lying  flat  on  the  ground  so  as  to  run  the  least 
risk  of  being  seen.  Every  one  who  passed  he  sus- 
pected had  come  for  him;  he  started  at  every  voice, 
thinking  it  to  be  that  of  some  one  searching  for  him: 
if  a  dog  barked  anywhere  or  a  bird  chirped,  or  a  bush 
or  twig  was  shaken  by  the  breeze,  he  was  thrown  into  a 
violent  tremor.  These  sounds  would  not  let  him  have 
rest,  yet  he  dared  not  speak  a  word  to  any  one  of  those 
that  were  with  him  for  fear  some  one  else  might  hear : 
but  he  wept  and  bewailed  his  fortune,  considering 
among  other  things  how  he  had  once  stood  resplendent 
in  the  midst  of  so  vast  a  retinue  and  was  now  dodging 
from  sight  in  company  with  three  freedmen.  Such 
was  the  drama  that  Fate  had  now  prepared  for  him,  to 
the  end  that  he  should  no  longer  represent  all  other 
matricides  and  beggars,  but  only  himself  at  last.  Now 
VOL.  5—6  81 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

{a^'u.'82i)  ^®  repented  of  his  haughty  insolence,  as  if  he  could 
make  one  of  his  acts  undone.  Such  was  the  tragedy 
in  which  Nero  found  himself  involved,  and  this  verse 
constantly  ran  through  his  mind : 

"  Both  spouse  and  father  bid  me  pitiably  die." 

After  a  long  time,  as  no  one  was  seen  to  be  searching 
for  him,  he  went  over  into  the  cave,  where  in  his  hun- 
ger he  ate  such  bread  as  he  had  never  before  tasted 
and  in  his  thirst  drank  water  such  as  he  had  never 
drunk  before.  This  gave  him  such  a  qualm  that  he 
said:  "  So  this  is  my  famous  frigid  de<;octa.*'^ 
—  29  —  While  he  was  in  this  plight  the  Koman  people  were 
going  wild  with  delight  and  offering  whole  oxen  in 
sacrifice.  Some  carried  small  liberty  caps,  and  they 
voted  to  Galba  the  rights  pertaining  to  the  imperial 
office.  For  Nero  himself  they  instituted  a  search  in  all 
directions  and  for  some  time  were  at  a  loss  to  know 
whither  he  could  have  betaken  himself.  When  they 
finally  learned,  they  sent  horsemen  to  dispose  of  him. 
He,  then,  perceiving  that  they  were  drawing  near,  com- 
manded his  companions  to  kill  him.  As  they  refused 
to  obey,  he  uttered  a  groan  and  said :  * '  I  alone  have 
neither  friend  nor  foe.'*  By  this  time  the  horsemen 
were  close  at  hand,  and  so  he  killed  himself,  uttering 
that  far-famed  sentence:  *'  Jupiter,  what  an  artist 
perishes  in  me!  "•  And  as  he  lingered  in  his  agony 
Epaphroditus  dealt  him  a  finishing  stroke.  He  had 
lived  thirty  years  and  nine  months,  out  of  which  he  had 
ruled  thirteen  years  and  eight  months.     Of  the  de- 

1  Reading    aneipOov    ( Keimar,  Cobet  et  al. ) . 

82 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

scendants  of  -^neas  and  of  Augustus  he  was  the  last,  ,'^'  ^-  ^^ 

°  '   (a.  u.   821) 

as  was  plainly  indicated  by  the  fact  that  the  laurels 
planted  by  Livia  and  the  breed  of  white  birds  perished 
somewhat  before  his  death. 

T[  In  so  great  an  upheaval  as  then  took  place  there  was  no  one  but 
had  some  hopes  of  laying  hands  on  the  sovereign  office. 

^  [Eufus  visited  Galba  and  could  obtain  from  him  no 
important  privileges,  unless  you  reckon  as  such  the 
fact  that  a  man  who  had  frequently  been  hailed  as 
emperor  was  allowed  to  live.  Among  the  rest  of  man- 
kind, however,  he  had  acquired  a  great  name, — 
greater  than  if  he  had  accepted  the  sovereignty,—  for 
refusing  to  receive  it.] 

Galba,  since  Nero  had  been  destroyed  and  the  senate  had  voted  him 
authority  and  Rufus  had  made  advances  to  him,  plucked  up  courage; 
however,  he  did  not  adopt  the  name  "  Caesar  "  until  the  representatives 
of  the  senate  had  paid  him  a  visit.  Nor  had  he,  previous  to  this  time, 
inscribed  the  name  "  emperor  "  in  any  document. 


83 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

64 


85 


Omens  announcing  Galba's  sovereignty:  his  avarice:  the  in- 
solence of  freedmen,  of  Nymphidius,  of  Capito  (chapters  1,  2). 

His  ferocious  entrance  into  the  city:  punishment  of  the  Ne- 
ronians  (chapter  3). 

About  the  uprising  of  Vitellius  against  Galba  (chapter  4) . 

L.  Piso  Caesar  adopted  by  Galba :  Otho  usurps  the  sovereignty 
(chapter  5). 

Death  of  Galba  and  Fiso  (chapter  6). 

Otho  assumes  the  sovereignty  amid  unfavorable  auspices  and 
flattery  (chapters  7,  8). 

Insolence  of  the  soldiers:  the  Pseudo-Nero  (chapter  9). 

Battles  between  Otho  and  Vitellius  at  Cremona  (chapters  10, 

11). 

Otho's  speech  to  his  soldiers  (chapters  12,  13). 

How  Otho  with  his  dagger  took  his  own  life  (chapters  14, 

15). 
The  rapacity  of  Valens  (chapter  16). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

C.  Silius  Italicus,  Galerius  Trachalus  Turpilianus.  (A.  D. 
68  =  a.  u.  821,  from  the  9th  of  June.) 

Galba  Cses.  Aug.  (11),  T.  Vinius.  (A.  D.  69  =  a.  u.  822,  to 
January  15th.) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Thus  was  Galba  declared  emperor  just  as  Tiberius  ^""^"^g 
had  foretold  when  he  said  to  him:  ''  You  also  shall  (»•  «•  82i) 
have  a  little  taste  of  sovereignty."  The  event  was 
likewise  foretold  by  unmistakably  omens.  He  beheld 
in  visions  the  Goddess  of  Fortune  telling  him  that  she 
had  now  stuck  by  him  for  a  long  time  yet  no  one  ap- 
peared ready  to  take  her  into  his  house;  and  if  she 
should  be  barred  out  much  longer  she  should  take  up 
her  abode  with  some  one  else.  During  those  very  days 
also  boats  full  of  weapons  and  under  the  guidance  of 
no  human  being  came  to  anchor  off  the  coast  of  Spain. 
And  a  mule  brought  forth  young,  an  occurrence  which 
had  been  previously  interpreted  as  destined  to  portend 
the  possession  of  authority  by  him.  Again,  a  boy  that 
was  bringing  him  incense  in  the  course  of  a  sacrifice 
suddenly  had  his  hair  turn  gray ;  whereupon  the  seers 
declared  that  dominion  over  the  younger  generation 
should  be  given  to  his  old  age. 

These,  then,  were  the  signs  given  beforehand  that  «-2  — 
had  a  bearing  on  his  sovereignty.  Personally  his  con- 
duct was  in  most  ways  moderate  and  he  avoided  giving 
offence  since  he  bore  in  mind  that  he  had  not  taken  the 
emperor's  seat  but  it  had  been  given  him; — indeed,  he 
said  so  frequently :— unfortunately,  he  collected  money 
greedily  since  his  wants  were  numerous,  though  he 
spent  comparatively  little  after  all,  bestowing  upon 
some  persons  not  even  denarii  but  merely  asses.  His 
freedmen,  however,  committed  a  great  number  of 
wrongs,  the  responsibility  for  which  was  laid  upon 
him.    Ordinary  individuals  need  only  keep  themselves 

87 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  68    from  crime,  but  those  who  hold  sovereign  power  must 

(a.   u.   821)  '  °     ^ 

see  to  it  that  no  dependent  of  theirs  practices  villany 
either.  For  it  makes  little  difference  to  the  ones  who 
suffer  wrong  at  whose  hands  they  happen  to  be  ill 
treated.  Consequently,  even  though  Galba  abstained 
from  inflicting  injury,  yet  he  was  ill  spoken  of  because 
he  allowed  these  others  to  commit  crimes,  or  at  least 
was  ignorant  of  what  was  taking  place.  Nymphidius 
and  Capito,  in  particular,  were  allowed  by  him  to  run 
riot.  For  instance,  Capito,  when  one  day  some  one 
appealed  a  case  from  his  jurisdiction,  changed  his  seat 
hastily  to  a  high  chair  near  by  and  then  cried  out: 
**  Now  plead  your  case  before  Caesar!  "  He  went 
through  the  form  of  deciding  it  and  had  the  man  put  to 
death.  Galba  felt  obliged  to  proceed  against  them  for 
this. 
—  3—  As  he  drew  near  the  City,  the  guards  of  Nero  met 
him  and  asked  that  their  organization  be  preserved  in- 
tact. At  first  he  was  for  postponing  his  decision  and 
averred  that  he  wanted  to  think  the  matter  over. 
Since,  however,  they  would  not  obey  but  kept  up  a 
clamor,  the  army  submitted  to  them.  As  a  consequence 
about  seven  thousand  of  his  soldiers  lost  their  lives  and 
the  guardsmen  were  decimated.  This  shows  that  even 
if  Galba  was  bowed  down  with  age  and  disease,  yet  his 
spirit  was  keen  and  he  did  not  believe  in  an  emperor's 
being  compelled  to  do  anything  unwillingly.  A  fur- 
ther proof  is  that  when  the  Pretorians  asked  him  for 
the  money  which  Nymphidius  had  promised  them,  he 

88 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

would  not  give  it,  but  replied :  *  *  I  am  accustomed  to    ^-  i>-  68 

*=  '  ^  (a.   u.   821) 

levy  soldiers,  not  to  buy  tnem."  And  when  the  popu- 
lace brought  urgent  pressure  to  bear  on  him  to  kill 
Tigillinus  and  some  others  who  had  before  been 
wantonly  insolent,  he  would  not  yield,  though  he  would 
probably  have  disposed  of  them  had  not  their  enemies 
made  this  demand.  Helius,  however,  as  well  as  Nar- 
cissus, Patrobius,  Lucusta  the  poison  merchant,  and 
some  others  who  had  been  active  in  Nero's  day,  he 
ordered  to  be  carried  in  chains  all  over  the  city  and 
afterwards  to  receive  punishment.  The  slaves,  likewise,  who 

had  been  guilty  of  any  act  or  speech  detrimental  to  their  masters  were 
handed  over  to  the  latter  for  punishment. 

U  Some  disdained  receiving  their  own  slaves,  wishing  to  be  rid  of 
rascally  slaves. 

Galba  demanded  the  return  of  all  moneys  and  objects  of  value  which 
any  persons  had  received  from  Nero.  However,  if  anybody  had  been 
exiled  by  the  latter  on  the  charge  of  impiety  towards  the  emperor,  he 
restored  him  to  citizenship;  and  he  also  transferred  to  the  tomb  of 
Augustus  the  bones  of  members  of  the  imperial  family  who  had  been 
murdered,  and  he  set  up  their  images  anew. 

For  this  he  was  praised.  On  the  other  hand  he  was 
the  victim  of  uproarious  laughter  for  wearing  a  sword 
whenever  he  walked  on  the  street,  since  he  was  so  old 
and  weak  of  sinew. 

I  shall  relate  also  the  circumstances  of  his  death.     --4— 

A.  D.  69 

The  soldiers  in  Germany  under  control  of  Eufus  be-  (a.  «.  822) 
came  more  and  more  excited  because  they  could  not 
obtain  any  favors  from  Galba;  and,  having  failed  to 
secure  the  object  of  their  desire  through  the  medium 
of  Eufus,  they  sought  to  obtain  it  through  somebody 
else.    This  they  did.    With  Aulus  Vitellius,  governor 

89 


^   DTO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

/  '^'  ^'  oLx  of  Lower  Germany,  at  their  head  they  revolted.    All 

(a.    u.    822) 

that  they  had  in  mind  regarding  him  was  the  nobility 
of  his  birth,  and  they  paid  no  attention  to  the  fact  that 
he  had  been  a  favorite  of  Tiberius  and  was  a  slave  to 
the  licentious  habits  of  his  former  master ;  or  perhaps 
they  thought  that  on  this  very  account  he  would  suit 
their  purpose  all  the  better.  Indeed,  Vitellius  himself 
deemed  himself  of  so  little  account  that  he  made  fun  of 
the  astrologers  and  used  their  prediction  as  evidence 
against  them,  saying :  '  *  Certainly  they  know  nothing 
who  declare  that  I  shall  become  emperor."  Nero  when 
he  heard  it  also  laughed,  and  felt  such  contempt  for  the 
fellow  that  he  did  not  try  to  injure  him. 
—  5—  Galba  on  being  informed  of  his  defection  adopted 
Lucius  Piso,  a  youth  of  good  family,  affable  and  pru- 
dent, and  appointed  him  Caesar.  At  the  same  time 
Marcus  Salvius  Otho,  angry  because  he  had  not  been 
adopted  by  Galba,  brought  about  once  more  a  begin- 
ning of  countless  evils  for  the  Romans.  He  was  al- 
ways held  in  honor  by  Galba,  so  much  so  that  on  the 
day  of  the  latter 's  death  he  was  the  only  one  of  the 
senators  to  attend  him  at  the  sacrifice.  And  to  him 
most  of  all  was  the  catastrophe  due.  For  when  the 
diviner  declared  that  Galba  would  be  the  victim  of  con- 
spiracy and  therefore  urged  him  by  no  means  to  go 
abroad  anywhere,  Otho  heard  it,  and  hastening  down 
immediately  as  if  on  some  other  errand  was  admitted 
within  the  wall  by  some  few  soldiers  who  were  in  the 
conspiracy  with  him.  The  next  step  was  the  winning 
over  or  rather  the  buying  up  of  the  rest,  who  were  dis- 

90 


—  6. 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

pleased  at  Galba,  by  means  of  many  promises.  From  ^'  ^-  ^9 
them  lie  received  the  imperial  office  at  once  and  later 
his  claim  was  acknowledged  by  the  others.  Galba 
on  learning  what  was  taking  place  thought  he  could 
bring  the  men  into  a  better  frame  of  mind  and 
sent  some  emissaries  to  the  camp  for  this  purpose. 
Meanwhile  a  soldier  holding  aloft  a  bare  blade  covered 
with  blood  had  approached  him  and  said :  ' '  Be  of  good 
cheer,  emperor:  I  have  killed  Otho,  and  no  further 
danger  awaits  you. ' '  Galba,  believing  this,  said  to 
him:  "And  who  ordered  you  to  do  that!  "  He  him- 
self started  for  the  Capitol  to  offer  sacrifice.  As  he 
reached  the  middle  of  the  Roman  Forum,  horsemen 
and  footsoldiers  met  him  and  then  and  there  cut  down 
in  the  presence  of  many  senators  and  crowds  of  ple- 
beians the  old  man,  their  consul,  high  priest,  Caesar, 
emperor.  After  abusing  his  body  in  many  ways  they 
cut  off  his  head  and  stuck  it  on  a  pole.—  So  he  was 
struck  by  a  javelin  hurled  into  the  very  chair  in  which 
he  was  being  carried,  was  wounded  at  the  very  moment 
he  was  bending  forward  from  it,  and  only  said: 
**  Why,  what  harm  have  I  done?  "  Sempronius  Den- 
sus,  a  centurion,  defended  him  as  long  as  he  was  able, 
and  finally,  when  he  could  accomplish  nothing,  let  him- 
self be  slain  with  his  sovereign.  This  is  why  I  have 
included  his  name,  for  he  richly  deserves  to  be  men- 
tioned. Piso  also  was  killed  and  numerous  others,  but 
not  in  aiding  the  emperor. 

When  the  soldiers  had  done  this,  they  cut  off  their  heads,  which  they 
then  carried  to  Otho  (who  was  in  the  camp)  and  also  into  the  senate- 
house;  and  the  senators,  though  terror-stricken,  affected  to  be  glad. 

91 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

—  8—         Moreover,  the  senate  voted  him  all  the  privileges 

A.  D.  69  '  X  & 

(a.  u.  822)  pertaining  to  his  office.  He  said  that  he  had  been 
forced  to  do  as  he  did,  had  been  brought  within  the 
walls  against  his  will,  and  had  actually  risked  his  life 
after  that  by  opposing  the  scheme.  He  regularly 
talked  in  a  considerate  manner  and  assumed  a  kindly 
expression  and  attitude ;  he  threw  kisses  on  his  fingers 
to  everybody  and  made  many  promises.  But  the  fact 
did  not  escape  men  that  his  rule  was  sure  to  be  more 
licentious  and  oppressive  than  Nero's.  (Indeed,  he 
had  immediately  applied  to  himself  the  latter 's  name.) 
(_6— )  Galba  had  lived  seventy-two  years  and  twenty-three 
days,  out  of  which  he  ruled  nine  months  and  thirteen 
days.  Piso  perished  after  him,  making  this  atonement 
for  having  been  appointed  Caesar. 

—  7  —         This  was  the  end  that  befell  Galba.    But  retribution 

was  destined  full  soon  enough  to  seek  out  Otho  in  his 
turn,  as  he  at  once  learned.  As  he  was  offering  his 
first  sacrifice,  the  omens  were  seen  to  be  unfavorable, 
so  that  he  repented  of  what  had  been  done  and  said: 
"  What  need  was  there  of  my  playing  on  the  long 
flutes?  "  This  is  a  colloquial  and  proverbial  expres- 
sion that  has  reference  to  those  who  do  anything  out  of 
their  usual  line.  Later  he  was  so  disturbed  in  his  sleep 
at  night  that  he  fell  out  of  the  bed  and  alarmed  the 
guards  who  slept  at  the  door.  They  rushed  in  and 
found  him  lying  on  the  ground.  Yet  once  he  had  en- 
tered upon  the  imperial  office  he  could  not  put  it  off; 
and  he  remained  in  it  and  paid  the  penalty,  in  spite  of 
many  temperate  acts  intended  to  conciliate  people.    It 

92 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

was  not  particularly  his  nature  to  behave  that  way,  but    A.  D.  69 

(u,   u,   822 ) 

since  on  account  of  Vitellius  his  prospects  were  in  a 
somewhat  precarious  state,  he  did  not  wish  to  alienate 
the  bulk  of  the  population. 

Just  at  this  time,  to  be  sure,  he  annulled  the  sen- 
tences against  some  senators  and  granted  various 
slight  favors  to  others.  By  way  of  gaining  the  public 
approval  he  constantly  frequented  the  theatres:  he 
bestowed  citizenship  upon  foreigners  and  made  many 
other  attractive  announcements.  Yet  he  did  not  suc- 
ceed in  winning  the  attachment  of  any  one  save  a  cer- 
tain few,  like  himself.  [For  his  restoration  of  the 
images  of  those  under  accusation  and]  his  life  and 
habits,  his  keeping  Sporus  as  a  companion  and  employ- 
ing the  rest  of  the  Neronians,  alarmed  everybody. 

They  hated  him  most  of  all,  however,  because  he  had 
demonstrated  the  fact  that  the  imperial  office  was  for 
sale  and  had  put  the  city  in  the  power  of  the  boldest 
spirits;  likewise  because  he  held  the  senate  and  the 
people  in  slight  esteem  and  had  impressed  upon  the 
soldiers  also  this  idea, —  that  they  could  kill  or  again 
create  a  CaBsar.  Moreover,  he  had  brought  the  soldiers 
into  such  a  daring  and  lawless  condition  by  his  gifts 
and  his  immoderate  attentions  that  one  day  they  forced 
an  entrance  just  as  they  were  into  the  palace  while  a 
number  of  the  senators  were  dining  there  with  Otho. 
Before  departing  they  rushed  into  the  banquet-room 
itself,  killing  those  that  strove  to  bar  their  progress. 
And  they  would  have  slaughtered  everybody  found 
there  had  not  the  guests  jumped  up  and  hid  themselves 

93 


—  9  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

/^'  ■'^•ooo^  prior  to  their  irruption.  For  this  behavior  the  men 
received  money,  it  being  assumed  that  their  act  was 
due  to  their  liking  for  Otho. 

About  this  time  also  a  man  was  caught  pretending 
to  be  Nero.  His  name  was  unknown  to  Dio.  And  at 
last  he  paid  the  penalty. 
— 10  —  Otho,  not  succeeding  by  frequent  invitations  in  per- 
suading Vitellius  to  come  and  share  the  imperial  office, 
eventually  plunged  into  open  war  against  him.  And 
he  sent  soldiers  whom  he  put  in  charge  of  several  dif- 
ferent leaders;  this  fact  was  largely  responsible  for 
his  reverses. 

U  Valens  was  so  eager  for  money  and  gathered  it  so 
assiduously  from  every  source  that  he  put  to  death  the 
decurion,  who  had  concealed  him  and  had  saved  his  life, 
on  account  of  a  thousand  denarii  which  he  thought  had 
been  purloined  from  his  possessions. 

TI  Otho  declined  battle,  saying  that  he  could  not  see  a 
battle  fought  between  kindred,  just  as  if  he  had  become 
emperor  in  some  legitimate  fashion  and  had  not  killed 
the  consuls  and  the  Caesar*  and  the  emperor*  in  Rome 
itself.  There  fell  in  the  battles  which  took  place  near 
Cremona  four  myriads  of  men  on  both  sides.  Here, 
they  say,  various  omens  appeared  before  the  battle, 
most  noteworthy  being  an  unusual  bird,  such  as  men 
had  never  before  beheld,  that  was  seen  for  a  number 
of  days. 
— 11  —  After  the  forces  of  Otho  had  been  worsted,  a  certain 
horseman  brought  word  of  the  disaster  to  Otho.   When 

1  Piso  and  Galba  are  meant. 

94 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

the  bystanders  refused  to  credit  his  report  —  it  chanced    a.  d.  69 

•^  ^  (a.   «.   822) 

that  there  were  many  gathered  there  —  and  some  set 
to  calling  him  ^'  renegade  "  and  others  *'  enemy,"  he 
exclaimed :  * '  Would  that  this  news  were  false,  Caesar : 
for  most  gladly  would  I  have  died  to  secure  thy  victory. 
As  it  is,  my  demise  is  determined,  that  no  one  may 
think  I  fled  hither  to  secure  my  own  safety.  But  do 
thou  be  assured  that  the  enemy  will  ere  long  arrive, 
and  debate  what  must  be  done."  Having  finished 
these  words,  he  despatched  himself.  This  act  caused  —12  — 
all  to  believe  him,  and  they  were  ready  to  renew 
the  conflict.  Those  present  formed  a  numerous  body 
and  there  were  not  a  few  others  at  hand  from  Pan- 
nonia.  But  the  most  important  consideration,  as 
usual  in  such  cases,  was  that  they  loved  Otho  and 
were  quite  devoted  to  him,  not  in  word  but  in  their 
hearts.  When,  however,  they  besought  him  not  to 
abandon  either  himself  or  them,  he  waited  until  the 
rest,  at  report  of  the  news,  had  come  running  together, 
and  then,  after  some  muttered  words  to  himself,  he 
delivered  to  the  soldiers  a  speech,  from  which  the  fol- 
lowing is  a  brief  excerpt : 

"  Enough,  quite  enough,  has  already  been  done.  I  —13  — 
hate  a  civil  war,  even  though  I  conquer :  and  I  love  all 
Eomans,  even  though  they  do  not  side  with  me.  Let 
Vitellius  be  victor,  since  this  has  pleased  the  gods ;  and 
let  the  lives  of  his  soldiers  also  be  spared,  since  this 
pleases  me.  It  is  far  better  and  more  just  that  one 
should  perish  for  all,  rather  than  many  for  one,  and 
that  I  should  refuse  on  account  of  one  single  man  to 

95 


—  14 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  69  embroil  the  Eoman  people  and  cause  so  great  a  mass 
of  liuman  beings  to  perish.  I  certainly  should  prefer 
to  be  a  Mucius,  a  Decius,  a  Curtius,  a  Eegulus,  rather 
than  a  Marius,  a  Cinna,  or  a  Sulla, —  not  to  mention 
other  names.  Therefore  do  not  force  me  to  become 
one  of  these  men  I  hate,  nor  grudge  me  the  privilege  of 
imitating  one  of  those  whom  I  commend.  Do  you  de- 
part to  meet  the  conqueror  and  do  him  reverence.  As 
for  me,  I  shall  find  means  to  free  myself,  that  all  men 
may  be  taught  by  the  event  that  you  have  chosen  such 
an  emperor  as  has  not  given  you  up  to  save  himself 
but  himself  to  save  you." 

Of  this  nature  were  the  words  of  Otho.  Falling  upon 
the  ears  of  the  soldiers  they  aroused  both  admiration 
of  the  man  and  pity  for  what  might  befall  him:  his 
troops  shed  tears  of  lamentation  and  mourning,  calling 
him  father  and  terming  him  dearer  than  children  and 
parents.  [''  Upon  thee  our  lives  depend,"  they  said, 
*'  and  for  thee  we  will  all  die."]  This  argument  con- 
tinued so  for  most  of  the  day,  Otho  begging  to  be 
allowed  to  die  and  the  soldiers  refusing  to  permit  him 
to  carry  out  his  wish.  Finally,  he  reduced  them  to 
silence  and  said :  ' '  It  can  not  be  that  I  should  show 
myself  inferior  to  this  soldier,  whom  you  have  seen  kill 
himself  for  the  single  reason  that  he  had  borne  news  of 
defeat  to  his  own  emperor.  I  shall  certainly  follow  in 
his  footsteps,  that  I  may  cease  to  see  or  hear  aught  any 
longer.  And  you,  if  you  love  me  in  reality,  let  me  die 
as  I  desire  and  do  not  compel  me  to  live  against  my 
will,  but  take  your  way  to  the  victor  and  gain  his  good 

graces." 

96 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

At  the  close  of  this  speech  he  retired  into  his  apart-    ~~  ^  ~ 

A.  D.  69 

ments  and  after  sending  some  messages  to  his  intimate  (a.  «.  822), 
friends  and  some  to  Vitellius  in  their  behalf  he  burned 
all  the  letters  which  anybody  had  written  to  him  con- 
taining hostile  statements  about  Vitellius,  not  wanting 
them  to  serve  as  damaging  evidence  against  anybody. 
Then  he  called  each  one  of  the  persons  that  were  at 
hand,  greeted  them,  and  gave  them  money.  Meantime 
there  was  a  disturbance  made  by  the  soldiers,  so  that 
he  was  obliged  to  go  out  and  quiet  them,  and  he  did 
not  come  back  until  he  had  sent  them  to  a  place  of 
safety,  some  here,  some  there.  So  then,  when  quiet 
had  been  permanently  restored,  taking  a  short  sword 
he  killed  himself.  The  grief-stricken  soldiery  took  up 
his  body  and  buried  it,  and  some  slew  themselves  upon 
his  grave.  This  was  the  end  that  befell  Otho,  after  he 
had  lived  thirty-seven  years  lacking  eleven  days  and 
had  reigned  ninety  days,  and  it  overshadowed  the  im- 
piety and  wickedness  of  his  active  career.  In  life  the 
basest  of  men  he  died  most  nobly.  He  had  seized  the 
empire  by  the  most  villainous  trick,  but  took  leave  of  it 
most  creditably. 

A  series  of  brawls  among  the  soldiers  immediately  ensued,  and  a 
number  of  them  were  slain  by  one  another;  afterwards  they  reached  an 
agreement  and  set  out  to  meet  the  victorious  party. 


VOL.  5—7  97 


DIO'S 
ROMAN  HISTORY 

65 


99 


Vitellius  is  proclaimed  emperor:  feasts  his  eyes  on  gladiators 
and  slaughters:  drives  astrologers  from  Italy  (chapter  1). 

Vitellius's  excess  in  banquets,  in  his  home,  in  furniture,  in  his 
almost  absurd  magnificence  (chapters  2-5). 

Praiseworthy  points  in  his  character  (chapters  6,  7). 

Portents  of  ill  omen:  the  soldiers  declare  Vespasian  emperor 
(chapter  8). 

Mucianus  is  sent  by  Vespasian  against  Vitellius:  Primus  of 
his  own  accord  takes  the  lead  against  Vitellius  (chapter  9). 

Alienus,  put  in  charge  of  the  war  by  Vitellius,  is  the  author 
of  a  desertion,  but  is  in  turn  seized  by  his  followers,  who  change 
thfeir  minds  (chapter  10). 

The  adherents  of  Vitellius  are  conquered  in  battle  (chapters 
11-14). 

Catastrophe  befalls  the  dwellers  in  Cremona  (chapter  15). 

Wavering  on  the  part  of  Vitellius :  the  Capitol  is  burned  in 
the  course  of  a  siege  by  Sabinus  (chapters  16,  17). 

Disaster  to  the  city  of  Rome,  taken  by  Vespasian's  captains 
(chapters  18,  19). 

How  Vitellius  was  taken  and  perished  (chapters  20,  21). 

How  a  brother  and  son  of  Vitellius  met  their  fate  (chapter 
22). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

(Galba  (II)  and  T.  Vinius  Coss.) : 

A.  D.  69  =  a.  u.  822,  from  January  loth. 

The  following  Consules  Suffecti  took  office: 

On  the  Calends  of  March  —  T.  Virg^nius  Eufus,  Vopiscus 
Pompeius. 

On  the  Calends  of  May  —  Cselius  Sabinus,  T.  Plavius  Sabinus. 

On  the  Calends  of  July  —  T.  Arrius  Antoninus,  P.  Marius 
Celsus  (II). 

On  the  Calends  of  September  =  C.  Fabius  Valens,  A.  Alienus 
Csecinna  (also  Roscius  Regulus,  as  Csecinna  was  condemned  on 
the  last  day  of  October). 

On  the  Calends  of  November  —  Cn.  Csecilius  Simplex,  C. 
Quintius  Atticus. 


(BOOK  64.  BOISSEVAIN.) 

The  population  of  Eome  when  it  heard  of  the  down-     —  i  — 

A.  D.  69 

fall  of  Otho  naturally  transferred  its  allegiance  imme-  («.'«. '822) 
diately.  Otho,  whom  people  previously  praised  and  for 
whose  victory  they  prayed,  they  now  abused  as  an 
enemy,  and  Vitellius,  upon  whom  they  had  been  invok- 
ing curses,  they  praised  and  declared  emperor.  So 
truly  there  is  nothing  constant  in  human  affairs.  Those 
who  flourish  most  and  those  who  are  lowliest  alike 
choose  unstable  standards,  and  construct  their  praises 
and  their  censures,  their  honors  and  their  degradations 
to  conform  to  the  accidents  of  their  situation. 

News  of  the  death  of  Otho  was  brought  to  him  [Vitellius]  while  in 
Gaul.  There  he  was  joined  by  his  wife  and  child,  whom  he  placed  on 
a  platform  and  saluted  as  Germanicus  and  imperator,  though  the  boy 
was  only  six  years  old. 

[Vitellius  witnessed  gladiatorial  combats  at  Lug- 
dunum  and  again  at  Cremona,  as  if  the  crowds  of  men 
who  had  perished  in  the  battles  and  were  even  then 
exposed  unburied  to  the  elements  did  not  sujBfice.  He 
beheld  the  slain  with  his  own  eyes,  for  he  traversed  all 
the  ground  where  they  lay  and  gloated  over  the  spec- 
tacle as  if  he  were  still  in  the  moment  of  victory ;  and 
not  even  after  that  did  he  order  them  to  be  buried.] 
Upon  reaching  Eome  and  adjusting  affairs  to  suit  him, 
he  issued  a  bulletin  banishing  the  astrologers  and  com- 
manding them  by  this  particular  day  (mentioning  a 
given  date)  to  leave  the  whole  country  of  Italy.    They 

101 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  69    by  night  put  up  in  turn  another  document,  in  which 

( a.   u.   822 ) 

they  announced  that  he  should  lose  his  life  by  the  day 
on  which  he  actually  died.  So  accurate  was  their 
previous  knowledge  of  what  should  come  to  pass. 

—  2—         Vitellius  was  fond  of  luxury  and  licentiousness  and 

cared  for  nothing  else  human  or  divine.  He  had  al- 
ways been  the  kind  of  man  that  would  spend  his  time 
in  taverns  and  gaming  houses,  over  dancers  and  char- 
ioteers. Incalculable  were  the  sums  he  spent  on  such 
'pursuits,  and  the  consequence  was  that  he  had  many 
creditors.  Now,  when  he  attained  to  so  great  author- 
ity, his  wantonness  only  increased,  and  his  expendi- 
tures went  on  most  of  the  day  and  night  alike.  He  was 
insatiate  in  filling  himself,  yet  kept  constantly  vomiting 
what  he  ate,  apparently  living  on  the  mere  passage  of 
food.  Yet  that  was  what  enabled  him  to  hold  out ;  for 
his  fellow  banqueters  fared  very  badly.  [He  was  al- 
ways inviting  numbers  of  the  foremost  men  to  his  table 
and  he  was  frequently  entertained  at  their  houses.] 
On  this  point  one  of  them,  Vibius  Crispus,*  was  the 
author  of  a  most  witty  remark.  Having  been  com- 
pelled for  some  days  by  sickness  to  absent  himself  from 
the  convivial  board,  he  said :    ' '  If  I  had  not  fallen  ill, 

—  3—      I  should  certainly  have  died."    The  entire  period  of 

his  reign  consisted  in  nothing  but  carousals  and  revels. 
All  the  most  valuable  food  products  were  brought  to- 
gether from  the  ocean  itself  (not  to  go  farther)  from 
the  earth  and  from  the  Mediterranean,  and  were  pre- 
pared in  so  costly  a  fashion  that  even  now  some  cakes 

1  Q.  Vibius  Crispus. 

102 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  other  dishes  are  named  Vitellian,  after  him.    Why    ^-  ^-  ^9 

'  -^    (o.   u.   822) 

should  one  go  into  the  details  of  these  affairs?  It  is 
admitted  by  quite  everybody  that  during  the  period 
of  his  reign  he  expended  on  dinners  two  hundred  mil- 
lion two  thousand  five  hundred  denarii.  There  came 
very  near  being  a  famine  in  all  costly  articles  of  food, 
yet  it  was  imperative  that  they  should  be  provided. 
Once  he  had  a  dish  made  that  cost  twenty-five  myriads, 
into  which  he  put  a  mixture  of  tongues  and  brains  and 
livers  of  fish  and  certain  kinds  of  birds.  As  it  was  im- 
possible to  make  so  large  a  vessel  of  pottery,  it  was 
made  of  silver  and  remained  extant  for  some  time,  re- 
garded somewhat  in  the  light  of  a  votive  offering,  until 
Hadrian  finally  set  eyes  on  it  and  had  it  melted  down. 

Since  I  have  mentioned  this  fact,  I  will  also  add  —  4— 
another,  namely  that  not  even  Nero's  Golden  House 
would  satisfy  Vitellius.  He  delighted  in  and  com- 
mended the  name  and  the  life  and  all  the  practices  of 
its  former  owner,  yet  he  found  fault  with  the  structure 
itself,  saying  that  it  had  been  badly  built  and  was 
scantily  and  meanly  equipped.  When  he  fell  ill  one 
time  he  looked  about  for  a  room  to  afford  him  an 
abode;  so  little  did  even  Nero's  surroundings  satisfy 
him.  His  wife  Galeria  ridiculed  the  small  amount  of 
decoration  found  in  the  royal  apartments.  This  pair, 
as  they  spent  other  people's  money,  never  stopped  to 
count  the  cost  of  anything ;  but  those  who  invited  them 
to  meals  found  themselves  in  great  trouble  [save  a  few 
whom  he  compensated  for  it].  Yet  the  same  persons 
would  not  regularly  entertain  him  the  entire  day,  but 

103 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^-  -^"o^L  oiie  set  of  men  furnished  breakfast,  another  lunch, 

(a.   u.   822)  '  ' 

another  dinner,  and  still  another  certain  viands  for 
dessert  calculated  to  stimulate  a  jaded  appetite.^  [For 
all  who  were  able  were  eager  to  entertain  him.]  It  is 
said  that  after  the  elapse  of  a  few  days  he  spent  a  hun- 
dred myriads  upon  a  dinner.  [His  birthday  celebra- 
tion lasted  over  two  days  and  numbers  of  beasts  and 
of  men  were  slain.] 

—  6  --  Though  his  life  was  of  this  kind  he  was  not  entirely 

without  good  deeds.  For  example,  he  retained  the 
coinage  minted  under  Nero  and  Galba  and  Otho,  evinc- 
ing no  displeasure  at  their  images ;  and  whatever  gifts 
had  been  bestowed  upon  any  persons  he  held  to  be 
valid  and  deprived  no  one  of  any  such  possession.  He 
did  not  collect  any  sums  still  owing  of  former  public 
contributions,  and  he  confiscated  no  one's  property.  A 
very  few  of  those  who  sided  with  Otho  he  put  to  death 
but  did  not  withhold  even  the  property  of  these  from 
their  relatives.  Upon  the  kinsmen  of  those  previously 
executed  he  bestowed  all  the  funds  that  were  found  in 
the  public  treasury.  He  did  not  obstruct  the  execution 
of  the  wills  of  such  as  had  fought  against  him  and  had 
fallen  in  the  battles.  Furthermore  he  forbade  the  sena- 
tors and  the  knights  to  fight  as  gladiators  or  to  appear 
in  any  spectacle  in  the  orchestra.  And  for  these  meas- 
ures he  was  commended.] 

(_4_)  [The  character  of  Vitellius,  being  such  as  I  have 
described,  did  not  serve  to  promote  temperance  on  the 
part  of  the  soldiers,  but  numerous  instances  of  their 

iThis  little  phrase  is  taken  direct  from  Plato's  Critias,  115  B. 

104 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

wantonness   and  licentiousness  were  everjnsrliere  at    a.  d.  69 

(a.   u.   822) 

hand.] 

IfVitellius  ascended  the  Capitol  and  greeted  his  mother.  She  was  a 
eensible  woman,  and  when  she  first  heard  that  her  son  had  been  given 
the  name  Germanicus,  she  said:  "My  child  was  Vitellius  and  not 
Germanicus." 

Vitellius,  however,  furnished  many  with  material  _5.^ 
for  amusement.  They  could  not  restrain  their  laughter 
when  they  beheld  wearing  a  solemn  face  in  the  public 
processions  a  man  whom  they  knew  to  have  played  the 
strumpet  —  or  saw  mounted  on  a  royal  steed  and  clad 
in  a  purple  riding-habit  him  who  wore,  as  they  were 
well  aware,  the  Blue  costume  and  curried  the  race- 
horses —  or  viewed  ascending  the  Capitol  with  so  great 
a  crowd  of  soldiers  him  whom  previously  no  one  could 
catch  a  glimpse  of  even  in  the  Forum  because  of  his 
throngs  of  creditors  —  or  gazed  at  him  receiving  the 
adoration  of  all,  whom  once  nobody  liked  very  well 
even  to  kiss.  Indeed,  those  who  had  lent  him  anything  . 
had  laid  hold  of  him  when  he  started  out  for  Germany 
and  would  scarcely  release  him  after  he  had  given 
security.  Now,  however,  so  far  from  laughing  at  him 
the  same  men  mourned  and  hid  themselves.  But  h© 
sought  them  out,  telling  them  he  spared  their  lives  as 
an  equivalent  of  the  debt  he  owed,  and  he  demanded 
back  his  contracts. 

He  was  a  constant  attendant  of  the  theatres,  and  this  —  7  — 
won  the  attachment  of  the  populace.  He  ate  with  the 
most  influential  men  on  free  and  easy  terms,  and  this 
gained  their  favor  to  an  even  greater  degree.  His  old 
companions  he  never  failed  to  remember  and  honored 
them  greatly,  not  (like  some  others)   disdaining  to 

105 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  69    appear  to  recognize  any  of  them.    Many  persons  who 

(a.   u,  822) 

have  unexpectedly  attained  to  great  power  feel  hate 
for  those  who  are  acquainted  with  their  former  humble 
state.  [Vitellius,  when  Priscus  opposed  him  in  the 
senate  and  denounced  one  of  the  soldiers,  called  the 
tribunes  to  his  side  as  if  he  had  some  need  of  their 
assistance.  He  did  not  himself  do  Priscus  any  harm 
and  did  not  allow  the  officials  to  hurt  him,  but  merely 
said :  * '  Be  not  indignant.  Conscript  Fathers,  that  we 
two  out  of  your  number  have  had  a  little  dispute  with 
each  other."  This  act  seemed  to  have  been  due  to  a 
kindly  disposition.  The  fact,  however,  that  he  wished 
to  imitate  Nero  and  offered  sacrifices  to  his  Manes, 
and  that  he  spent  so  great  sums  on  dinners,  though  it 
caused  joy  to  some,  made  the  sensible  grieve,  since  they 
were  fully  aware  that  not  all  the  money  in  the  whole 
world  would  be  sufficient  for  him.] 
—  8  -  While  he  was  behaving  in  this  way,  evil  omens  oc- 

curred. A  comet  star  was  seen,  and  the  moon  contrary 
to  precedent  appeared  to  have  had  two  eclipses,  being 
obscured  by  shadows  on  the  fourth  and  on  the  seventh 
day.  Also  people  saw  two  suns  at  once,  one  in  the 
west  weak  and  pale,  and  one  in  the  east  brilliant  and 
powerful.  On  the  Capitol  many  huge  footprints  were 
seen,  presumably  of  some  spirits  that  had  descended 
that  hill.  The  soldiers  who  had  slept  there  the  night 
in  question  said  that  the  temple  of  Jupiter  had  opened 
of  itself  with  great  clangor  and  some  of  the  guards 
were  so  terrified  that  they  expired.  At  the  same  time 
that  this  happened  Vespasian,  engaged  in  warfare  with 

106 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

the  Jews,  [sent  his  son  Titus  to  the  emperor  Galba  to    a.  d.  69 

.  T^  1  n.-  .    .        .         (a.   u.   822) 

give  him  a  message.  But  when  Titus  returned,  having 
learned  on  the  way]  of  the  rebellion  of  Vitellius  and  of 
Otho,  he  deliberated  what  ought  to  be  done.  [For 
Vespasian  was  in  general  not  rashly  inclined  and  he 
hesitated  very  much  about  involving  himself  in  such 
troublous  affairs.] 

But  people  favored  him  greatly :  his  reputation  won 
in  Britain,  his  fame  derived  from  the  war  under  way, 
his  kindheartedness  and  prudence,  all  led  them  to  de- 
sire to  have  him  at  their  head.  Likewise  Mucianus 
urged  him  strongly,  hoping  that  Vespasian  should  get 
the  name  of  emperor  and  that  he  as  a  result  of  the 
other's  good  nature  should  enjoy  an  equal  share  of 
power.  Vespasian's  soldiers  on  ascertaining  all  these 
facts  surrounded  his  tent  and  hailed  him  as  emperor. 
Portents  and  dreams  pointing  him  out  as  sovereign  —  9  — 
long  before  had  also  fallen  to  the  lot  of  Vespasian,  and 
these  will  be  recited  in  the  story  of  his  life.  For  the 
time  being  he  sent  Mucianus  to  Italy  against  Vitellius, 
while  he  himself,  after  taking  a  look  at  affairs  in  Syria 
and  entrusting  to  others  the  conduct  of  the  war  against 
the  Jews,  proceeded  to  Egypt.  There  he  collected 
money,  of  which  of  course  he  needed  a  great  deal,  and 
grain,  which  he  desired  to  send  in  as  large  quantities  as 
possible  to  Rome.  The  soldiers  in  IVIoesia,  hearing 
how  matters  stood  with  him,  would  not  wait  for 
IVTucianus, —  they  had  learned  that  he  was  en  route, — 
and  chose  as  their  general  Antonius  Primus,^  who  had 

1  M.  Antonius  Primus. 

107 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  G9    suffered  sentence  of  exile  in  Nero 's  rei^  but  had  been 

(c.    u.    822)  ° 

restored  by  Galba  and  was  commander  of  the  legion 
in  Pannonia.  This  man  held  supreme  authority,  al- 
though not  chosen  by  the  emperor  nor  by  the  senate. 
So  great  was  the  soldiers'  anger  at  Vitellius  and  their 
zest  for  plunder.  They  were  doing  this  for  no  other 
purpose  except  to  pillage  Italy.  And  their  intention 
was  realized. 
—  10—  Vitellius  when  he  heard  about  it  remained  where 
he  was  and  went  on  with  his  luxurious  living  even  to 
the  extent  of  arranging  gladiatorial  combats.  In  the 
course  of  these  it  was  proposed  that  Sporus  portray 
the  role  of  a  maiden  being  ravished,  but  he  would  not 
endure  the  shame  and  committed  suicide.  Vitellius 
gave  the  charge  of  the  war  to  Alienus^  and  certain 
others.  Alienus  reached  Cremona  and  occupied  the 
town,  but  seeing  that  his  own  soldiers  were  out  of 
training  as  a  result  of  their  luxurious  life  in  Eome 
and  impaired  by  lack  of  practice,  whereas  the  others 
were  physically  well  exercised  and  stout  of  heart,  he 
was  afraid.  Subsequently,  when  friendly  proposals 
came  to  him  from  Primus,  he  called  the  soldiers  to- 
gether and  by  indicating  the  weakness  of  Vitellius  and 
the  strength  of  Vespasian  together  with  the  character 
of  the  two  men  he  persuaded  them  to  revolt.  Then 
they  removed  the  images  of  Vitellius  from  their  stand- 
ards and  took  an  oath  that  they  would  be  governed  by 
Vespasian.  But,  after  the  meeting  had  broken  up  and 
they  had  retired  to  their  tents,  they  changed  their 

1  A.  CcBcina  Alienus. 

108 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

minds  and  suddenly  gathering  excitedly  in  force  with    a.  d.  69 
great  outcry  they  again  saluted  Vitellius  as  emperor 
and  imprisoned  Alienus  for  having  betrayed  them,  and 
they  paid  no  heed  to  his  consular  office.    Such  are  tho 
regular  practices  of  civil  wars. 

The  great  confusion  which  under  these  conditions  —  ii  — 
prevailed  in  the  camp  of  Vitellius  was  increased  that 
night  by  an  eclipse  of  the  moon.  It  was  not  so  much 
its  being  obscured  (though  even  such  phenomena  cause 
fear  to  men  in  excitement)  as  the  fact  that  the  luminary 
appeared  both  blood-colored  and  black  and  reflected 
still  other  terrifying  shades.  Not  for  this,  however, 
would  the  men  change  their  attitude  or  yield :  but  when 
they  encountered  each  other  they  contended  most  vigor- 
ously, although,  as  I  said,  the  Vitellians  were  leader- 
less  ;  for  Alienus  had  been  imprisoned  at  Cremona. 

H  On  the  following  day,  when  Primus  through  mes- 
sengers tried  to  induce  them  to  come  to  terms,  the 
soldiers  of  Vitellius  sent  a  return  message  to  him  urg- 
ing that  he  espouse  the  cause  of  Vitellius.  When,  more- 
over, they  joined  battle  with  his  soldiers  they  contended 
most  vigorously.  The  battle  was  not  the  result  of  any 
concerted  plan.  Some  few  horsemen,  as  often  happens 
when  two  forces  are  encamped  opposite  each  other, 
were  out  foraging  in  front  of  the  others  and  suddenly 
made  an  attack.  After  that  reinforcements  came  from 
both  armies  to  each  of  the  two  parties  in  whatever  or- 
der the  troops  happened  to  become  aware  of  the  situa- 
tion,—  first  to  one  side,  then  to  the  other,  now  of  one 
kind  of  fighting  force,  now  of  another,  infantry  or 

109 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  69    cavalry:  and  the  conflict  was  marked  by  vicissitudes 
(o.  u.  822)  -^  -^ 

until  all  had  hastened  to  the  front.    Then  they  got  into 

some  kind  of  regular  formation  and  carried  on  the 

struggle   with   some    order   even   though  leaderless. 

Alienus,  as  you  remember,  had  been  imprisoned. 

—  12—  From  this  point  on  the  battle  between  them  was  a 
well  matched  and  evenly  balanced  affair,  not  only  dur- 
ing the  day  but  at  night  as  well.  For  the  coming  of 
night  did  not  separate  them.  They  were  thoroughly 
angry  and  determined,  although  they  were  acquainted 
with  each  other  and  talked  back  and  forth.  Hence  not 
hunger  nor  fatigue  nor  cold  nor  darkness  nor  wounds 
nor  deaths  nor  the  remains  of  men  that  fell  on  this  field 
before  [nor  the  memory  of  the  disaster  nor  the  num- 
ber of  those  that  perished  to  no  purpose]  mitigated 
their  fierceness.  Such  was  the  madness  that  possessed 
both  sides  alike  [and  so  eager  were  they,  incited  by  the 
very  memories  of  the  spot,  which  made  one  party  re- 
solved to  conquer  this  time  also,  and  the  other  not  to 
be  conquered  this  time  either.  So  they  fought  as 
against  foreigners  instead  of  kindred,  and  as  if  all  on 
both  sides  were  absolutely  obliged  either  to  perish  at 
once  or  thereafter  to  be  slaves.  Therefore,  not  even 
when  night  came  on,  as  I  stated,  would  they  yield ;  but 
though  tired  out  and  for  that  reason  often  resting  and 
indulging  in  conversation  together,  they  nevertheless 

_  13  _  continued  to  struggle] .  As  often  as  the  moon  shone  out 
(it  was  constantly  being  concealed  by  [numerous] 
clouds  [of  all  shapes  that  kept  passing  in  front  of  it] ), 
one  might  see  them  sometimes  fighting,  sometimes 

110 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.  69 

{a.   u.   822) 


standing  and  leaning  on  their  spears,  sometimes  sitting 
down.  Now  and  then  they  would  shout  in  unison  on 
one  side  the  name  of  Vespasian  and  on  the  other  that 
of  Vitellius,  and  again  they  would  challenge  each  other 
with  abuse  and  praise  of  the  two  men.  At  intervals 
one  soldier  would  have  a  private  chat  with  an  oppo- 
nent:—  "  Comrade,  fellow-citizen,  what  are  we  doing? 
Why  are  we  fighting?  Come  over  to  my  side."  **  Oh, 
no,  you  come  to  my  side. ' '  But  what  is  there  surprising 
about  this,  considering  that  when  the  women  of  the 
city  in  the  course  of  the  night  brought  food  and  drink 
to  give  to  the  soldiers  of  Vitellius,  the  latter  after  eat- 
ing and  drinking  themselves  passed  the  supplies  on  to 
their  antagonists  ?  One  of  them  would  call  out  the  name 
of  his  adversary  (for  they  practically  all  knew  one 
another  and  were  well  acquainted)  and  would  say: 
*  *  Comrade,  take  and  eat  this.  I  give  you  not  a  sword, 
but  bread.  Take  and  drink :  I  hold  toward  you  not  a 
shield  but  a  cup.  For  whether  you  kill  me  or  I  you, 
this  will  afford  us  a  more  comfortable  leave-taking,  and 
will  save  from  feebleness  and  weakness  the  hand  with 
which  either  you  cut  me  down  or  I  you.  These  are  the 
consecrated  offerings  that  Vitellius  and  Vespasian  give 
us  while  we  are  yet  alive,  that  they  may  sacrifice  us  to 
the  corpses  of  the  past."  That  would  be  the  style  of 
their  conversation,  after  which  they  would  rest  a  while, 
eat  a  bit,  and  then  renew  the  battle.  Soon  they  would 
stop  again,  and  then  once  more  join  in  conflict. 

It  went  on  this  way  the  whole  night  through  till    —14— 
dawn  broke.    At  that  time  two  men  of  the  Vespasian 

111 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

r^'  ^"o^L  party  wrought  a  notable  achievement.    Their  side  was 

(a.   u.   822)         , 

being  severely  damaged  by  an  engine  of  some  sort,  and 
these  two,  seizing  shields  from  among  the  spoils  of  the 
iVitellian  faction,  mingled  with  the  opposing  ranks,  and 
made  their  way  to  the  engine  without  its  being  noticed 
that  they  did  not  belong  to  that  side.  Thus  they  man- 
aged to  cut  the  ropes  of  the  affair,  so  that  not  another 
missile  could  be  discharged  from  it.  As  the  sun  was 
rising  the  soldiers  of  the  third  legion,  called  the  Gallic, 
that  wintered  in  Syria  but  was  now  by  chance  in  the 
party  of  Vespasian,  suddenly  according  to  custom 
saluted  the  Sun  God.  The  followers  of  Vitellius,  sus- 
pecting that  Mucianus  had  arrived,  underwent  a  revul- 
sion of  feeling,  and  panic-stricken  at  the  shout  took  to 
flight.  (Another  instance  of  how  the  smallest  things 
can  produce  great  alarm  in  men  who  are  completely 
tired  out.)  They  retired  within  the  wall,  from  which 
they  stretched  forth  their  hands  and  made  supplica- 
tions. As  no  one  listened  to  them,  they  released  the 
consul,  and,  having  arrayed  him  in  his  robe  of  office 
with  the  fasces,  then  sent  him  as  an  intercessor.  Thus 
they  obtained  a  truce,  for  Alienus  because  of  his  rank 
and  the  way  he  had  been  treated  easily  persuaded 
Primus  to  accept  their  submission. 
—  15—  When,  however,  the  gates  were  opened  and  an 
amnesty  had  been  declared  for  all,  suddenly  soldiers 
came  rushing  in  from  all  directions  and  began  plunder- 
ing and  setting  fire  to  everything.  This  catastrophe 
proved  to  be  one  of  the  greatest  recorded.  The  city 
was  distinguished  for  the  size  and  beauty  of  its  build- 

112 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

ings,  and  great  sums  of  money  belonging  to  natives  and  ^-  ^-  ^9 
to  strangers  had  been  accumulated  there.  The  larger 
portion  of  the  harm  was  done  by  the  Vitellians,  since 
they  knew  exactly  which  were  the  houses  of  the  richest 
men  and  all  about  the  entrances  on  the  alleys.  They 
showed  no  scruples  about  destroying  the  persons  in 
whose  behalf  they  had  fought,  but  dealt  blows,  com- 
mitted murder,  and  acted  as  if  it  were  they  who  had 
been  wronged  and  had  conquered.  Thus,  coimting 
those  that  fell  in  battle,  five  myriads  perished  alto- 
gether. 

Vitellius,  on  learning  of  the  defeat,  was  for  a  time  —16— 
quite  disturbed.  Omens  had  contributed  to  make  him 
uneasy.  He  had  been  offering  a  certain  sacrifice,  and 
after  it  was  addressing  the  soldiers,  when  a  lot  of  vul- 
tures swooped  down,  scattered  the  sacred  meats,  and 
nearly  knocked  him  from  the  platform.  Accordingly, 
the  news  of  the  defeat  troubled  him  still  more,  and  he 
quietly  sent  his  brother  to  Tarracina,  a  strong  city, 
which  the  latter  occupied.  But  when  the  generals  of 
Vespasian  approached  Eome  he  became  alarmed  and 
took  his  departure.  He  did  nothing  and  formed  no  plan, 
but  in  a  state  of  terror  was  carried  back  and  forth  on 
the  billows  of  chance.  One  moment  he  was  for  clinging 
to  the  sovereignty  and  he  was  making  definite  prepara- 
tions for  warfare :  the  next  he  was  quite  willing  to  give 
it  up  and  was  definitely  getting  ready  to  live  as  a  pri- 
vate person.  At  times  he  wore  the  purple  chlamys  and 
girded  on  a  sword :  again  he  assumed  dark  colored  cloth- 
ing. His  public  addresses  both  in  the  palace  and  in  the 
VOL.  5—8  113 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  69    Forum  were  now  of  one  tenor,  now  of  another,  first 

(o.   u,  822) 

urging  battle  and  next  terms  of  peace.  At  times  he 
was  inclined  to  surrender  himself  for  the  public  wel- 
fare, and  later  he  would  clasp  his  child  in  his  arms,  kiss 
him,  and  hold  him  out  to  the  people  as  if  to  arouse  their 
pity.  Similarly  he  would  dismiss  the  Pretorians  and 
then  send  for  them  again,  would  leave  the  palace  to 
retire  to  his  brother's  house  and  then  return:  in  this 
way  he  dulled  the  enthusiasm  of  almost  everybody  in- 
terested in  him.  Seeing  him  dashing  hither  and  thither 
so  frenziedly  they  ceased  to  carry  out  commands  with 
their  usual  diligence,  and  began  to  consider  their  own 
interests  as  well  as  his.  They  ridiculed  him  a  great 
deal,  especially  when  in  the  assemblies  he  proffered  his 
sword  to  the  consuls  and  to  the  senators  present  as  if 
to  show  that  by  this  act  he  had  divested  himself  of  the 
imperial  office.  No  one  of  the  above  persons  dared  to 
take  it,  and  the  bystanders  jeered. 
♦_  17  __  In  view  of  these  conditions,  when  Primus  at  last  drew 
near,  the  consuls,  Gains  Quintius  Atticus  and  Gnaeus 
Caecilius  Simplex,  together  with  Sabinus  (a  relative  of 
iVespasian)  and  the  other  foremost  men  held  a  consulta- 
tion, the  result  of  which  was  that  they  set  out  for  the 
palace  in  company  with  the  soldiers  that  favored  their 
cause,  intending  to  either  persuade  or  force  Vitellius  to 
resign  his  position  as  emperor.  They  encountered, 
however,  the  Celtas  who  were  guarding  him,  and  getting 
decidedly  the  worst  of  the  encounter  they  fled  to  the 
Capitol.  Arrived  there  they  sent  for  Domitian,  son  of 
Vespasian,  and  his  relatives,  and  put  themselves  in  a 

114 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

state  of  defence.    The  following  day,  when  their  ad-    ^-  i^-  69 

( u.  u,  822 ) 

versaries  assailed  them,  they  managed  for  a  time  to 
repulse  them;  but  when  the  environs  of  the  Capitol 
were  set  on  fire,  its  defenders  were  beaten  back  by  the 
flame.  In  this  way  the  soldiers  of  Vitellius  forced 
their  way  up,  slaughtered  many  of  the  resisting  party, 
and  after  plundering  the  whole  stock  of  votive  offerings 
burned  down  with  other  structures  the  great  temple. 
Sabinus  and  Atticus  they  arrested  and  sent  them  to 
Vitellius.  Domitian  and  the  junior  Sabinus  had  made 
their  escape  from  the  Capitol  at  the  first  noise  of  con- 
flict and  by  concealing  themselves  in  houses  had  suc- 
ceeded in  eluding  observation. 

Those  soldiers  of  Vespasian  that  were  led  by  Quintus  — 18  — 
Petilius  Cerialis^  (one  of  the  foremost  senators  and  a 
relative  of  Vespasian  by  marriage)  and  by  Antonius 
Primus  —  for  Mucianus  had  not  yet  overtaken  them  — 
were  by  this  time  close  at  hand,  and  Vitellius  fell  into 
the  depths  of  terror.  The  oncoming  leaders  through, 
the  medium  of  certain  messengers  and  by  placing  their 
letters  in  coffins  with  dead  bodies,  in  baskets  full  of 
fruit,  or  the  reed  traps  of  bird-catchers,  learned  all  that 
was  being  done  in  the  city  and  formed  their  plans  ac- 
cordingly. Now,  when  they  saw  the  blaze  rising  from 
the  Capitol  as  from  a  beacon,  they  made  haste.  The 
first  of  the  two  to  approach  the  city  with  his  cavalry 
was  Cerialis,  [and  he  was  defeated  at  the  very  entrance 
by  being  cut  off  with  horsemen  in  a  narrow  spot.  How- 
ever, he  prevented  any  harm  being  done  by  his  oppo- 

1  The  epitome  of  Dio  spells  uniformly  Cerealms. 

115 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  "^'ooo.  lients.    For  Vitellius,  hoping  that  his  proved  superior- 

((Z4   Ut   822) 

ity  would  afford  him  an  opportunity  to  make  terms, 
restrained  his  soldiers].  And  having  convened  the 
senate  he  s"ent  envoys  chosen  from  that  body  together 
with  the  vestal  virgins  to  Cerialis  as  envoys. 

— 19  —  Since  no  one  would  listen  to  them  and  they  came  very 
near  losing  their  lives,  the  emissaries  visited  Primus, 
who  was  also  at  last  approaching;  from  him  they  se- 
cured an  audience,  but  accomplished  nothing.  For  at 
this  juncture  his  soldiers  came  angrily  toward  him  and 
overcame  with  ease  the  guard  at  the  Tiber  bridge. 
(When  the  latter  took  their  stand  upon  it  and  disputed 
their  passage,  the  horsemen  forded  the  stream  and 
fell  upon  them  from  the  rear.)  After  this  various 
bodies  of  men  made  assaults  at  various  points  and  com- 
mitted some  of  the  most  atrocious  deeds.  All  the  be- 
havior for  which  they  censured  Vitellius  and  his  fol- 
lowers, behavior  which  they  pretended  was  the  cause 
of  the  war  between  them,  they  themselves  repeated, 
slaying  great  numbers.  Many  of  those  killed  were 
struck  with  pieces  of  tiling  from  the  roof  or  cut  down 
in  alleyways  while  jostled  about  by  a  throng  of  adver- 
saries. Thus  as  many  as  fifty  thousand  human  beings 
were  destroyed  during  those  days  of  carnage. 

^20—  So  the  city  was  being  pillaged,  and  the  men  were 
some  fighting,  some  fleeing,  some  actually  plundering 
and  murdering  by  themselves  in  order  that  they  might 
be  taken  for  the  invaders  and  so  preserve  their  lives. 
Vitellius  in  dread  put  on  a  ragged,  dirty,  little  tunic  and 
concealed  himself  in  an  obscure  alcove  where  dogs  were 

116 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

kept,  intending  to  run  off  during  the  night  to  Tarracina  ^-  ^-  ^ 
and  join  his  brother.  But  the  soldiers  found  him  after 
a  short  search,  for  he  could  not  long  be  sure  of  remain- 
ing hid,  seeing  that  he  had  been  emperor.  They  seized 
him,  a  mass  of  shavings  and  blood  —  for  the  dogs  had 
done  him  some  harm  already  —  and  stripping  off  his 
clothes  they  bound  his  hands  behind  his  back,  put  a 
rope  around  his  neck  and  dragged  from  the  palace  the 
Caesar  who  had  reveled  there.  Down  the  Sacred  Way 
they  hauled  the  emperor  who  had  frequently  paraded 
past  in  his  chair  of  state.  Then  they  conducted  the 
Augustus  to  the  Forum,  where  he  had  often  addressed 
the  people.  Some  buffeted  him,  some  plucked  at  his 
beard,  all  ridiculed  him,  all  insulted  him,  laying  es- 
pecial stress  in  their  remarks  on  his  intemperance, 
since  he  had  an  expansive  paunch.  When  in  shame  at 
this  treatment  he  kept  his  eyes  lowered,  the  soldiers 
would  prick  him  under  the  chin  with  their  daggers, 
to  make  him  look  up  even  against  his  will.  A  certain 
Celt  who  saw  this  would  not  endure  it,  but  taking  pity 
on  him  cried:  '*  I  will  help  you,  as  well  as  I  can 
alone. '  *  Then  he  wounded  Vitellius  and  killed  himself. 
However,  Vitellius  did  not  die  of  the  wound  but  was 
haled  to  the  prison,  as  were  also  his  statues,  while  many 
amusing  and  many  disgraceful  remarks  were  made 
about  them.  Finally,  grieved  to  the  heart  at  the  way 
he  had  been  treated  and  what  he  was  compelled  to  hear, 
he  was  heard  to  exclaim :  ' '  Yet  I  was  once  your  em- 
peror !  "  At  that  the  soldiers  flew  into  a  rage  and  took 
him  to  the  top  of  the  Scalae  Gemoniae,  where  they  struck 

117 


—  21  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  69    iiiui  down.    His  head  was  cut  off  and  carried  about  ail 

(o.   u.    822) 

over  tlie  city. 
—  22—  Subsequently  his  wife  saw  to  his  burial.  He  had 
lived  fifty-four  years  [and  eighty-nine  days]  and  had 
reigned  for  a  year  lacking  ten  days.  His  brother  had 
started  from  Tarracina  to  come  to  his  assistance,  but 
learned  while  en  route  that  he  was  dead.  He  also  en- 
countered a  detachment  of  men  sent  against  him  and 
made  terms  with  them  on  condition  that  his  life  should 
be  spared.  In  spite  of  this  he  was  murdered  not  long 
afterward.  The  son  of  Vitellius,  too,  perished  soon 
after  his  father,  notwithstanding  that  Vitellius  had 
killed  no  relative  either  of  Otho  or  of  Vespasian.  After 
all  these  various  events  had  taken  place,  Mucianus 
came  up  and  administered  necessary  details  in  con- 
junction with  Domitian,  whom  he  also  presented  to  the 
soldiers  and  had  him  make  a  speech,  boy  though  he 
was.   Each  of  the  soldiers  received  twenty-five  denarii. 


118 


DIO'S 

ROMAN  HISTORY 

66 


119 


Vespasian  is  made  Emperor:  is  also  desi^ated  as  sncli  by 
portents  (chapter  1). 

The  arrogance  of  Mucianus  and  Domitian  (chapter  2). 

Kevolt  of  the  Germans  (chapter  3). 

About  the  taking  of  Jerusalem  by  Titus  (chapters  4-7). 

Vespasian  levies  money  in  Egypt  (chapter  8). 

He  treats  the  Romans  considerately :  drives  philosophers  from 
the  capital  (chapters  9-13). 

He  gathers  money  by  the  efforts  of  his  concubine  Csenis,  as 
well  as  by  his  own  (chapter  14). 

The  Temple  of  Peace  and  the  Colossus  are  erected:  Berenice 
is  dismissed:  the  Cynics  are  punished  (chapter  15). 

The  punishment  of  Julius  Sabinus:  likewise  of  the  conspira- 
tors, Alienus  and  Marcellus  (chapter  16). 

How  Vespasian  met  his  death  (chapter  17). 

The  mildness  of  character  of  Titus  Csesar  Augustus  (chapter* 
18,  19). 

War  in  Britain,  which  is  ascertained  to  be  an  island  (chapter 
20). 

How  Mount  Vesuvius  flamed  forth:  conflagration  at  Rome 
(chapters  21-24). 

Spectacles:  death  of  Titus  (chapters  25,  26). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

Fl.  Vespasianus  Aug.  (11),  Titus  Caesar.  (A.  D.  70  =  a.  n. 
823  =  Second  of  Vespasian,  from  July  1st.) 

Fl.  Vespasianus  Aug.  (Ill),  M.  Cocceius  Nerva.  (A.  D.  71  = 
a.  u.  824  =  Second  of  Vespasian.) 

El.  Vespasianus  Aug.  (IV),  Titus  Csesar  (II).  (A.  D.  72  = 
a.  u.  825  =:  Third  of  Vespasian.) 

Domitianus  Csesar  (II),  M.  Valerius  Messalinus.  (A.  D.  73  = 
a.  u.  826  =  Fourth  of  Vespasian.) 

Fl.  Vespasianus  Aug.  (V),  Titus  Csesar  (HI).  A.  D.  74  = 
a.  u.  827  =  Fifth  of  Vespasian.) 

Fl.  Vespasianus  Aug.  (VI),  Titus  Caesar  (IV).  (A.  D.  75=: 
a.  u.  828  =  Sixth  of  Vespasian.) 

Fl.  Vespasianus  (VII),  Titus  Caesar  (V).  (A.  D.  76  =  a,  u. 
829  =  Seventh  of  Vespasian.) 


Fl.  Vespasianns  (VIII),  Titus  Cesar  (VI).     (A.  D.  77  =j 
a.  u.  830  =:  Eighth  of  Vespasian.) 
L.  Ceionius  Commodus,  D.  Novius  Priscus.     (A.  D.  78  =  a.  u. 

831  =  Ninth  of  Vespasian.) 

Fl.  Vespasianns  (IX) ,  Titns  Csesar  ( VTE) .    (A.  D.  79  —  a.  u. 

832  =  First  of  Titns,  from  June  23rd.) 

T.  Vespasianns  (VIII),  Domitianns  (VII).    (A.  D.  80  =  a.  n. 

833  — Second  of  Titns.) 

L.  Fl.  Silva  Nonius  Bassns,  Asinins  Follio  Verrucosus.    (A.  D. 
81  =  a.  XL,  834  =  Third  of  Titus,  to  September  13th.) 


(BOOK  65,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Such,  was  the  course  of  events  on  the  heels  of  which  ^d~7o 
Vespasian  was  declared  emperor  by  the  senate  and  •^°"  "•  ^^^^ 
Titus  and  Domitian  were  given  the  title  of  Caesars. 
The  consular  office  was  assumed  by  Vespasian  and 
Titus  while  the  former  was  in  Egypt  and  the  latter  in 
Palestine.  Vespasian  had  seen  portents  and  dreams 
that  long  beforehand  indicated  that  he  was  destined  to 
rule.  As  he  was  eating  dinner  in  the  country,  where 
most  of  his  time  was  spent,  a  cow  approached  him, 
knelt  down,  and  put  her  head  beneath  his  feet.  An- 
other time,  when  he  was  taking  food,  a  dog  threw  a 
human  hand  under  the  table.  And  a  conspicuous 
cypress  tree,  which  had  been  uprooted  and  overthrown 
by  a  violent  wind,  on  the  next  day  stood  upright  again 
by  its  own  power  and  continued  to  flourish.  From  a 
dream  he  learned  that  when  Nero  Caesar  should  lose 
a  tooth,  he  should  be  emperor :  and  this  matter  of  the 
tooth  became  a  reality  on  the  following  day.  Nero 
himself  in  his  slumbers  thought  he  was  bringing  the 
chariot  of  Jupiter  to  Vespasian's  house.  These  oc- 
currences, of  course,  needed  interpretation.  But  in  ad- 
dition a  Jew  named  Josephus,  who  had  previously  been 
disliked  by  him  and  imprisoned,  gave  a  laugh  and  said : 
**  You  may  imprison  me  now,  but  a  year  later  when 
you  become  emperor  you  will  release  me. ' ' 

Thus  had  Vespasian,  like  some  others,  been  bom  for     —2  — 

123 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ■^•JL^v  the  position.    While  he  was  as  yet  absent  in  Egjijt 

(a.   u.   823) 

Mucianus  administered  all  the  details  of  government 
with  the  helg  of  Domitian.  Mucianus  feeling  that  he 
had  himself  given  the  sovereignty  to  Vespasian  exulted 
greatly  at  these  facts  above  all, —  that  he  was  called 
'*  brother  "  by  him,  and  that  he  had  authority  to  de- 
cide every  question  that  he  liked  without  the  emperor's 
express  approval  and  could  issue  written  orders  by 
merely  adding  his  superior's  name.  For  this  purpose, 
too,  he  wore  a  finger  ring  that  had  been  sent  him,  which 
was  intended  to  impress  the  imperial  seal  upon  docu- 
ments requiring  authorization.  [Indeed,  Domitian 
himself  gave  offices  and  procuratorships  to  many  per- 
sons, appointing  prefect  after  prefect  and  even  con- 
suls.] In  fine,  they  behaved  in  every  way  so  much  like 
absolute  rulers  that  Vespasian  once  sent  the  following 
message  to  Domitian :  *  *  I  thank  you,  my  child,  for  let- 
ting me  hold  office  and  that  you  have  not  yet  de- 
throned me. ' ' 

^Now  Mucianus  gathered  into  the  public  treasury 
from  every  possible  quarter  vast  sums  of  money,  show- 
ing an  entire  readiness  to  relieve  Vespasian  of  the 
censure  which  such  a  proceeding  caused.  He  was  for- 
ever declaring  that  money  was  the  sinews  of  sover- 
eignty ;  and  in  accordance  with  this  belief  he  was  con- 
stantly urging  Vespasian  to  obtain  funds  from  every 
quarter,  and  for  his  own  part  he  continued  from  the 
outset  to  collect  revenue,  thus  providing  a  large  amount 
of  money  for  the  empire  and  acquiring  a  large  amount 
himself. 

124 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

In  Germany  various  uprisings  against  the  Romans  —  3  — 
took  place  which  are  not  worth  mentioning  for  my  (a.  w.  823) 
purposes,  but  there  was  one  incident  that  must  cause 
us  surprise.  A  certain  Julius  Sabinus,  one  of  the 
foremost  of  the  Lingones,  collected  by  his  own  efforts 
a  separate  force  and  took  the  name  of  Caesar,  declar- 
ing that  he  was  a  descendant  of  Julius  Caesar.  He  was 
defeated  in  several  engagements,  whereupon  he  fled 
to  a  field  and  plunged  into  a  subterranean  vault  be- 
neath a  monument,  which  he  first  burned  to  the  ground. 
His  pursuers  thought  he  had  perished  in  the  conflagra- 
tion, but  as  a  matter  of  fact  he  hid  himself  there  with 
his  wife  for  nine  years  and  had  two  male  children  by 
her.  The  troubles  in  Germany  were  settled  by  Cerialis 
in  the  course  of  a  number  of  battles,  in  one  of  which 
so  great  a  multitude  of  Eomans  and  barbarians  both 
were  slain  that  the  river  flowing  near  by  was  held  back 
by  the  bodies  of  the  fallen.  Domitian  stood  in  fear  of 
his  father  because  of  what  he  did  and  still  more  because 
of  what  he  intended,  for  his  plans  were  on  no  small 
scale.  He  happened  to  be  spending  most  of  his  time 
near  the  Alban  Mount,  devoting  himself  to  his  passion 
for  Domitia,  the  daughter  of  Corbulo.  Her  he  took 
away  from  her  husband,  Lucius  Lamia  ^lianus,  and 
at  this  time  he  had  her  for  one  of  his  mistresses,  but 
later  he  actually  married  her. 

Titus,  who  was  assigned  to  take  charge  of  the  war     — .4— 
with  the  Jews,  [undertook  to  win  them  over  by  certain 
conferences  and  offers;  as  they  would  not  yield,  he 
proceeded  to  direct  hostilities.     The  first  battles  he 

125 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  70    fought  were  rather  close;  finally  he  prevailed  and  took 

(a.   u.   823) 

up  the  siege  of  Jerusalem.  This  town  had  three  walls, 
including  that  surrounding  the  temple.  The  Romans 
accordingly  heaped  up  mounds  against  the  fortifica- 
tions and  brought  their  engines  to  bear :  then  collecting 
in  a  dense  force  they  repulsed  all  sallying  parties  and 
with  their  slings  and  arrows  kept  back  all  the  defend- 
ers of  the  wall.  Many  persons  that  had  been  sent  by 
some  of  the  barbarian  kings  they  kept  prisoners.  The 
Jews  who  came  to  the  assistance  of  their  countrymen 
were  many  of  them  from  the  immediate  region  and 
many  from  kindred  districts,  not  only  in  this  same 
Roman  empire  but  from  beyond  the  Euphrates,  and 
they,  too,  kept  directing  missiles  and  stones  with  con- 
siderable force  on  account  of  the  higher  ground,  some 
being  flung  from  the  hand  and  some  hurled  by  means 
of  engines.  They  likewise  made  night  and  day  sallies 
as  often  as  occasion  offered,  set  fire  to  the  engines, 
slew  numerous  combatants,  and  by  digging  out  under 
the  wall  took  away  earth  from  beneath  the  mound.  As 
for  the  rams,  they  lassoed  some  of  them  and  broke  the 
ends  off,  others  they  seized  and  pulled  up  with  hooks, 
while  by  means  of  thick  boards  well  fastened  together 
and  strengthened  with  iron,  which  they  let  down 
against  the  face  of  the  wall,  they  turned  aside  the  as- 
saults of  the  remainder.  The  Romans '  chief  cause  of 
discomfort  was  the  lack  of  water ;  their  supply  was  of 
poor  quality  and  had  to  be  brought  from  a  distance. 

The  Jews  found  their  underground  passages  a  source 
of  strength.    They  had  these  affairs  dug  from  within 

126 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

the  city  out  under  the  walls  to  distant  points  in  the    a.  d.  to 

(o.   tt.   823) 

country,  and  going  out  through  them  they  would  attack 
parties  in  search  of  water  and  harass  scattered  detach- 
ments.   Consequently  Titus  stopped  them  all  up. 

In  the  course  of  these  operations  many  on  both  sides  —  5  — 
were  wounded  and  killed.  Titus  himself  was  struck 
on  the  left  shoulder  by  a  stone,  and  as  a  result  of  this 
accident  the  arm  was  always  weaker.  After  a  time 
the  Eomans  managed  to  scale  the  outside  circle,  and, 
pitching  their  camps  between  the  two  encompassing 
lines  of  fortification,  assaulted  the  second  wall.  Here, 
however,  they  found  the  conditions  confronting  them  to 
be  different.  When  all  the  inhabitants  had  retired 
behind  the  second  wall,  its  defence  proved  an  easier 
matter  because  the  circuit  to  be  guarded  was  so  much 
less.  Titus,  accordingly,  made  anew  a  proclamation 
offering  them  immunity.  They,  however,  even  under 
these  circumstances  held  out.  And  the  captives  and 
deserters  from  the  enemy  so  far  as  they  could  do  so 
unobserved  spoiled  the  Eoman  water  supply  and  slew 
many  men  that  they  could  cut  off  from  the  main  force, 
so  that  Titus  refused  to  receive  any  of  them.  Mean- 
time some  of  the  Eomans,  too,  growing  disheartened, 
as  often  happens  in  a  prolonged  siege,  and  furthermore 
suspecting  that  the  city  was  really,  even  as  report  de- 
clared, impregnable,  went  over  to  the  other  side.  The 
Jews  although  they  were  short  of  food  treated  them 
kindly,  in  order  to  be  able  to  exhibit  deserters  to  their 
own  ranks. 

Though  a  breach  in  the  wall  was  effected  by  engines,     —e— 

127 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

.^'  ^'olox  still  the  capture  did  not  immediately  follow:  the  de- 

(a.   tt.   823)  •' 

fenders  killed  great  numbers  that  tried  to  crowd 
through  the  opening.  Next  they  set  fire  to  some  of  the 
buildings  n6ar  by,  expecting  in  this  way  to  check  the 
onward  progress  of  the  Eomans,  even  should  the  latter 
make  themselves  masters  of  the  entire  circuit.  In  this 
way  they  damaged  the  wall  and  unintentionally  burned 
down  the  barrier  encompassing  their  sacred  precinct. 
The  entrance  to  the  temple  was  now  laid  open  to  the 
Romans.  The  soldiers  on  account  of  their  superstition 
would  not  immediately  rush  in,  but  at  last,  as  Titus 
forced  them,  they  made  their  way  inside.  Then  the 
Jews  carried  on  a  defence  much  more  vigorous  than 
before,  as  if  they  had  discovered  a  rare  and  unexpected 
privilege  in  falling  near  the  temple,  while  fighting  to 
save  it.  The  populace  was  stationed  in  the  outer  court, 
the  senators  on  the  steps,  and  the  priests  in  the  hall  of 
worship  itself.  And  though  they  were  but  a  handful 
fighting  against  a  far  superior  force  they  were  not  sub- 
dued until  a  section  of  the  temple  was  fired.  Then 
they  went  to  meet  death  willingly,  some  letting  them- 
selves be  pierced  by  the  swords  of  the  Romans,  some 
slaughtering  one  another,  others  conmiitting  suicide, 
and  others  leaping  into  the  blaze.  It  looked  to  every- 
body, and  most  of  all  to  them,  apparently,  [that  so  far 
from  being  ruin,  it  was  victory  and  salvation  and  hap- 
—7—  piness  to  perish  along  with  the  temple] .  Even  under 
these  conditions  many  captives  were  taken,  among 
them  Bargiora,^  the  commander  of  the  enemy :  he  was 

1  Properly  Simon  Bar-Giora    (patronymic). 

128 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

the  only  one  punished  in  the  course  of  the  triumphal    a.  d.  to 

( a.   u,   823 ) 

celebration. 

Thus  was  Jerusalem  destroyed  on  the  very  day  of 
Saturn,  which  even  now  the  Jews  reverence  most.  To 
commemorate  the  event  it  was  ordered  that  the  con- 
quered, while  still  preserving  their  own  ancestral  cus- 
toms, should  annually  pay  a  tribute  of  two  denarii  to 
Capitoline  Jupiter.  As  a  reward  for  this  success  both 
generals  received  the  title  of  imperator,  but  neither 
had  that  of  ludaicus,  although  all  the  other  privileges 
(including  arches  bearing  trophies)  that  were  proper 
after  so  great  a  victory  were  voted  to  them. 

Hard  upon  Vespasian's  entrance  into  Alexandria  —  8  — 
the  Nile  overflowed,  and  rose  in  one  day  a  palm  higher 
than  usual;  indeed,  such  an  occurrence,  it  was  said, 
had  taken  place  only  once  before.  Vespasian  himself 
healed  two  persons  who  had  come  to  him  because  of  a 
vision  seen  in  dreams.  One  of  them,  who  had  a  weak 
hand,  he  cured  by  treading  upon  that  member,  and  the 
other  one,  who  was  blind,  by  spitting  upon  his  eyes. 
His  divine  power  herein  shown  gave  him  great  repute, 
yet  the  Alexandrians,  far  from  enjoying  his  society,  de- 
tested him  heartily;  not  only  in  private  but  in  public 
they  were  forever  making  fun  of  and  abusing  him. 
They  had  expected  to  receive  some  great  reward  from 
him  because  they  had  taken  the  first  steps  in  making 
him  emperor,  but  instead  of  securing  anything  they 
had  additional  contributions  levied  upon  them.  Large 
were  the  sums  he  gathered  from  them,  for  he  omitted 
not  a  single  source  of  revenue,  no,  not  even  the  first 
VOL.  5—9  129 


DIGS   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  70    that  misrlit  offer  itself,  though  its  character  were  repre- 

(a.   u,   823)  to  ?  o  i- 

hensible,  but  he  sought  money  from  everybody  alike, 
of  secular  or  religious  profession.  As  for  taxes,  he 
renewed  many  that  had  been  abolished  and  increased 
those  that  were  usual  [and  introduced  still  other  new 
ones].  And  he  adopted  this  same  course  later  in  the 
rest  of  the  subject  territory,  [in  Italy]  and  in  Rome 
itself.  Hence  the  Alexandrians  [both  for  the  reasons 
mentioned  and  because  most  of  the  royal  possessions 
had  been  sold  were  vexed  and]  threw  out  various  de- 
rogatory remarks  about  him,  one  of  them  being :  ^ '  You 
want  six  obols  more."  Vespasian,  consequently,  al- 
though the  most  affable  of  men,  became  indignant  and 
gave  orders  that  the  six  obols  per  man  should  be  levied, 
and  thought  seriously  about  taking  vengeance  upon 
them.  [The  words  themselves  contained  an  insult,  and 
of  their  many  undignified  and  anapaestic  rhythms  there 
was  not  a  single  one  but  aroused  his  anger.]  Titus, 
however,  begged  them  off  and  Vespasian  accordingly 
spared  them.  Yet  they  would  not  let  him  alone,  and 
in  some  assembly  they  all  together  shouted  at  Titus 
these  very  words :  **  We  forgive  him.  He  doesn't  un- 
derstand being  Caesar. ' ' 

So  they  continued  to  be  foolhardy,  took  their  thor- 
ough fill  of  that  license  which  is  always  working  to 
their  detriment,  and  abused  the  good  nature  of  the 
emperor.  [Vespasian  soon  ceased  to  notice  them.  He 
sent  a  despatch  to  Kome  rescinding  the  disfranchise- 
ment of  such  persons  as  had  been  condemned  for  so- 
called  acts  of  maiestas  by  Nero  and  succeeding  rulers. 

130 


—  9  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

His  action  included  living  and  dead  alike,  and  he  more-    A.  d.  to 

(a.   u.   823) 

over  stopped  the  indictments  made  upon  such  com- 
plaints.— The  astrologers  he  banished  from  Eome,  yet 
he  consulted  all  of  them  who  were  distinguished,  and 
through  the  influence  of  Barbillus,  a  man  of  that  pro- 
fession, allowed  the  Ephesians  to  celebrate  some  sacred 
games.  This  was  a  privilege  he  granted  to  no  other 
city.] 

He  soon  had  Egypt  subdued  and  sent  from  there  a  large  supply  of 
grain  to  Rome.  He  had  left  his  son  Titus  at  Jerusalem  to  sack  the 
town,  and  awaited  its  capture  that  he  might  return  to  Rome  in  his  son'3 
company.  But,  as  time  dragged  in  the  conduct  of  the  siege,  he  left  Titus 
in  Palestine  and  took  passage  himself  on  a  merchantman;  he  sailed  in 
this  manner  as  far  as  Lycia,  and  from  that  country  partly  by  overland 
journeys  and  partly  by  seafaring  he  came  to  Brundusium. 

After  this  he  came  to  Eome,  meeting  Mucianus  and 
other  prominent  men  at  Brundusium  and  Domitian  at 
Beneventum.  In  consequence  of  the  consciousness  of 
his  own  designs  and  of  what  he  had  already  done,  Domi- 
tian was  ill  at  ease,  and  moreover  he  occasionally 
feigned  madness.  He  spent  most  of  his  time  on  the 
Alban  estate  and  did  many  ridiculous  things,  one  of 
them  being  to  impale  flies  on  pencils.  Even  though 
this  incident  be  unworthy  of  the  dignity  of  history,  yet 
because  it  shows  his  character  so  well  and  particularly 
in  view  of  the  fact  that  he  continued  the  same  practice 
after  he  became  emperor,  I  have  been  obliged  to  record 
it.  Hence  that  answer  was  not  without  wit  which  some 
one  made  to  a  person  who  enquired  what  Domitian  was 
doing.  ''  He  is  living  in  retirement,"  he  said,  "  with- 
out so  much  as  a  fly  to  keep  him  company. ' '  Vespasian  __  lo  — 
though  he  humbled  this  upstart's  pride  greeted  all  the 

131 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  70    rest  not  like  an  emperor  but  like  a  private  person,  for 

{a.  u.   823)  .  .  ' 

lie  remembered  bis  previous  experience. 

On  reaching  Rome  he  bestowed  gifts  upon  both  soldiers  and  populace; 
he  made  repairs  jn  the  sacred  precincts  and  upon  those  public  works 
■which  showed  signs  of  wear  and  tear;  such  as  had  already  crumbled  to 
decay  he  restored;  and  when  they  were  completed  he  inscribed  upon 
them  not  his  own  name  but  the  names  of  the  persons  who  had  origin- 
ally reared  them. 

He  immediately  began  to  construct  tbe  temple  on 
the  Capitoline,  being  himself  the  first  to  carry  away 
some  of  the  soil ;  and,  as  a  matter  of  course,  he  urged 
the  other  most  prominent  men  to  do  this  same  thing  in 
order  that  the  rest  of  the  populace  might  have  no 
excuse  for  shirking  this  service. 

The  property  of  his  opponents  who  had  fallen  in  one  conflict  or  an- 
other he  delivered  to  their  children  or  to  other  kin  of  theirs;  further- 
more, he  destroyed  contracts  of  long  standing  representing  sums  due 
and  owing  to  the  public  treasury. 

Though  he  invariably  expended  in  munificent  fashion 
all  that  was  requisite  for  the  public  welfare  and  ar- 
ranged the  festivals  on  a  most  sumptuous  scale,  his 
own  living  was  very  far  from  costly,  and  he  sanctioned 
no  greater  outlay  than  was  absolutely  necessary. 
Therefore  even  in  the  taverns  he  allowed  nothing 
cooked  to  be  sold  except  pulse.  Thus  he  made  it  quite 
plainly  evident  that  he  was  amassing  riches  not  for  his 
own  enjoyment  but  for  the  needs  of  the  people. 

If  Vespasian  got  laughed  at  every  time  that  he  would  say,  when  spend- 
ing money :    "  I  am  making  this  outlay  from  my  own  purse." 
He  was  neither  of  noble  family  nor  rich. 

The  general  routine  of  life  that  he  followed  was  this. 
He  lived  but  little  in  the  palace,  spending  most  of  his 
time  in  the  so-called  Sallustian  Gardens.    There  he  re- 

132 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

ceived  anybody  wlio  desired  to  see  him,  not  only  sena-    a.  d.  to 

.  />   .        T      (^'   **•   823) 

tors  but  people  in  general.  With  his  intimate  friends 
he  would  converse  also  before  dawn  while  lying  in  bed ; 
others  could  greet  him  on  the  streets.  The  doors  of 
the  royal  residence  were  open  all  day  long  and  no 
guard  was  stationed  at  them.  He  was  a  regular  visitor 
in  the  senate,  whose  members  he  consulted  in  regard  to 
all  projects,  and  he  frequently  tried  cases  in  the 
Forum.  Whatever  measures  he  was  prevented  by  old 
age  from  reading  aloud,  as  well  as  any  communications 
that  he  sent  to  the  senate  when  absent,  he  usually 
caused  to  be  read  by  his  sons,  showing  honor  by  this 
course  to  the  legislative  body.  Every  day  he  had  many 
of  the  senators  and  others  join  him  at  table,  and  he 
himself  often  dined  at  the  houses  of  his  intimate 
friends.  In  general,  his  forethought  for  public  inter-  _ii_ 
ests  caused  him  to  be  regarded  as  a  real  emperor.  In 
his  ordinary  existence  he  was  sociable  and  lived  on  a 
footing  of  equality  with  his  subjects.  He  joked  in  un- 
conventional manner  and  rather  liked  jokes  upon  him- 
self. In  case  any  anonymous  documents  were  posted, 
—  as  happens  to  every  emperor,—  containing  state- 
ments insulting  to  himself,  he  showed  no  signs  of  dis- 
turbance but  posted  in  turn  a  suitable  reply. 

One  day  Phoebus  approached  him  to  make  an  apol- 
ogy. It  seemed  that  once,  during  Nero's  reign,  Ves- 
pasian when  in  the  theatre  in  Greece  had  frowned  at 
the  misconduct  of  the  emperor  (of  which  he  was  a  wit- 
ness), whereupon  Phoebus  had  angrily  bidden  him 
**GoI"    And  upon  Vespasian's  enquiring  *' Where 

133 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  70    to?  "  the  other  had  responded  "  to  the  devil."  *    Now 

(o.    «.    823)  ^ 

when  Phoebns  apologized  for  this  speech  the  monarch 
did  him  no  harm,  in  fact  vouchsafed  him  no  answer  at 
all,  save  a  curt  "  Go  to  the  devil  yourself !  "  —  Again, 
when  Vologaesus  forwarded  a  letter  to  the  emperor  ad- 
dressed as  follows:  ''Arsaces,  King  of  Kings,  to 
Flavius  Vespasian,  Greeting,"  the  recipient  did  not 
rebuke  him  but  wrote  a  reply  couched  in  the  same  terms 
and  added  none  of  his  imperial  titles. 
_12—  Helvidius  Priscus,  the  son-in-law  of  Thrasea,  had 
been  brought  up  in  the  doctrines  of  the  Stoics  and 
imitated  Thrasea 's  bluntness,  though  there  was  no  oc- 
casion for  it.  He  was  at  this  time  praetor  and  instead 
of  doing  aught  to  increase  the  honor  due  to  the  em- 
peror he  would  not  cease  reviling  him.  Therefore  the 
tribunes  once  arrested  him  and  gave  him  in  charge  of 
their  assistants,  at  which  procedure  Vespasian  was 
overcome  by  emotion  and  went  out  of  the  senate-house 
in  tears,  uttering  this  single  exclamation  only:  ^*A 
son  shall  be  my  successor  or  no  one  at  all. ' ' 

A.  D.  71         After  Jerusalem  had  been  captured  Titus  returned  to  Italy  and  cele- 

(o.   u.   824)  brated  a  triiimph,  both  he  and  his  father  riding  in  a  chariot.    Domitian, 

now  in  his  consulship,  also  took  part  in  the  festivities,  mounted  upon 

a  charger.    Vespasian  next  established  in  Rome  teachers  of  both  Latin. 

and  Greek  learning,  who  drew  their  pay  from  the  public  treasury. 

~"  ^^  ~         Before  long  many  others  who  followed  the  so-called 

(o.  u.  824)  Stoic  system  made  themselves  prominent,  among  whom 

was  Demetrius  the  cynic.    These  men,  abusing  the  title 

of  philosophy,  kept  teaching  their  disciples  publicly 

many  pernicious  doctrines,  and  in  this  way  were  grad- 

1  This  sentiment  is  expressed  in  the  Greek  by  "  to  the  crows." 

134 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

iially  cormptinff^  some.     Under  these  circumstances    a.  d.  71 

-^  ^       ^  (a.   u.   824) 

Mucianus,  influenced  more  by  anger  than  by  fondness 
for  speaking,  uttered  many  charges  against  them  and 
persuaded  Vespasian  to  expel  all  such  persons  from 
the  city. 

^  Mucianus  desired  to  be  honored  by  all  and  beyond  (—2—) 
all,  so  that  he  was  displeased  not  merely  if  a  man  in- 
sulted him  but  even  if  any  one  failed  to  extol  him 
greatly.  Hence,  just  as  he  was  never  tired  of  honor- 
ing those  who  assisted  him  to  even  the  slightest  ex- 
tent, so  his  hatred  was  most  cruel  for  all  who  did  not 
so  conduct  themselves. 

^Mucianus  made  a  great  number  of  remarkable  statements  to  Ves- 
pasian against  the  Stoics,  as,  for  instance,  that  they  are  full  of  empty 
boasting,  and  if  one  of  them  lets  his  beard  grow  long,  elevates  his  eye- 
brows, wears  his  fustian  cape  thrown  carelessly  back  and  goes  barefoot, 
he  straightway  postulates  wisdom,  bravery,  righteousness  as  his  own. 
He  gives  himself  great  airs,  even  though  he  may  not  understand  (as 
the  proverb  says)  either  letters  or  swimming.  They  view  everybody 
with  contempt  and  call  the  man  of  good  family  a  mollycoddle,  the  ill- 
born  a  dwarfed  intellect,  a  handsome  person  licentious,  an  ugly  person 
comely,  the  rich  man  an  apostle  of  greed,  and  the  poor  man  a  servile 
groveler. 

And  Vespasian  did  immediately  expel  from  Rome 
all  the  philosophers  except  Musonius :  Demetrius  and 
Hostilianus  he  confined  upon  islands.  Hostilianus 
would  not  stop,  to  be  sure, —  he  happened  to  be  convers- 
ing with  somebody  when  he  heard  about  the  sentence  of 
exile  against  him  and  merely  inveighed  all  the  more 
strongly  against  monarchy, —  yet  he  straightway  with- 
drew. Demetrius  even  now  would  not  yield,  and  Ves- 
pasian bade  it  be  told  him :    ' '  You  are  working  every 

1  Reading   vnodtifdstpov  (Dindorf). 

135 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.  71 

(o.   u.   824) 


way  to  have  me  kill  you,  but  I  am  not  slaughtering 
barking  dogs." 

(—12—)  It  became  strikingly  clear  that  Vespasian  hated 
Helvidius  Priscus  not  so  much  for  personal  affronts 
or  on  account  of  the  friends  that  the  man  had  abused 
as  because  he  was  a  turbulent  fellow  that  cultivated 
the  favor  of  the  rabble,  was  forever  denouncing  royalty 
and  praising  democracy.  Helvidius 's  behavior,  more- 
over, was  consistent  with  his  principles;  he  banded 
various  men  together,  as  if  it  were,  the  function  of 
philosophy  to  insult  those  in  power,  to  stir  up  the  multi- 
tudes, to  overthrow  the  established  order  of  things, 
and  to  incite  people  to  revolution.  He  was  a  son-in- 
law  of  Thrasea  and  affected  to  emulate  tiie  latter 's 
conduct:  his  failure  to  do  so  was  striking.  Thrasea 
lived  in  Nero's  time  and  disliked  the  tyrant.  Even  so, 
however,  he  never  spoke  or  behaved  toward  him  in  any 
insulting  way :  he  merely  refused  to  share  in  his  prac- 
tices. But  Helvidius  had  a  grudge  against  Vespasian 
and  would  not  let  him  alone  either  in  private  or  in 
public.  By  what  he  did  he  invited  death  and  for  his 
meddlesome  interference  he  was  destined  ultimately  to 
pay  the  penalty.] 

—  14—  This  period  saw  also  the  demise  of  Vespasian's  con- 
cubine, Caenis.  I  have  mentioned  her  because  she  was 
exceedingly  faithful  and  possessed  naturally  a  most 
excellent  memory.  For  instance,  her  mistress  An- 
tonia,  the  mother  of  Claudius,  had  had  her  write  se- 
cretly to  Tiberius  about  Sejanus  and  later  had  ordered 
the  message  erased,  that  no  trace  of  the  same  might  be 

136 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

left.    Thereupon  she  replied :    "  It  is  in  vain,  mistress,  ,  A-  ^-  ^i 

^  .  '  (o-   "•   824) 

that  you  have  issued  this  command.  All  of  this  and 
whatever  else  you  dictate  to  me  I  always  carry  with  me 
in  my  soul  and  it  can  never  be  erased."  This  is  one 
thing  I  have  admired  about  her  and  a  second  is  that 
Vespasian  should  have  been  so  much  pleased  with  her. 
This  fact  gave  her  the  greatest  influence,  and  she  col- 
lected untold  wealth,  so  that  it  was  even  thought  that 
she  obtained  money  by  her  independent  efforts.  She 
received  vast  sums  from  all  sources  and  sold  to  some 
persons  offices,  to  others  procuratorships,  the  command 
of  campaigns,  priesthoods,  and  to  some  actually  im- 
perial decisions.  For  Vespasian  killed  no  one  to  get 
his  money  and  took  care  to  preserve  large  numbers  of 
those  who  freely  gave  it.  The  person  who  secured  the 
funds  was  his  concubine,  but  it  was  suspected  that  Ves- 
pasian willingly  allowed  her  to  do  as  she  did;  and  this 
belief  was  strengthened  by  his  other  acts,  a  few  of 
which,  for  the  sake  of  illustration,  I  shall  relate.  When 
certain  persons  voted  to  erect  to  him  a  statue  costing 
twenty-five  myriads,  he  stretched  out  his  hand  and 
said :  ' '  Give  me  the  money ;  this^  will  serve  as  its 
pedestal. ' '  —  And  to  Titus,  who  was  angry  at  the  tax 
on  urinating^,  which  was  appointed  along  with  the  rest, 
he  replied,  as  he  picked  up  some  gold  pieces  that  were 
the  product  of  it :  * '  See,  my  child,  if  they  smell  at  all. ' ' 
In  the  sixth  year  of  Vespasian  as  magistrate  and 
the  fourth  of  Titus  the  precinct  of  Peace  was  dedicated 
and  the  so-called  Colossus  was  set  up  on  the  Sacred  («•  «•  828) 
Way.    It  is  said  to  have  been  one  hundred  feet  high, 

1 1,  e.,  the  hollowed  hand  (compare  Suetonius  Vespasian,  chapter  23). 
2  This  refers  to  conveniences  in  the  public  streets. 

137 


—  15  — 

A,  D.  75 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  to  have  had  —  according  to  one  account  —  the 
figure  of  Nero,  according  to  others  that  of  Titus.  Ves- 
pasian would  often  have  beasts  slain  in  the  theatres. 
He  did  not  particularly  enjoy  gladiatorial  combats  of 
men,  although  Titus  during  the  youthful  sports  which 
were  celebrated  in  his  own  land  had  once  had  a  sham 
fight  in  heavy  armor  with  Alienus.  The  Parthians,  who 
fell  into  a  war  with  some  peoples,  asked  for  an  alliance 
with  him,  but  he  did  not  go  to  their  aid,  saying  that  it 
was  not  proper  for  him  to  interfere  in  other  persons' 
business. 

Berenice  was  at  the  height  of  her  power  and  conse- 
quently came  to  Rome  along  with  her  brother 
Agrippa.^  The  latter  was  accorded  pretorial  honors, 
while  she  dwelt  in  the  Palace  and  cohabited  with  Titus, 
She  expected  to  be  married  to  him  and  behaved  in  all 
respects  as  if  his  wife.  But  when  he  perceived  that  the 
Roman's  were  displeased  at  the  situation  he  sent  her 
away ;  for  various  reports  were  in  circulation.  At  this 
time,  too,  certain  sophists  of  the  cynic  school  managed 
somehow  to  slip  into  the  city:  first,  Diogenes  entered 
the  theatre  when  it  was  full  of  men  and  denounced 
them  in  a  long,  abusive  speech,  for  which  he  was 
flogged;  after  him  Heras,  who  showed  no  greater  dis- 
position to  be  obedient,  gave  vent  to  many  senseless 
bawlings  in  the  true  cynic  (dog-like)  manner, —  and 
for  this  behavior  was  beheaded. 

About  the  same  period  that  these  events  took  place 

1  This  Agrippa,  known  also  as  Herodes  II,  was  an  intimate  friend 
of  the  Jewish  historian  Josephus  and  a  companion  of  Titus  at  the 
siege  of  Jerusalem.  It  was  before  him,  moreover,  that  the  apostle  Paul 
made  his  defence  in  A.  D.  60. 

138 


i 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

it  happened  that  at  a  certain  inn  such  a  quantity  of    a.  d.  75 

■.        -.  .  .  {Or.    u.    828) 

wine  overflowed  the  vessels  that  it  ran  out  into  the 
street.  Moreover,  Sabinus  the  Gaul,  already  mentioned, 
the  person  who  had  once  named  himself  Caesar,  had 
later  taken  up  arms,  had  been  defeated  and  had  hidden 
himself  in  the  monument,  was  discovered^  and  brought 
to  Rome.  With  him  perished  also  his  wife  Peponila, 
who  had  previously  saved  his  life.  She  had  presented 
her  children  before  Vespasian  and  had  delivered  a  most 
pitiful  speech  in  their  behalf:  "  These  little  ones, 
CaBsar,  I  both  brought  forth  and  reared  in  the  monu- 
ment, that  we  might  be  a  greater  number  to  supplicate 
you."  She  caused  both  him  and  the  rest  to  weep;  no 
mercy,  however,  was  shown  to  the  family. 

Meantime  the  emperor  was  also  the  object  of  a  con- 
spiracy on  the  part  of  Alienus  and  Marcellus,  although 
he  considered  them  among  his  best  friends  and  be- 
stowed honors  upon  them  quite  unstintedly.  They  did 
not  succeed  in  killing  him,  though.  Upon  their  being  de- 
tected, Alienus  was  slain  at  once,  in  the  imperial  resi- 
dence itself,  as  he  rose  from  a  meal  with  his  intended 
victim.  Titus  issued  this  order  to  prevent  his  carry- 
ing his  rebellion  any  further  during  the  nig-ht ;  Alienus 
had  already  made  arrangements  with  not  a  few  of  the 
soldiers.  Marcellus  was  brought  to  trial  before  the 
senate  and  was  condemned,  whereupon  he  cut  his  own 
throat  with  a  razor.  Not  even  benefits,  it  may  be  re- 
marked, can  subdue  those  who  are  naturally  vicious,  as 
is  shown  by  the  plotting  of  these  men  against  him  who 
had  done  them  so  many  kindnesses. 

1  The  meaning  is  clear.  Cobet  (Mnemosyne,  N.  S.  X.)  thinks  that 
i<p<opddTj  expresses  the  idea  more  accurately  than  the  commonly 
accepted   ItpavspmOri  (Boissevain  also  l*p(opaOti.) 

139 


i 


{BOOK  66,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

It  was  after  the  episode  just  narrated  that  Vespasian  — 17  — 
fell  sick,  not,  if  the  truth  be  known,  of  his  ordinary  (a.  «.  823) 
gout  but  of  fever  and  passed  away  at  AquaB  Cutilise,* 
so-called,  in  Sabine  territory.  Some,  who  endeavor 
falsely  to  incriminate  Titus  (among  them  the  emperor 
Hadrian)  have  spread  a  report  that  he  was  poisoned  at 
a  banquet.  Portents  had  occurred  in  his  career  indi- 
cating his  approaching  end,  such  as  the  comet  star 
which  was  seen  for  a  considerable  period  and  the  open- 
ing of  the  monument  of  Augustus  of  its  own  accord. 
When  the  sick  man's  physician  chided  him  for  con- 
tinuing his  usual  course  of  living  and  attending  to  all 
the  duties  that  belonged  to  his  office,  he  answered: 
*  *  The  emperor  ought  to  die  on  his  feet. ' '  To  those  who 
said  anything  to  him  about  the  comet  he  responded: 
' '  This  is  an  omen  not  for  me  but  for  the  Parthian  king. 
He  has  flowing  hair  like  the  comet,  whereas  I  am  bald- 
headed."  When  he  at  length  came  to  the  belief  that 
he  was  to  die,  he  said  only:  '*  Now  I  shall  become  a 
god. ' '    He  had  lived  to  the  age  of  sixty-nine  years  and 

1  These  are  mineral  springs,  chiefly  sulphurous  in  nature,  both  hot 
and  cold,  situated  near  the  town  of  Cutilise,  famous  for  its  pool  with 
the  "  floating  island."  Celsus  (On  Medicine,  Book  Four,  chapter  5 
(=12)  )  recommends  bathing  and  standing  in  such  cold  mineral 
springs  as  those  at  Cutiliae  in  caces  where  a  patient  suffers  from  in- 
ability of  the  stomach  to  assimilate  food. —  The  town  itself  is  between 
Reate  and  Interocrea  among  the  Sabines.  (And  compare  Suetonius, 
Vespasian,  chapter  24.) 

141 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  79    eight  months.    His  reign  lasted  ten  years  lacking  six 

{a.   u.   823) 

days.  Accordingly,  it  results  that  from  the  death  of 
Nero  to  Vespasian's  becoming  emperor  a  year  and 
twenty-two  days  elapsed.  I  have  recorded  this  fact  to 
prevent  a  misapprehension  on  the  part  of  any  persons 
who  might  reckon  the  time  with  reference  to  the  men 
who  were  in  power.  They,  however,  did  not  legiti- 
mately succeed  one  another,  but  each  of  them  while  his 
rival  was  alive  and  still  ruling  believed  himself  to  be 
emperor  from  the  moment  that  the  thought  first  en- 
tered his  head.  One  must  not  enumerate  all  the  days 
of  their  reigns  as  if  those  days  had  followed  one  after 
another  in  orderly  succession,  but  make  a  single  sweep- 
ing calculation  with  the  exact  time,  as  I  have  stated  it, 
in  mind. 

—  18  —  At  Ms  death  Titus  succeeded  to  the  imperial  power. 

Titus  as  a  ruler  committed  no  act  of  murder  or  pas- 
sion, but  showed  himself  upright,  though  the  victim 
of  plots,  and  self -controlled,  though  Berenice  came  to 
Rome  again.  Perhaps  this  was  because  he  had  under- 
gone a  change.  (To  share  a  reign  with  somebody  else 
is  a  very  different  thing  from  being  one's  self  an  inde- 
pendent ruler.  In  the  former  case  persons  are  heed- 
less of  the  good  name  of  the  sovereignty  and  enjoy 
greedily  the  authority  it  gives  them,  thus  doing  many 
things  that  make  their  position  the  object  of  envy  and 
slander.  Actual  monarchs,  on  the  other  hand,  knowing 
that  everything  depends  on  their  decision,  have  some 
eye  to  good  repute  as  well  as  to  other  matters.  So 
Titus  said  to  somebody  whose  society  he  had  previously 

142 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

affected:    "  It  is  not  the  same  ilams:  to  desire  some-    a.  d.  79 

^  ^  (a.   u.  832) 

thing  from  another  as  to  decide  a  case  yourself,  nor 

to  ask  something  from  another  as  it  is  to  give  it  to  some 
one  yourself.")  Perhaps  his  satisfactory  conduct  was 
also  due  to  his  surviving  so  short  a  time  compared  with 
most  rulers,  for  he  was  thus  given  little  opportunity 
for  wrongdoing.  For  he  lived  after  this  only  two 
years,  two  months  and  twenty  days  in  addition  to  his 
thirty-nine  years,  five  months  and  twenty-five  days. 
People  compare  this  feature  of  Titus 's  career  with  the 
fullness  of  years  of  Augustus,  and  say  that  the  latter 
would  never  have  won  affection  if  he  had  lived  a 
shorter  time,  nor  the  former,  if  he  had  lived  longer. 
Augustus,  though  at  the  outset  he  had  shown  himself 
rather  harsh  because  of  the  wars  and  the  political  fac- 
tions, was  able  later  in  the  course  of  time  to  become 
distinguished  for  his  kindnesses:  Titus  ruled  with 
forbearance  and  died  at  the  summit  of  his  glory, 
whereas  if  he  had  enjoyed  a  longer  life,  it  might  have 
been  proved  that  he  owes  his  present  fame  more  to 
good  fortune  than  to  virtue. 

It  is  worth  noting  that  Titus  during  his  reign  put  no  _  19  __ 
senator  to  death,  nor  was  any  one  else  slain  by  him  all 
the  time  that  he  was  emperor.  Cases  involving  ma- 
iestas  he  would  never  entertain  himself  nor  allow 
others  to  entertain,  for  he  said :  *  *  It  is  impossible  for 
me  to  be  insulted  or  outraged  in  any  way.  I  do  naught 
that  deserves  censure  and  I  care  not  for  what  is  falsely 
reported.  As  for  the  emperors  that  are  dead  and 
gone,  they  will  avenge  themselves  in  case  any  one  does 

143 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  79    them  wrong,  if  in  very  truth  they  be  heroes  and  pos- 

(a.    u.    832)  ,,       TT        1  J 

sess  some  power."— He  also  made  various  arrange- 
ments to  render  men  more  secure  and  free  from 
trouble.  One  of  these  was  the  posting  of  a  notice  con- 
jBrming  all  gifts  bestowed  upon  any  person  by  the  for- 
mer emperors.  This  also  enabled  him  to  avoid  the 
nuisance  of  having  people  petition  htm  individually 
about  the  matter. —  Informers  he  banished  from  the 
city. 

In  money  matters  he  was  frugal  and  sanctioned  no  imnecessary  ex- 
penditure, yet  he  did  not  punish  any  one  for  opposite  tendencies. 

In  his  reign  also  the  False  Nero  appeared,  who  was  an  Asiatic  and 
called  himself  Terentius  Maximus.  He  resembled  Nero  in  form  and 
voice:  he  even  sang  to  the  zither's  accompaniment.  He  gained  a  few 
followers  in  Asia  and  in  his  onward  progress  to  the  Euphrates  he 
secured  a  far  greater  number  and  at  length  sought  a  retreat  with 
Artabanus,  the  Parthian  chief,  who,  out  of  the  anger  that  he  felt  to- 
ward Titus,  both  received  the  pretender  and  set  about  preparations  for 
restoring  him  to  Rome,     (Compare  John  of  Antioch,  frag.  104  Mueller.) 

_20—  Meantime  war  had  again  broken  out  in  Britain,  and 
Gnaeus  Julius  Agricola  overran  the  whole  of  the  hostile 
region.  He  was  the  first  of  the  Eomans  whom  we 
know  to  discover  that  Britain  was  surrounded  by  water. 
Some  soldiers  had  rebelled  and  after  killing  centurions 
and  a  military  tribune  had  taken  refuge  in  boats.  In 
these  they  put  out  to  sea  and  sailed  around  to  the  west- 
em  portion  of  the  country  just  as  the  billows  and  the 
wind  bore  them.  And  without  knowing  it  they  came 
around  from  the  opposite  side  and  stopped  at  the 
camps  on  this  side  again.  At  that  Agricola  sent  others 
to  try  the  voyage  around  Britain  and  learned  from 
them,  too,  that  it  was  an  island. 

144 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

As  a  result  of  these  events  in  Britain  Titus  received    a.  d.  79 

(a.    u.    832) 

the  title  of  imperator  for  the  fifteenth  time.  Agricola 
for  the  rest  of  his  life  lived  in  dishonor  and  even  in 
want  because  he  had  accomplished  greater  things  than 
a  mere  general  should.  Finally  he  was  murdered  on 
this  account  by  Domitian,  in  spite  of  having  received 
triumphal  honors  from  Titus. 

In  Campania  remarkable  and  frightful  occurrences  —21-- 
took  place.  A  great  fire  was  suddenly  created  just  at 
the  end  of  autumn.  It  was  this  way.  The  mountain 
Vesuvius  stands  over  against  Naples  near  the  sea  and 
has  unquenchable  springs  of  fire.  Once  it  was  equally 
high  at  all  points  and  the  fire  rose  from  the  center  of 
it.  This  is  the  only  portion  of  it  that  is  in  a  blaze,  for 
the  outside  parts  of  the  mountain  remain  even  now 
unkindled.  Consequently,  as  the  latter  are  never 
burned,  while  the  interior  is  constantly  growing  brittle 
and  being  reduced  to  ashes,  the  surrounding  peaks  re- 
tain their  original  height  to  this  day,  but  the  whole  sec- 
tion that  is  on  fire,  as  it  is  consumed  in  the  course  of 
time,  has  grown  hollow  from  continual  collapse.  Thus 
the  entire  mountain,  if  we  may  compare  great  things 
to  small,  resembles  a  hunting-theatre.  The  outlying 
heights  of  it  support  both  trees  and  vines, —  many  of 
them, —  but  the  crater  is  given  over  to  fire  and  sends 
up  smoke  by  day,  flame  by  night.  It  looks  as  if  quanti- 
ties of  incense  of  all  sorts  were  being  burned  in  it. 
This  goes  on  all  the  time,  sometimes  more,  sometimes 
less.  Often  it  throws  up  ashes,  when  there  is  a  general 
settling  in  the  interior,  or  again  it  sends  up  stones 
VOL.  5-10  145 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ^'  ILx  when  the  air  forces  them  out.    It  echoes  and  bellows, 

(a.    u.    832)  ' 

too,  because  its  vents  are  not  all  together  but  are  nar- 
row and  hidden. 
—  22—  Such  is  Vesuvius,  and  these  phenomena  regularly 
occur  there  at  least  once  a  year.  But  all  the  other 
happenings  that  took  place  in  former  time,  though  they 
may  have  seemed  great  and  unusual  to  those  who  on 
each  occasion  observed  them,  nevertheless  would  be 
reckoned  as  but  slight  in  comparison  with  what  now 
occurred  even  though  they  should  all  be  rolled  into  one. 
This  was  what  befell.  Numbers  of  huge  men  quite  sur- 
passing any  human  stature,—  such  creatures  as  giants 
are  depicted  to  be, —  appeared  now  on  the  mountain, 
now  in  the  country  surrounding  it,  and  again  in  the 
cities,  wandering  over  the  earth  day  and  night  and  also 
traversing  the  air.  After  this  fearful  droughts  and 
earthquakes  sudden  and  violent  occurred,  so  that  all 
the  level  ground  in  that  region  undulated  and  the 
heights  gave  a  great  leap.  Reverberations  were  fre- 
quent, some  subterranean  resembling  thunder  and  some 
on  the  surface  like  bellowings.  The  sea  joined  the  roar 
and  the  sky  resounded  with  it.  Then  suddenly  a  por- 
tentous crash  was  heard,  as  if  the  mountains  were 
tumbling  in  ruins.  And  first  there  were  belched  forth 
stones  of  huge  size  that  rose  to  the  very  summits  before 
they  fell ;  after  them  came  a  deal  of  fire  and  smoke  in 
inexhaustible  quantities  so  that  the  whole  atmosphere 
was  obscured  and  the  whole  sun  was  screened  from 
view  as  if  in  an  eclipse.  Thus  night  succeeded  day 
and  darkness  light.    Some  thought  the  giants  were 

146 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

rising  in  revolt  (for  even  at  this  time  many  of  their    ^-  '^-  79 

^  ^  ''  {a.    u.    832) 

forms  could  be  discerned  in  the  smoke  and  moreover 
a  kind  of  sound  of  trumpets  was  heard),  while  others 
believed  that  the  whole  world  was  disappearing  in 
chaos  or  fire.  Therefore  they  fled,  some  from  the 
houses  into  the  streets,  others  from  without  into  the 
house;  in  their  confusion,  indeed,  they  hastened  from 
the  sea  to  the  land  or  from  the  land  to  the  sea,  deem- 
ing any  place  at  a  distance  from  where  they  were  safer 
than  what  was  near  by.  While  this  was  going  on  an 
inconceivable  amount  of  ashes  was  blown,  out  and  cov- 
ered the  land  and  the  sea  everywhere  and  filled  all  the 
air.  It  did  harm  of  all  sorts,  as  chance  dictated,  to 
men  and  places  and  cattle,  and  the  fish  and  the  birds 
it  utterly  destroyed.  Moreover,  it  buried  two  whole 
cities,  Herculaneum  and  Pompeii,  while  the  populace 
was  seated  in  the  theatre.  The  entire  amount  of  dust 
was  so  great  that  some  of  it  reached  Africa  and  Syria 
and  Egypt,  and  it  also  entered  Rome,  where  it  occupied 
all  the  air  over  the  city  and  cast  the  sun  into  shadow. 
There,  too,  no  little  fear  was  felt  for  several  days,  since 
the  people  did  not  know  and  could  not  conjecture  what 
had  happened.  They  like  the  rest  thought  that  every- 
thing was  being  turned  upside  down,  that  the  sun  was 
disappearing  in  the  earth  and  the  earth  was  bounding 
up  to  the  sky.  This  ashes  for  the  time  being  did 
them  no  great  harm :  later  it  bred  among  them  a  ter- 
rible pestilence. 

Another  fire,  above  ground,  in  the  following  year    T^'Tk 
spread  over  a  very  large  portion  of  Rome  while  Titus  («.  «•  833) 

147 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

was  absent  on  business  connected  with  the  catastrophe 
that  had  befallen  in  Campania.  It  consumed  the 
temple  of  Serapis,  the  temple  of  Isis,  the  Ssspta,  the 
temple  of  Neptune,  the  Baths  of  Agrippa,  the  Pan- 
theon, the  Diribitorium,  the  theatre  of  Balbus,  the 
stage-building  of  Pompey's  theatre,  the  Octavian 
buildings  together  with  their  books,  and  the  temple 
of  Capitoline  Jupiter  with  its  surrounding  temples. 
Hence  the  disaster  seemed  to  be  not  of  human  but  of 
divine  contrivance.  Any  one  can  estimate  from  the 
list  of  buildings  that  I  have  given,  how  many  more  must 
have  been  destroyed.  Titus,  accordingly,  sent  two  ex- 
consuls  to  the  Campanians  to  supervise  the  founding 
of  settlements  and  bestowed  upon  the  inhabitants 
money  that  came  (besides  various  other  sources)  from 
those  citizens  that  had  died  without  heirs.  As  for  him- 
self, he  took  nothing  from  individual  or  city  or  king, 
although  many  kept  offering  and  promising  him  large 
sums.  In  spite  of  this,  he  restored  everything  from 
funds  already  at  hand.  Most  of  his  deeds  had  no  un- 
usual quality  to  mark  them,  but  in  dedicating  the  hunt- 
ing-theatre and  the  baths  that  bear  his  name  he  pro- 
duced many  remarkable  spectacles.  Cranes  fought  with 
one  another,  and  four  elephants,  as  well  as  other  graz- 
ing animals  and  wild  beasts,  to  the  number  of  nine 
thousand,  were  slaughtered,  and  women  (not  of  any 
prominence,  however,)  took  part  in  despatching  them. 
Of  men  several  fought  in  single  combat  and  several 
groups  contended  together  in  infantry  and  naval 
battles.    For  Titus  filled  the  above  mentioned  theatre 

148 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

suddenly  with  water  and  introduced  horses  and  bulls 
and  some  other  tractable  creatures  that  had  been 
taught  to  behave  in  the  liquid  element  precisely  as  upon 
land.  He  introduced  also  human  beings  on  boats. 
These  persons  had  a  sea-fight  there,  impersonating 
two  parties,  Corcyreans  and  Corinthians :  others  gave 
the  same  performance  outside  in  the  grove  of  Gaius 
and  Lucius,  a  spot  which  Augustus  had  formerly  ex- 
cavated for  this  very  purpose.  There,  on  the  first  day, 
a  gladiatorial  combat  and  slaughter  of  beasts  took 
place ;  this  was  done  by  building  a  structure  of  planks 
over  the  lake  that  faced  the  images  and  placing  benches 
round  about  it.  On  the  second  day  there  was  a  horse- 
race, and  on  the  third  a  naval  battle  involving  three 
thousand  men.  Afterwards  there  was  also  an  infantry 
battle.  The  Athenians  conquered  the  Syracusans 
(these  were  the  names  that  were  used  in  the  naval 
battle),  made  a  landing  on  the  islet,  and  having  as- 
saulted a  wall  constructed  around  the  monument  took 
it.  These  were  the  sights  offered  to  spectators,  and 
they  lasted  for  a  hundred  days. 

Titus  also  contributed  some  things  that  were  of 
practical  use  to  the  people.  He  would  throw  down  into 
the  theatre  from  aloft  little  wooden  balls  that  had  a 
mark,  one  signifying  something  to  eat,  another  cloth- 
ing, another  a  silver  vessel,  or  perhaps  a  gold  one,  or 
again  horses,  pack-animals,  cattle,  slaves.  Those  who 
snatched  them  had  to  carry  them  back  to  the  dispensers 
of  the  bounty  to  secure  the  article  of  which  the  name 
was  inscribed. 

When  he  had  finished  this  exhibition,  he  wept  so 
bitterly  on  the  last  day  that  all  the  people  saw  him, 

149 


—  26  — 


A.  D.  81 
o.   u.    834) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  after  this  time  lie  performed  no  other  great  deed ; 
but  the  following  year,  in  the  consulship  of  Flavins^ 
and  Pollio,^  subsequent  to  the  dedication  of  the  build- 
ings mentioned,  he  passed  away  at  the  same  Aquas  that 
was  the  scene  of  his  father's  demise.  The  common 
report  had  it  that  he  was  done  to  death  by  his  brother, 
for  he  had  previously  been  the  object  of  that  person's 
plot :  but  some  writers  state  that  a  disease  carried  him 
off.  The  tradition  is  that,  while  he  was  still  breathing 
and  had  a  possible  chance  of  recovery,  Domitian,  to 
hasten  his  end,  put  him  in  a  box  packed  with  a  quantity 

of  snow,  pretending  that  the  disease  required  a  chill  to  be  ad- 
ministered; and,  before  his  victim  was  dead,  he  rode  off 
to  Rome,  entered  the  camp,  and  received  the  title  and 
authority  of  emperor,  having  given  the  soldiers  all  that 
his  brother  had  been  wont  to  give  them.  Titus,  as  he 
expired,  said :  *  *  I  have  made  but  one  error. ' '  What 
this  was  he  did  not  reveal,  and  no  one  else  feels  quite 
sure  about  it.  Some  have  conjectured  one  thing  and 
some  another.  The  prevailing  impression,  according 
to  one  set  of  historians,  is  that  he  referred  to  keeping 
his  brother's  wife,  Domitia.  Others  (whom  I  am  for 
following)  say  what  he  meant  was  that,  after  finding 
Domitian  openly  plotting  against  him,  he  had  not  killed 
him,  but  had  chosen  rather  himself  to  suffer  that  fate 
at  his  rival's  hands  and  to  surrender  the  government 
of  Rome  to  a  man  whose  nature  will  be  portrayed  in  the 
continuation  of  my  narrative.  Titus  had  ruled  for  two 
years,  two  months,  and  twenty  days,  as  has  been  pre- 
viously stated. 

1 L.  Flavins  Silva  Nonius  Bassus. 
2  Asinvus  Pollio  Verrucosus. 

150 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

67 


151 


Domitiau's  cruel  character:  his  hatred  of  his  father  and 
brother  (chapters  1,  2). 

He  puts  aside  Bomitia:  falls  in  love  with  Tnlia:  slays  the 
Vestals  (chapters). 

The  German  war  (chapters   4,  5). 

Dacian  war  with  Decebalus  (chapters  6,  7) . 

Domitian's  nocturnal  spectacles  and  entertainments  (chap- 
ters 8,  9). 

Events  of  the  Bacian  war  (chapter  10). 

Antonius,  governor  of  Germany,  rebels:  many  are  slain 
(chapters  11-14). 

How  Bomitian  was  killed  through  snares  laid  by  certain  men 
(chapters  15-18). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

L.  Fl.  Silva  Nonius  Bassus,  Asinius  PoUio  Verrucosus  Coss. 
(A.  B.  81  =  a.  u.  834  =  First  of  Bomitian,  from  Sept.  13th.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (Vni),  T.  Flavins  Sabinus.  (A.  B.  82  = 
a.  u.  835  =;  Second  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (IX),  Q.  PetiHus  Eufus  (II).  (A.  B.  83  = 
a.  u.  836  —  Third  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (X),  T.  Aurelius  Sabinus.  (A.  B.  84  = 
a.  u.  837=:  Fourth  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (XI),  T.  Aurelius  Fulvus.  (A.  B.  85= 
a.  u.  838  =  Fifth  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (XII),  Ser.  Cornelius  BolabeUa.  (A.  B.  86 
=  a.  u.  839  =  Sixth  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (XIII),  A.  Volusius  Satuminus.  (A.  B.  87 
==  a.  u.  840  =  Seventh  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (XIV),  L.  Minucius  Bufus.  (A.  B.  88  = 
a.  u.  841  ==:  Eighth  of  Bomitian.) 

T.  Aurelius  Fulvus  (II),  A.  Sempronius  Atratinus.  (A.  B. 
89  =  a.  u.  842  =  Ninth  of  Bomitian.) 

Bomitianus  Aug.  (XV),  M.  Cocceius  Nerva  (11).  (A.  B.  90 
=  a.  u.  843  =  Tenth  of  Bomitian.) 

M.  TJlpius  Traianus,  Manius  Acilius  Glabrio.  (A.  B.  91  = 
a.  u.  844  =;  Eleventh  of  Bomitian.) 


DomitianTis  Ang.  (XVI),  Q.  Valusius  Satnminus.  (A.D.  92== 
a.  u.  845  ==!  Twelfth  of  Domitian.) 

Sex.  Pompema  Collega,  Comelitui  Priscua.     (A.  D.  93  =  a.  u. 

846  =  Thirteenth  of  Domitian.) 

L.  Nonius  Asprenas,  M.  Arricinins  Clemens.    (A.  D.  94  =^  a.  n. 

847  =:  Fourteenth  of  Domitian.) 

Domitianus  Aug.  (XVII),  T.  Flavins  Clemens.  (A.  D.  95  = 
a.  n.  848  =3  Fifteenth  of  Domitian.) 

Manlins  Valens,  Antistins  Vetns.  (A.  D.  96=;  a.  a.  849  = 
Sixteenth  of  Domitian,  to  Sept.  18th.) 


{BOOK  67,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Domitian  was  botli  bold  and  passionate,  both  treach-  —  i  — 
erous  and  given  to  dissembling.  Hence,  from  these  two  (a.' «.'  834) 
characteristics,  rashness  on  the  one  hand  and  crafti- 
ness on  the  other,  he  did  much  harm,  falling  upon  some 
persons  with  the  swiftness  of  a  thunderbolt  and 
damaging  others  by  carefully  prepared  plots.  The 
divinity  that  he  chiefly  revered  was  Minerva,  so  that 
he  was  wont  to  celebrate  the  Panathenaea  on  a  magni- 
ficent scale :  on  this  occasion  he  had  contests  of  poets 
and  chroniclers  and  gladiators  almost  every  year  at 
Albanum.  This  district,  situated  below  the  Alban 
Mount,  from  which  it  was  named,  he  had  set  apart  as  a 
kind  of  acropolis.  He  had  no  genuine  affection  for  any 
human  being  save  a  few  women,  but  he  always  pre- 
tended to  love  the  person  whom  at  any  time  he  was 
most  determined  to  slay.  He  could  not  be  relied  uponi 
even  by  those  who  did  him  some  favor  or  helped  him 
in  his  most  revolting  crimes,  for  whenever  any  persons 
furnished  him  with  large  sums  of  money  or  lodged  in- 
formation against  numbers  of  men,  he  was  sure  to  de- 
stroy these  benefactors,  being  especially  careful  to  do 
so  in  the  case  of  slaves  who  had  given  information 
against  their  masters.  [Accordingly,  such  individuals, 
though  they  received  money  and  honors  and  offices  all 
at  once  from  him,  lived  in  no  greater  honor  and  security 
than  other  men.    The  very  offences  to  which  they  had 

155 


DIO'S  KOMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D-  82    been  urged  by  Domitian  commonly  were  made  pretexts 

(a.    u.    835) 

for  their  destruction,  the  emperor's  object  being  to 
have  the  actual  perpetrators  appear  solely  respon- 
sible for  their  wrongdoing.  It  was  the  same  intention 
which  led  him  once  to  issue  a  public  notice  to  the  effect 
that,  when  an  emperor  does  not  punish  informers,  he 
is  the  cause  of  the  existence  of  such  a  class.] 
—2—  Though  this  was  his  behavior  to  all  throughout  the 
course  of  his  reign,  still  he  quite  outdid  himself  in  deal- 
ing dishonor  and  ruin  to  his  father's  and  brother's 
friends.  [To  be  sure,  he  himself  posted  a  notice  that 
he  would  ratify  all  the  gifts  made  to  any  persons  by 
them  and  by  other  emperors.  But  this  was  mere 
show.]  He  hated  them  because  they  did  not  supply  all 
his  demands,  many  of  which  were  unreasonable,  as  also 
because  they  had  been  held  ia  some  honor.  [Whatever 
had  enjoyed  their  affection  and  the  benefit  of  their 
influence  beyond  the  ordinary  he  regarded  as  hostile 
to  him.]  Therefore,  although  he  himself  had  a  pas- 
sion for  a  eunuch  named  Earinus,  nevertheless,  because 
Titus  had  also  shown  great  likiug  for  castrated  persons, 
he  carried  his  desire  to  cast  reflections  on  his  brother's 
character  to  the  extent  of  forbidding  any  one  thereafter 
in  the  Roman  empire  to  be  castrated.  In  general,  he 
was  accustomed  to  say  that  those  emperors  who  failed 
to  punish  large  numbers  of  men  were  not  good,  but 
merely  fortunate.  [Personally,  he  paid  no  attention  to 
those  who  praised  Titus  for  not  causing  a  single  sen- 
ator's death,  nor  did  he  care  that  the  senate  frequently 
saw  fit  to  pass  decrees  that  the  emperor  should  not  be 

156 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

permitted  to  put  to  death  any  of  his  peers.  The  em-  .J^-^-  ^^^. 
peror,  as  he  believed,  was  far  and  away  superior  to 
them  and  might  put  any  one  of  them  out  of  the  way 
either  on  his  own  responsibility  or  with  the  consent  of 
the  rest;  it  was  ridiculous  to  suppose  that  they  could 
offer  any  opposition  or  refuse  to  condemn  a  man.  Some 
would  praise  Titus,  only  not  in  Domitian's  hearing; 
for  such  effrontery  would  be  deemed  as  grave  an 
offence  as  if  they  were  to  revile  the  emperor  in  his 

presence  and  within  hearing :  but^ 

because  he  understood  that  they  were  doing  this  se- 
cretly  Then  there  was  another  thing]  that  re- 
sembled play-acting.  Domitian  pretended  that  he  too 
loved  his  brother  and  mourned  him.  He  read,  with 
tears,  the  eulogies  upon  him  [and  hastened  to  have  him 
enrolled  among  the  heroes],  pretending  just  the  oppo- 
site of  what  he  really  wished.  (Indeed,  he  abolished  the 
horse-race  on  Titus's  birthday.)  People  in  general 
were  not  safe  whether  they  sympathized  with  his  indig- 
nation or  with  his  joy.  In  one  case  they^  were  sure  to 
offend  his  feelings  and  in  the  other  to  let  their  lack  of 
genuineness  appear. 

His  wife,  Domitia,  he  planned  to  put  to  death  on  the    XrD."83 
ground  of  adultery,  but,  having  been  dissuaded  by  ^"-  "•  ^^^^ 
Ursus,  he  sent  her  away  and  midway  on  the  road 
murdered  Paris,  the  dancer,  because  of  her.     And 
when  many  people  paid  honor  to  that  spot  with  flowers 

1  A  gap  must  probably  be  construed  here.  Bekker  ( followed  by  Din- 
dorf )  regarded  it  as  coming  after  "  secretly  "  and  consisting  of  but  a 
word  or  two  ( e.  g.  "  he  hated  them  " )  but  Boissevain  locates  it  aa  in- 
dicated above  and  believes  that  considerably  more  is  missing. 

a  Reading  sfxsXXov   (Dindorf,  Boissevain). 

157 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ^' ^^^.  and  perfumes,  he  ^ave  orders  that  they,  too,  should 

[a.   u.   836)  .7  jy  ' 

be  slain.  After  this  he  took  into  his  house,  quit«  un- 
disguisedly,  his  own  niece,—  Julia,  that  is  to  say. 
[Then  on  petition  of  the  people  he  became  reconciled, 
to  be  sure,  with  Domitia,  but  continued  none  the  less 
his  relations  with  Julia,] 

HHe  was  removing  many  of  the  foremost  men  on 
many  pretexts  and  by  means  of  murders  and  banish- 
ments. [He  also  conveyed  many  to  some  out-of-the-way 
place,  where  he  got  rid  of  them ;  and  not  a  few  he  caused 
to  die  in  some  way  or  other  by  their  own  acts  that  they 
might  seem  to  have  suffered  death  by  their  own  wish 
and  not  through  outside  force.]  He  did  not  spare  even 
the  vestal  virgins,  but  punished  them  on  charges  of 
their  having  had  intercourse  with  men.  It  is  further 
reported  that  since  their  examination  was  conducted  in 
a  harsh  and  unfeeling  manner,  and  many  of  them  were 
accused  and  constantly  being  punished,  one  of  the  pon- 
tifices,  Helvius  Agrippa,  could  not  endure  it,  but, 
horror-stricken,  expired  there  in  the  senate  where  he 
sat.  [Domitian  also  took  pride  in  the  fact  that  he  did 
not  bury  alive,  as  was  the  custom,  the  virgins  he  found 
guilty  of  debauchery,  but  ordered  them  to  be  killed  by 
some  different  way.] 

After  this  he  set  out  for  Gaul  and  plundered  some  of  the  tribes 
across  the  Rhine  enjoying  treaty  rights, —  a  performance  which  filled 
him  with  conceit  as  if  he  had  achieved  some  great  success.  Presumably 
on  account  of  the  victory  he  increased  the  soldiers'  wages,  so  that 
whereas  each  had  been  receiving  seventy-five  denarii  he  commanded  that 
a  hundred  be  given  them.  Later  he  thought  better  of  it,  but  instead  of 
diminishing  the  amount  he  curtailed  the  number  of  men-at-arms.  Both 
of  these  steps  entailed  great  injury  to  the  public  weal:  he  had  made 
the  defenders  of  the  State  too  few,  while  rendering  their  support  an  item 
of  great  expense. 

158 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Next  he  made  a  campaign  into  Germany  and  re-  —  4  — 
turned  without  having  seen  a  trace  of  war  anywhere,  (a.  u.  837) 
And  what  need  is  there  of  mentioning  the  honors  be- 
stowed upon  him  at  this  juncture  for  his  exploit  or 
from  time  to  time  upon  the  other  emperors  who  were 
like  him  ?  For  the  object  in  any  case  was  simply  not  to 
arouse  the  rage  of  those  despots  by  letting  them  sus- 
pect, in  consequence  of  the  small  number  and  insig- 
nificance of  the  rewards,  that  the  people  saw  through 
them.  Yet  Domitian  had  this  worst  quality  of  all, 
that  he  desired  to  be  flattered,  and  was  equally  dis- 
pleased with  both  sorts  of  men,  those  who  paid  court  to 
him  and  those  who  did  not.  He  disliked  the  former 
because  their  attitude  seemed  one  of  cajolery  and  the 
latter  because  it  seemed  one  of  contempt.  Notwith- 
standing [he  affected  to  take  pleasure  in  the  honorary 
decrees  voted  him  by  the  senate.  XJrsus  he  came  near 
killing  because  he  was  not  pleased  with  his  sovereign's 
exploits,  and  then,  at  the  request  of  Julia,  he  appointed 
him  consul.]  Subsequently,  being  still  more  puffed  up 
by  his  folly,  he  was  elected  consul  for  ten  years  in  suc- 
cession, and  first  and  only  censor  for  life  of  all  private 
citizens  and  emperors:  and  he  obtained  the  right  to 
employ  twenty-four  lictors  and  the  triumphal  garb 
whenever  he  entered  the  senate-house.  He  gave 
October  a  new  name,  Domitianum,  because  he  had  been 
bom  in  that  month.  Among  the  charioteers  he  insti- 
tuted two  more  parties,  calling  one  the  Golden  and  the 
other  the  Purple.  To  the  spectators  he  gave  many  ob- 
jects by  means  of  balls  thrown  among  them ;  and  once 

159 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ^'sr-\  ^®  gave  them  a  banquet  while  they  remained  in  their 
seats  and  at  night  provided  for  them  wine  that  flowed 
out  in  several  different  places.  All  this  caused  pleasure 
seemingly  to  the  populace,  but  was  a  source  of  ruin  to 
the  powerful.  For,  as  he  had  no  resources  for  his  ex- 
penditures, he  murdered  numbers  of  men,  bringing 
some  of  them  before  the  senate  and  accusing  others  in 
their  absence.  Lastly,  he  put  some  out  of  the  way  by 
concocting  a  plot  and  administering  to  them  secret 
drugs. 

Many  of  the  peoples  tributary  to  the  Romans  revolted  when  contribu- 
tions of  money  were  forcibly  extorted  from  them.  The  Nasamones  are 
an  instance  in  point.  They  massacred  all  the  collectors  of  the  money 
and  so  thoroughly  defeated  Flaccus,!  governor  of  Numidia,  who  attacked 
them,  that  they  were  able  to  plunder  his  camp.  Having  gorged  them- 
selves on  the  provisions  and  the  wine  that  they  found  there  they  fell 
into  a  slumber,  and  Flaccus  becoming  aware  of  this  fact  assailed  and 
annihilated  them  all  and  destroyed  the  non-combatants.  Domitian  ex- 
perienced a  thrill  of  delight  at  the  news  and  remarked  to  the  senate: 
"  Well,  I  have  put  a  ban  on  the  existence  of  the  Nasamones." 

Even  as  early  as  this  he  was  insisting  upon  being  regarded  as  a  god 
and  took  a  huge  pleasure  in  being  called  "  master  "  and  "  god."  These 
titles  were  used  not  merely  orally  but  also  in  documents. 

—  6—  The  greatest  war  that  the  Eomans  had  on  their 

(o.  a.  839)  hands  at  this  time  was  one  against  the  Dacians.  Dece- 
balus  was  now  king  of  the  latter  [since  Douras,  to 
whom  the  sovereignty  belonged,  had  voluntarily  with- 
drawn from  it  in  favor  of  Decebalus,  because].  He 
had  a  good  comprehension  of  the  rules  of  warfare  and 
was  good  at  putting  them  in  practice,  displayed  sa- 
gacity in  advancing,  took  the  right  moment  for  retreat- 
ing, was  an  expert  in  ambuscades,  a  professional  war- 
rior, knew  how  to  make  good  use  of  a  victory  and  how 

1  Probably   Cn.  SuelUus  Flaccus. 

160 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

to  turn  a  defeat  to  advantage.    Hence  he  showed  him-    A-  ^-  s^. 

^  (a.   M.   839] 

self  for  a  long  time  a  worthy  antagonist  of  the  Romans. 

I  call  the  people  Dacians,  just  as  they  name  them- 
selves and  as  the  Romans  do;  but  I  am  not  ignorant 
that  some  of  the  Greeks  refer  to  them  as  Getae,  whether 
that  is  the  right  term  or  not.  I  myself  know  Getae  that 
live  along  the  Ister,  beyond  the  Hsemus  range. 

Domitian  made  an  expedition  against  them,  to  be 
sure,  but  did  not  enter  into  real  conflict.  [Instead,  he 
remained  in  a  city  of  Moesia,  rioting,  as  was  his  wont.] 
(Not  only  was  he  averse  to  physical  labor  and  timorous 
in  spirit,  but  also  most  profligate  and  lewd  toward 
women  and  boys  alike.)  But  he  sent  others  to  oJBficer 
the  war  and  for  the  most  part  he  got  the  worst  of  it. 

1[  Decebalus,  king  of  the  Daeians,  carried  on  negotiations  with  Domitian,  A.  D.  87 1 
promising  him  peace.  Domitian  sent  against  him  Fuscusi  with  a  large 
force.  On  learning  of  it  Decebalus  sent  an  embassy  to  him  anew,  sar- 
castically proposing  to  make  peace  with  the  emperor  in  case  each  oT 
the  Romans  should  choose  to  pay  two  asses  as  tribute  to  Decebalus  each 
year;  if  they  should  not  choose  to  do  so,  he  affirmed  that  he  should 
make  war  and  afflict  them  with  great  ills. 

Dio   67th  Book   "  When  the  soldiers  making  the  cam- 
paign with  Fuscus  asked  him  to  lead  them." 

Meantime  he  conceived  a  wish  to  take  measures     —  7  — 

A.  D.  90 

against  the  Quadi  and  the  Marcomani  because  they  had  (a.  «.  843] 
not  assisted  him  against  the  Dacians.    So  he  entered 
Pannonia  to  make  war  upon  them,  and  the  second  set 
of  envoys  that  they  sent  in  regard  to  peace  he  killed. 

^  The  same  man  laid  the  blame  for  his  defeat,  how-     —  o  — 
ever,  upon  his  commanders.    All  the  superior  plans  he 
claimed  for  himself,  though  he  executed  none  of  them, 

1  Cornelius  Fuscus,  pretorian  prefect. 

VOL.  5  — 11.  161 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  90    i3ut  for  the  inferior  management  he  blamed  others,  even 

(a.   u.   843)  *^  ' 

though  it  was  through  his  orders  that  some  accident 
had  taken  place.  Those  who  succeeded  incurred  his 
hatred  and  those  who  failed  his  censure. 

^  Domitian,  being  defeated  by  the  Marcomani,  took 
to  flight  and  by  hastily  sending  messages  to  Decebalus, 
king  of  the  Dacians,  induced  him  to  make  a  truce  with 
him.  The  monarch's  frequent  previous  requests  had 
always  met  with  refusal.  Decebalus  now  accepted  the 
arrangement,  for  he  was  indeed  hard  pressed,  yet  he 
did  not  wish  personally  to  hold  a  conference  with  Domi- 
tian, but  sent  Diegis  with  other  men  to  give  him  the 
arms  and  a  few  captives,  whom  he  pretended  were  the 
only  ones  he  had.  Wh.en  this  had  been  accomplished, 
Domitian  set  a  diadem  on  the  head  of  Diegis,  just  as  if 
he  had  in  very  truth  conquered  and  could  make  some 
one  king  over  the  Dacians.  To  the  soldiers  he  granted 
honors  and  money.  Like  a  victor,  again,  he  sent  on 
ahead  to  Rome,  besides- many  other  things,  envoys  from 
Decebalus,  and  something  which  he  affirmed  was  a 
letter  of  his,  though  rumor  declared  it  had  been  forged. 
He  graced  the  festival  that  followed  with  many  articles 
pertaining  to  a  triumph,  though  they  did  not  belong  to 
any  booty  he  had  taken;  —  quite  the  reverse:  and  be- 
sides allowing  the  truce  he  made  an  outlay  of  a  great 
deal  of  money  immediately  and  also  presented  to  De- 
cebalus artisans  of  every  imaginable  profession,  peace- 
ful and  warlike,  and  promised  that  he  would  give  him 
a  great  deal  more.  These  exhibits  came  from  the 
imperial  furniture  which  he  at  all  times  treated  as 

162 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

captive  goods,  because  lie  had  enslaved  the  empire    -^-  ^-  ^o 
itself.]  "■  "*  ^^^^ 

So  many  rewards  were  voted  him  that  almost  the     —8  — 

A.  D.  91 

whole  world  (so  far  as  under  his  dominion)  was  filled  (a.  u.  844) 

with  his  images  and  statues  of  both  silver  and  gold. 

He  also  gave  an  extremely  costly  spectacle  in  regard 

to  which  we  have  noted  nothing  that  was  striking  for 

historical  record,  save  that  virgins  contended  in  the 

foot-race.    After  this,  in  the  course  of  holding  what 

seem  to  have  been  triumphal  celebrations,  he  arranged 

numerous  contests.    First  of  all,  in  the  hippodrome  he 

had  battles  of  infantry  against  infantry,  and  again 

battles  of  cavalry,  and  next  he  gave  a  naval  battle  in 

a  new  place.    And  there  perished  in  it  practically  all 

the  naval  combatants  and  numbers  of  the  spectators. 

A  great  rain  and  violent  storm  had  suddenly  come  up, 

yet  he  allowed  no  one  to  leave  the  spectacle;  indeed, 

though  he  himself  changed  his  clothing  to  a  thick 

woolen  cloak,  he  would  not  permit  the  people  to  alter 

their  attire.    As  a  result,  not  a  few  fell  sick  and  died. 

By  way  of  consoling  them  for  this,  he  provided  them 

at  public  expense  a  dinner  lasting  all  night.     Often, 

too,  he  would  conduct  games  at  night,  and  sometimes  he 

would  pit  dwarfs^  and  women  against  each  other. 

So  at  this  time  he  feasted  the  populace  as  described, 
but  on  another  occasion  he  entertained  the  foremost 
men  of  the  senate  and  the  knights  in  the  following 
fashion.  He  prepared  a  room  that  was  pitch  black  on 
every  side,  ceiling,  walls  and  floor,  and  had  ready  bare 

lEeading  vdvoui  (Dindorf). 

163 


—  9  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  91    couches,  all  alike,  resting  on  the  uncovered  ground; 

(a.   u.   844)  7  7  o  D  7 

then  he  invited  in  his  guests  alone,  at  night,  without 
their  attendants.  And  first  he  set  beside  each  of  them  a 
slab  shaped  like  a  gravestone,  bearing  a  person's  name, 
and  also  a  small  lamp,  such  as  hangs  in  tombs.  Next, 
well-shaped,  naked  boys,  likewise  painted  black,  entered 
after  the  manner  of  phantoms,  and,  after  passing 
around  the  guests  in  a  kind  of  terrifying  dance,  took 
up  their  stations  at  their  feet.  After  that,  whatever  is 
commonly  dedicated  in  the  course  of  oiferings  to  de- 
parted spirits  was  set  before  them  also,  all  black,  and 
in  dishes  of  a  similar  hue.  Consequently,  every  single 
one  of  the  guests  feared  and  trembled  and  every  mo- 
ment felt  certain  that  he  was  to  be  slain,  especially 
as  on  the  part  of  everybody  save  Domitian  there  was 
dead  silence,  as  if  they  were  already  in  the  realms  of 
the  dead,  and  the  emperor  himself  limited  his  con- 
versation tq  matters  pertaining  to  death  and  slaughter. 
Finally  he  dismissed  them.  But  he  had  previously  re- 
moved their  servants,  who  stood  at  the  doorway,  and 
gave  them  in  charge  of  other,  unknown  slaves,  to  con- 
vey either  to  carriages  or  litters,  and  by  this  act  he 
filled  them  with  far  greater  fear.  Scarcely  had  each 
one  reached  home  and  was  beginning  to  a  certain  extent 
to  recover  his  spirits,  when  a  message  was  brought 
him  that  some  one  was  there  from  the  Augustus. 
While  they  were  expecting,  as  a  result  of  this,  that  now 
at  last  they  should  surely  perish,  one  person  brought 
in  the  slab,  which  was  of  silver,  then  another  some- 
thing else,  and  another  one  of  the  dishes  set  before 

164 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.  91 

(0..    u.    844) 


them  at  the  dinner,  which  proved  to  be  made  of  some 
costly  material.  Finally  came^  that  particular  boy  who 
had  been  each  one's  familiar  spirit,  now  washed  and 
decked  out.  Thus,  while  in  terror  all  night  long,  they 
received  their  gifts. 

Such  was  the  triumph  or,  as  the  crowd  said,  such  was 
the  expiatory  service  that  Domitian  celebrated  for 
those  who  had  died  in  Dacia  and  in  Eome.  Even  at 
this  time,  too,  he  killed  off  some  of  the  foremost  men. 
And  he  took  away  the  property  of  whoever  buried 
the  body  of  auy  one  of  them,  because  the  victim  had 
died  on  ground  belonging  to  the  sovereign. 

Here  are  some  more  events  worth  recording,  that  —  lo  — 
took  place  in  the  Dacian  War.  Julianus,  assigned  by 
the  emperor  to  take  charge  of  the  war,  made  many  ex- 
cellent regulations,  one  being  his  command  that  the 
soldiers  should  inscribe  their  own  names  and  those  of 
the  centurions  upon  their  shields,  in  order  that  those 
of  them  who  committed  any  particular  good  or  bad 
action  might  be  more  readily  observed  by  him.  En- 
countering the  enemy  at  Tapai,^  he  killed  a  very  great 
number  of  them.  Among  them  Vezinas,  who  ranked 
next  to  Decebalus,  since  he  could  not  get  away  alive, 
fell  down  purposely  as  if  dead.  In  this  way  he  escaped 
notice  and  fled  during  the  night.  Decebalus,  fearing 
that  the  Eomans  now  they  had  conquered  would  pro- 
ceed against  his  residence,  cut  down  the  trees  that 
were  on  the  site  and  attached  weapons  to  the  trunks, 

1  Verb  supplied  by  Xylander. 

a  Pape  thinks  tbat  the  proper  Latin  form  of  this  word  would  be 
TaboB. 

165 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  91    ^Q  ^jjg  gj^(j  j^]j^^  jj^ig  f Q^g  mig]it  think  them  soldiers,  and 

(a.    «t.    844)  "="  ' 

SO  be  frightened  and  withdraw.     This  actually  took 
place. 

(—  5  — )  Chariomefus,  king  of  the  Cherusci,  had  been  driven 
out  of  his  kingdom  by  the  Chatti  on  account  of  his 
friendship  for  the  Romans.  At  first  he  gathered  some 
companions  and  was  successful  in  his  attempt  to  return. 
Later  he  was  deserted  by  these  men  for  having  sent 
hostages  to  the  Eomans  and  so  became  the  suppliant  of 
Domitian.  He  was  not  accorded  an  alliance  but  re- 
ceived money. 

—  11—  Antonius,  a  certain  commander  of  this  period  in 
Germany,  revolted  against  Domitian :  him  Lucius^  Max- 
imus  overcame  and  overthrew.  For  his  victory  he 
does  not  deserve  any  remarkable  praise;  [for  many 
others  have  unexpectedly  won  victories,  and  his  sol- 
diers contributed  largely  to  his  success:]  but  for  his 
burning  all  the  documents  that  were  found  in  the  chests 
of  Antonius,  thus  esteeming  his  own  safety  as  of  slight 
importance  in  comparison  with  having  no  blackmail 
result  from  them,  I  do  not  see  how  I  may  celebrate  his 
memory  as  it  deserves.  But  Domitian,  as  he  had  got  a 
pretext  from  that  source,  proceeded  to  a  series  of 
slaughters  even  without  the  documents,  and  no  one 
could  well  say  how  many  he  killed.  [Indeed,  he  con- 
demned himself  so  for  this  act  that,  to  prevent  any 
remembrance  of  the  dead  surviving,  he  prohibited  the 
inscribing  of  their  names  in  the  records.  Furthermore, 
he  did  not  even  make  any  communication  to  the  senate 
regarding  those  put  out  of  the  way,  although  he  sent 

166 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

their  heads  as  well  as  that  of  Antonius  to  Rome  and  ex-    A.  D.  9i 

(a.   u.   844) 

posed  them  in  the  Forum.]  But  one  young  man,  Julius 
Calvaster,  who  had  served  as  military  tribune  in  the 
hope  of  getting  into  the  senate,  was  saved  in  a  most  un- 
expected fashion.  Inasmuch  as  it  was  being  proved 
that  he  had  frequent  meetings  with  Antonius  alone  and 
he  had  no  other  way  to  free  himself  from  the  charge 
of  conspiracy,  he  declared  that  he  had  met  him  for 
amorous  intercourse.  The  fact  that  he  was  of  an  ap- 
pearance to  inspire  passion  lent  color  to  his  statement. 
In  this  way  he  was  acquitted. 

After  just  one  more  remark  about  the  events  of  that 
time,  I  will  cease.  Lusianus  Proculus,  an  aged  senator, 
who  spent  most  of  his  time  in  the  country,  had  come 
out  with  Domitian  from  Rome  under  compulsion  so  as 
to  avoid  the  appearance  of  deserting  him  when  in 
danger  and  the  death  that  might  very  likely  be  the  re- 
sult of  such  conduct.  "When  the  news  came,  he  said : 
*'  You  have  conquered,  emperor,  as  I  ever  prayed. 
Therefore,  restore  me  to  the  country. ' '  Thereupon  he 
left  him  without  more  ado  and  retired  to  his  farm. 
And  after  this,  although  he  survived  for  a  long  time, 
he  never  came  near  him. 

During  this  period  some  had  become  accustomed  to 
smear  needles  with  poison  and  then  to  prick  with  them 
whomsoever  they  would.  Many  persons  thus  attacked 
died  without  even  knowing  the  cause,  and  many  of  the 
murderers  were  informed  against  and  punished.  And 
this  went  on  not  only  in  Rome  but  over  practically  the 
entire  civilized  world. 

167 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

~}?T.        To  Ulpius  Trajan  and  to  Acilius  Glabrio,  who  were 

A.  D.  91 

(a.  u.  844)  consuls  then,  the  same  signs  are  said  to  have  appeared. 
They  foretold  to  Glabrio  destruction,  but  to  Trajan  the 
imperial  ofl&ce.  [Numerous  wealthy  men  and  women 
both  were  punished  for  adultery,  and  some  of  the  wo- 
men had  been  debauched  by  him.  Many  more  were 
fined  or  executed  on  other  charges.]  A  woman  was 
tried  and  lost  her  life  because  she  had  stripped  in 
front  of  an  image  of  Domitian  [and  another  for  having 
had  dealings  with  astrologers].  Among  the  many  who 
perished  at  this  time  was  also  Mettius  Pompusianus, 
whom  Vespasian  had  refused  to  harm  in  any  way  after 
learning  from  some  report  that  he  would  one  day  be 
sole  ruler,  but^  rather  honored,  saying :  '  *  You  will 
certainly  remember  me  and  will  certainly  honor  me  in 
return. ' '  But  Domitian  first  exiled  him  to  Corsica  and 
later  put  him  to  death,  one  of  the  complaints  being  that 
he  had  the  inhabited  world  painted  on  the  walls  of  his 
bedchamber  and  another  that  he  had  excerpte^  and  was 
wont  to  read  the  speeches  of  kings  and  other  eminent 
men  that  are  written  in  Livy.  Also  Matemus,  a  soph- 
ist, met  his  death  because  in  a  practice  speech^  he  had 
said  something  against  tyrants.  The  emperor  himself 
used  to  visit  both  those  who  were  to  accuse  and  those 
who  were  to  give  evidence  for  condemnation,  and  he 

1  Reading  idXd  (Dindorf). 

2Hartman  (Mnemosyne,  N.  S.  XXI,  p.  395)  would  read  dffTeTov 
for  dffxuiv.  "Maternus  met  his  death  because  he  had  made  some 
witty  remark  against  tyrants."  H.  maintains  that  Domitian  could  not 
know  what  Matemus  said  in  his  closet;  but  to  the  present  translator 
the  MS.  tradition  seems  to  lend  to  this  incident  a  greater  homogene- 
ousness  of  detail  with  the  preceding,  and  he  retains  it  simply  on  that 
basis. 

168 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

would  frame  and  compose  everything  that  required  to  ^-  J^*8^\\ 
be  said.  Often,  too,  he  would  talk  to  the  prisoners 
alone,  keeping  tight  hold  of  their  chains  with  his  hands. 
In  the  former  case  he  would  not  entrust  to  others  what 
was  to  be  said,  and  in  the  latter  he  feared  the  men  even 
in  their  bonds. 

Uln  Moesia,^  the  Lygians,  who  had  been  at  war  with  (—  5  — ) 
some  of  the  Suebi,  sent  envoys,  asking  Domitian  for 
an  alliance.  They  obtained  one  that  was  strong,  not 
in  numbers,  but  in  dignity :  in  other  words,  they  were 
granted  only  a  hundred  knights.  The  Suebi,  indignant 
at  this,  added  to  their  contingent  the  lazygse  and  began 
to  prepare  well  in  advance  to  cross  the  Ister. 

^Masyus,  king  of  the  Semnones,  and  Ganna,  a  virgin 
(she  was  priestess  in  Celtica  after  Veleda),  came  to 
Domitian  and  having  been  honored  by  him  returned. 

As  censor,  likewise,  his  behavior  was  noteworthy.  He  _  13  _ 
expelled  Caecilius  Rufinus  from  the  senate  because  he  i^'umq) 
danced,  and  restored  Claudius  Pacatus,  though  an  ex- 
centurion,  to  his  master  because  he  was  proved  to  be 
a  slave.  "What  came  after,  to  be  sure,  can  not  be  de- 
scribed in  similar  terms,— his  deeds,  that  is  to  say,  as, 
emperor.  Then  he  killed  Arulenus  Eusticus  for  being 
a  philosopher  and  for  calling  Thrasea  sacred,  and  Her- 
ennius  Senecio  because  in  his  long  career  he  had  stood 
for  no  office  after  the  qugestorship  and  because  he  had 
compiled  the  life  of  Helvidius  Priscus.  Many  others 
also  perished  as  a  result  of  this  same  charge  of  phi- 
losophizing, and  all  remaining  members  of  that  pro- 

1  An  error  of  the  excerptor.    The  Lygians  lived  north  of  Moesia. 

169 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^-  ^'  ?^^.  fession  were  again  driven  from  Kome.    One  Juventius 

3,    u.    846) 

Celsus,  however,  who  had  been  conspicuous  in  conspir- 
ing with  certain  persons  against  Domitian  and  had 
been  accused  of  it,  saved  his  life  in  a  remarkable  way. 
When  he  was  on  the  point  of  being  condemned,  he 
begged  that  he  might  speak  a  few  words  with  the  em- 
peror in  private.  Having  gained  the  opportunity  he 
did  obeisance  before  him  and  after  repeatedly  calling 
him  *'  master,"  and  "  god  "  (terms  that  were  already 
being  applied  to  him  by  others),  he  said :  '*  I  have  done 
nothing  of  the  sort.  And  if  I  obtain  a  respite,  I  will 
pry  into  everything  and  both  inform  against  and  con- 
vict many  persons  for  you. ' '  He  was  released  on  these 
conditions,  but  did  not  report  any  one;  instead,  by  ad- 
vancing different  excuses  at  different  times,  he  lived 
until  Domitian  was  killed. 
—  14—       During  this  period  the  road  leading  from  Sinuessa 

A    D    95 

a.  u.  848)  to  Puteoli  was  paved  with  stones.  And  the  same  year 
Domitian  slew  among  many  others  Flavins  Clemens 
the  consul,  though  he  was  a  cousin  and  had  to  wife 
Flavia  Domitilla,  who  was  also  a  relative  of  the  em- 
peror's.^ The  complaint  brought  against  them  both 
was  that  of  atheism',  under  which  many  others  who 
drifted  into  Jewish  ways  were  condemned.  Some  of 
these  were  killed  and  the  remainder  were  at  least  de- 
prived of  their  property.  Domitilla  was  merely  ban- 
ished to  Pandateria;  but  Glabrio,  colleague  of  Trajan 
in  the  consulship,  after  being  accused  on  various  regu- 
lar stock  charges,  and  also  of  fighting  with  wild  beasts, 

1  His  sister's  daughter. 

170 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

suffered  death.     This  ability  in  the  arena  was  the  chief    a.  d.  95 

•^  .  (a.   «.    848) 

cause  of  the  emperor's  anger  against  him,—  an  anger 
prompted  by  jealousy.  In  the  victim's  consulship 
Domitian  had  summoned  him  to  Albanum  to  attend  the 
so-called  Juvenalia  and  had  imposed  on  him  the  task 
of  killing  a  large  lion.  Glabrio  not  only  had  escaped  all 
injury  but  had  despatched  the  creature  with  most 
accurate  aim. 

As  a  consequence  of  his  cruelty  the  emperor  was 
suspicious  of  all  mankind  and  ceased  now  to  put  hopes 
of  safety  in  either  the  freedmen  or  the  prefects,  whom 
he  usually  caused  to  be  tried  during  their  very  term 
of  office.  Moreover,  Epaphroditus,  who  belonged  to 
Nero,  he  first  drove  out  and  then  slew,  censuring  him 
for  not  having  defended  Nero;  his  object  was  by  the 
vengeance  that  he  took  in  this  person's  case  to  terrify 
his  own  freedmen  long  enough  in  advance  to  prevent 
their  ever  attempting  a  similar  deed.  It  did  him  no 
good,  however,  for  he  became  the  object  of  a  conspiracy  ^-  ^-  ^^ 
in  the  following  year  and  perished  in  the  consulship  of 
Gaius^  Valens  (who  died  after  holding  the  consular 
office  in  his  ninetieth  year)  and  of  Gains  Antistius. 
Those  who  attacked  him  and  prepared  the  undertaking  — 15  — 
were  Parthenius  his  cubicularius  (though  he  was  the 
recipient  of  such  marks  of  imperial  favor  as  to  be 
allowed  to  wear  a  sword)  and  Sigerus,^  who  was  also 
a  member  of  the  excubiae,  as  well  as  Entellus,  the  per- 
son entrusted  with  the  care  of  the  state  documents,  and 

1  An  error,  possibly  emanating  from  Dio.     The  man's  right  name  is 
T.  Manlius  Valens. 

2  Probably  the  person  who  is  called  Saturius  in  Suetonius,  Domitian, 
chapter  17. 

171 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

Stephanus,  a  freedman.  The  plot  was  not  imknown  to 
Domitia,  the  emperor's  wife,  nor  to  the  prefect  Nor- 
banns,  nor  to  the  latter 's  partner  in  office,  Petronins 
Secundus :  at  least,  this  is  the  tradition.  Domitia  was 
ever  an  object  of  the  imperial  hatred  and  consequently 
stood  in  terror  of  her  life ;  the  rest  no  longer  loved  their 
sovereign,  some  of  them  because  complaints  had  been 
lodged  against  them  and  others  because  they  were  ex- 
pecting them  to  be  lodged.  For  my  part,  I  have  heard 
also  the  following  account,—  that  Domitian,  having 
become  suspicious  of  all  these  persons,  conceived  a 
desire  to  kill  them,  and  wrote  their  names  on  a  two- 
leaved  tablet  of  linden  wood,  and  put  it  under  his 
pillow  on  the  couch  where  he  was  wont  to  repose ;  and 
one  of  the  naked  prattling^  boys,  while  the  emperor  was 
asleep  in  the  daytime,  filched  it  away  and  kept  it  with- 
out knowing  what  it  contained.  Domitia  then  chanced 
upon  it  and  reading  what  was  written  gave  informa- 
tion of  the  matter  to  those  involved.  As  a  result^ 
they  changed  their  plans  somewhat  and  hastened  the 
plot ;  yet  they  did  not  proceed  to  action  until  they  had 
determined  who  was  to  succeed  to  the  office.  Having 
conversed  with  various  persons,  when  they  found  that 
no  one  would  accept  it  (everybody  was  afraid  of  them, 
thinking  that  they  were  simply  testing  people's  loy- 
alty) they  betook  themselves  to  Nerva.  He  was  of 
most  noble  birth  and  most  suitable  character  and  had, 
besides,  encountered  danger  through  being  slandered 
by  astrologers  [who  declared  that  he  should  be  sover- 

1  Compare  Book  Forty-eight,  chapter  44. 

172 


16  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

eiffnl.     Thus  they  the  more  easily  persuaded  him  to    ^-  '^'  96 

^    -^  -^  -^    ^  .   .  (a.   tt.    849) 

be  the  next  to  receive  the  power.  In  truth,  Domitian, 
who  conducted  an  investigation  of  the  days  and  the 
hours  when  the  foremost  men  had  been  born,  had  con- 
sequently ere  this  despatched  not  a  few  even  of  those 
who  entertained  no  hopes  of  gaining  any  power.^  And 
he  would  have  slain  Nerva,  had  not  one  of  the  astrolo- 
gers who  favored  the  latter  declared  that  he  would  die 
within  a  few  days.  [Believing  that  this  would  really 
prove  true,  he  did  not  desire  to  be  guilty  of  this  addi- 
tional murder,  inasmuch  as  Nerva  in  any  event  was 
to  meet  death  so  very  soon.] 

Since  no  occurrence  of  such  magnitude  is  without 
previous  indications,  various  unfavorable  tokens  ap- 
peared in  his  case,  too.  '  In  a  vision  he  himself  beheld 
Eusticus  approaching  him  with  a  sword;  and  he 
thought  that  Minerva,  whose  statue  he  kept  in  his  bed- 
chamber, had  thrown  away  her  weapons  and,  mounted 
upon  a  chariot  drawn  by  black  horses,  was  being  swal- 
lowed up  in  an  abyss.  But  the  feature  which  of  all 
claims  our  wonder  is  connected  with  the  name  of  Lar- 
ginus  Proculus.  He  had  publicly  foretold  in  Germany 
that  the  emperor  should  die  on  the  day  when  he  actually 
did  die,  and  was,  therefore,  sent  on  to  Rome  by  the 
governor.  Brought  before  Domitian  he  declared  once 
more  that  this  should  be  so.  A  death  sentence  was 
postponed  in  order  that  he  might  be  put  to  death  after 
the  emperor  had  escaped  the  danger.  Meanwhile 
Domitian  was  slain,  his  life  was  saved,  and  he  received 

*  As  the  MS.  tradition  of  this  sentence  is  corrupt,  the  emendations  of 
Polak  have  been  adopted. 

173 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  96    a  hundred  thousand  denarii  from  Nerva.    Some  one 

(a.    u.    849) 

else  had  on  a  previous  occasion  told  the  ruler  both 
when  and  how  he  should  perish,  and  then  being  asked 
what  manner  of  death  he,  the  prophet,  should  meet,  he 
answered  that  he  would  be  despatched  by  dogs.  There- 
upon command  was  given  that  the  fellow  should  be 
burned  alive,  and  the  fire  was  applied  to  him.  But 
just  then  there  was  a  great  downpour  of  rain,  the  pyre 
was  extinguished,  and  later  dogs  found  him  lying  upon 
it  with  his  hands  bound  behind  him  and  tore  him  to 
pieces. 

— 17  —  I  have  one  more  astonishing  fact  to  record,  which  I 
shall  touch  on  after  I  have  given  the  accoimt  of  Domi- 
tian's  end.  As  soon  as  he  rose  to  leave  the  court- 
house and  was  ready  to  take  his  afternoon  nap,  as  was 
his  custom,  first  Parthenius  took  the  blade  out  of  the 
sword,  which  always  lay  under  his  pillow,  so  that  he 
should  not  have  the  use  of  that.  Next  he  sent  in 
Stephanus,  who  was  stronger  then  the  rest.  The  latter 
smote  Domitian,  and  though  it  was  not  an  opportune 
blow  the  emperor  was  knocked  to  the  ground,  where 
he  lay.  Then,  fearing  an  escape,  Parthenius  leaped  in, 
or,  as  some  believe,  he  sent  in  Maximus,  a  freedman. 
Thus  both  Domitian  was  murdered,  and  Stephanus 
perished  likewise  in  a  rush  that  those  who  had  not 
shared  in  the  conspiracy  made  upon  him. 

— 18  —  The  matter  of  which  I  spoke,  saying  that  it  surprises 
me  more  than  anything  else,  is  this.  A  certain  Apollo- 
nius  of  Tyana  on  the  very  day  and  at  that  very  hour 
when  Domitian  was  being  murdered  (this  was  later 

174 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

confirmed   by   other   events   that   happened   in   both    A.  d.  96 

^  (o.   u.    849) 

places)  climbed  a  lofty  stone  at  Ephesus  (or  possibly 
some  other  town)  and  having  gathered  the  populace, 
uttered  these  words :  *  *  Bravo,  Stephanus !  Good, 
Stephanus !  Smite  the  wretch !  You  have  struck,  you 
have  wounded,  you  have  killed  him ! !  "  This  is  what 
really  took  place,  though  there  should  be  ten  thousand 
doubters.  Domitian  had  lived  forty-four  years,  ten 
months,  and  twenty-six  days.  His  reign  had  lasted 
fifteen  years  and  five  days.  His  body  was  stolen  away 
and  buried  by  his  nurse,  Phyllis. 


175 


DIO'S 

ROMAN  HISTORY 

68 


VOL.  5-12  177 


Most  of  Domitian's  measures  are  annulled  (chapter  1). 

The  excellencies  of  Nerva  Augustus  Csesar:  his  kindness  to 
Verginius  (chapter  2). 

The  conspiracy  of  Crassus :  rebellion  of  the  Pretorians :  adop- 
tion of  Trajan  (chapter  3.) 

Birthplace  and  praise  of  Trajan:  Nerva  dies  (chapter  4). 

How  Trajan  entered  upon  his  sovereignty  (chapter  5). 

He  undertakes  a  war  against  Decebalus,  proving  himself  for- 
midable to  the  latter  but  worthy  the  affection  of  his  own  people 
(chapters  6,  7). 

He  conquers  the  Dacians  and  holds  a  triumph  over  them 
(chapters  8-10). 

A  second  war  against  the  Dacians  (chapters  11,  12). 

How  Trajan  saddled  the  Danube  with  a  stone  bridge  (chap- 
ter 13). 

"With  the  disappearance  from  the  scene  of  Decebalus  the 
Dacians  are  reduced  to  the  condition  of  a  province:  Arabia  is 
taken  (chapter  14). 

Embassies:  the  Pontine  marshes  fQled:  statues  to  the  well- 
deserving:  the  column  of  Trajan  (chapters  15,  16). 

Campaign  against  the  Parthians  on  account  of  the  expulsion 
of  Exedares  from  Armenia  and  the  introduction  there  of  Partho- 
masiris  (chapters  17,  18). 

Parthomasiris  gains  access  to  Trajan  and  Armenia  is  taken 
away  from  him  (chapters  19,  20). 

How  Abgarus  the  Osrhoenian  obtained  pardon  from  Trajan 
(chapter  21). 

About  the  envoys  of  Mannus  and  Manisarus  sent  to  Trajan 
(chapter  22). 

Trajan  is  named  Optimus,  and,  after  the  capture  of  Nisibis 
and  Batnse,  Parthicus  (chapter  23). 

About  the  huge  earthquake  at  Antioch  (chapters  24,  25). 

After  the  bridging  of  the  Tigris  he  reduces  Adiabene,  Meso- 
potamia, and  Ctesiphon  (chapters  26-28). 

He  loses  and  regains  several  districts :  he  bestows  a  king  upon 
the  Parthians  (chapters  29,  30). 

He  besieges  the  Atreni  without  result  (chapter  31). 


The  Jews  in  Cyrene,  E^pt,uid  Cyprus  rebel,  and  are  crushed, 
chiefly  through  the  activity  of  Lusius  (chapter  32). 

The  Parthians  cast  out  the  king  imposed  upon  them:  Trajan 
dies  (chapter  33) . 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

C.  Manlius  Valens,  C.  Antistius  Vetus.     (A.  D.  96  =  a.  u. 
849  =  First  of  Nerva,  from  Sept.  18th). 
Nerva  Cses.  Aug.   (Ill),  L.  Verginius  Rufus  (IH).     A.  D. 

97  =  a.  u.  850  =  Second  of  Nerva.) 

Nerva  Cses.  Aug.  (IV),  Nerva  Traianus  Cses.  (11).     (A.  D. 

98  =  a.  u.  851  =  Third  of  Nerva,  to  January  27th.) 

C.  Sosius  Senecio  (11),  A.  Cornelius  Palma.    (A.  D.  99  =  a.  u. 
852  =  Second  of  Trajan.) 
Nerva  Traianus  Aug.  (HI),  Sex.  lul.  Frontinus  (III).    (A.  D. 

100  =  a.  u.  853  =  Third  of  Trajan.) 

Nerva  Traianus  Aug.  (IV),  Sex.  Articuleius  Psetus.     (A.  D. 

101  =  a.  u.  854  =  Fourth  of  Trajan.) 

C.  Sosius  Senecio  (III),  L.  Licinius  Sura  (II).  (A.  D.  102  = 
a.  u.  855  =  Fifth  of  Trajan.) 

Nerva  Traianus  Aug.  (V),  Q.  Messius  Maximus  (II).  (A.  D. 
103  =  a.  u.  856  =  Sixth  of  Trajan.) 

Suburanus  (II),  P.  Neratius  Marcellus.  (A.  D.  104  =  a.  u. 
857  =  Seventh  of  Trajan.) 

Ti.  lulius  Candidus  (11),  A.  lulius  Quadratus  (11).  (A.  D. 
105  =  a.  u.  858  =  Eighth  of  Trajan.) 

L.  Ceionius  Commodus  Verus,  L.  Cerealis.  (A.  D.  106  =  a.  u. 
859  =  Ninth  of  Trajan.) 

C.  Sosius  Senecio  (IV),  L.  Licinius  Sura  (HI).  (A.  D.  107  =3 
a.  u.  860  =  Tenth  of  Trajan.) 

Ap.  Trebonius  Gallus,  M.  Atilius  Bradua.  (A.  D.  108  =  a.  n. 
861  =Eleventh  of  Trajan.) 

A.  Cornelius  Palma  (II),  C.  Calvisius  TuUus  (IE).  (A.  D. 
109  =  a.  u.  862  =;  Twelfth  of  Trajan.) 

Clodius  Priscinus,  Solenus  Orfitus.  (A.  D.  110  =  a.  u.  863  = 
Thirteenth  of  Trajan.) 

C.  Calpurnius  Piso,  M.  Vettius  Bolanus.  (A.  D.  111  =  a.  u. 
864  =  Fourteenth  of  Trajan.) 


Nerva  Traianus  Aug.  (VI),  C.  lulius  Africanus.  (A.  D.  112 
=  a.  XL.  865  =  Fifteenth  of  Trajan.) 

I.  Celsus  (II),  Clodius  Crispinns.  (A.  D.  113  =  a.  n.  866  =s 
Sixteenth  of  Trajan.) 

ft.  Ninnius  Hasta,  P.  Manilins  Vopiscus.  (A.  D.  114  =  a.  n. 
867  =  Seventeenth  of  Trajan.) 

I.  Vipsanius  Messala,  M.  Pedo  Virgilianus.  (A.  D.  115  = 
a.  u.  868  =  Eighteenth  of  Trajan.) 

L.  wffilius  Lamia,  .SHianus  Vetns.  (A.  D.  116  =  a.  u.  869  = 
Nineteenth  of  Trajan.) 

Qninctins  Niger,  C.  Vipsanius  Apronianns.  (A.  D.  117  => 
=:a.  u.  870  =;  Twentieth  of  Trajan,  to  Aug.  11th.) 


(BOOK  68,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

After  Douiitian,  the  Romans  appointed  Nerva  Coc-  —  i  — 
ceius  emperor.  The  hatred  felt  for  Domitian  caused  (a.  tt.'849) 
his  images,  many  of  which  were  of  silver  and  many  of 
gold,  to  be  melted  down;  and  from  this  source  large 
amounts  of  money  were  obtained.  The  arches,  too, 
of  which  more  had  been  erected  to  the  late  emperor 
than  previously  to  any  one  man,  were  torn  down. 
Nerva  also  released  such  as  were  on  trial  for  maiestaa 
and  restored  the  exiles.  All  the  slaves  and  freedmen 
that  had  conspired  against  their  masters  he  put  to 
death,  and  allowed  that  class  of  persons  to  lodge  no 
complaint  whatever  against  their  masters.  Others 
were  not  permitted  to  accuse  anybody  for  maiestas  or 
for  *  *  Jewish  living. ' '  Many  who  had  been  sycophants 
were  condemned  to  death,  among  whom  was  Seras 
.  .  },  the  philosopher.  Now,  as  a  quite  extraordi- 
nary disturbance  arose  from  the  fact  that  everybody 
was  accusing  everybody  else,  Fronto,  the  consul,  is  said 
to  have  remarked  that  it  was  bad  to  have  an  emperor 
under  whom  no  one  could  do  an.ything,  but  worse  to 
have  one  under  whom  any  one  could  do  everything. 
Nerva,  on  hearing  this,  prohibited  the  future  recur- 
rence of  such  scenes.  But  Nerva,  as  a  result  of  old 
age  and  sickness  (which  was  always  making  him  vomit 
his  food),  was  rather  weak. 

He  also  forbade  gold  statues  being  made  in  his     —  2  — 
honor.    He  paid  back  to  such  as  under  Domitian  had 

1  The  name  is  suspicious  and  possibly  a  corrupt  reading. 

181 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

been  causelessly  deprived  of  their  property  all  that 
was  still  found  in  the  imperial  treasury.  To  the  very 
poor  Romans  he  granted  allotments  of  land  worth  in 
the  aggregate  fifteen  hundred  myriads,  and  put  certain 
senators  in  charge  of  their  purchase  and  distribution. 
When  he  ran  short  of  funds  he  sold  many  robes  and 
plate,  both  silver  and  gold,  besides  furniture,  both  his 
own  and  what  belonged  to  the  imperial  residence,  many 
fields  and  houses,—  in  fact,  everything  save  what  was 
quite  necessary.  He  did  not,  however,  haggle  over  the 
prices  of  them,  and  in  this  very  point  benefited  many 
persons.  He  abolished  many  sacrifices,  many  horse- 
races, and  some  other  spectacles,  in  an  attempt  to  re- 
duce expenses  as  far  as  possible.  In  the  senate  he 
took  oath  that  he  would  not  cause  the  death  of  any  of 
the  senators  and  he  kept  his  pledge  in  spite  of  plots. 
And  he  did  nothing  without  the  advice  of  prominent 
men.  Among  his  various  laws  were  those  prohibiting 
any  one  from  being  made  a  eunuch  and  from  marrying 
one's  niece.  When  consul  he  did  not  hesitate  to  take  as 
his  colleague  Verginius  Eufus,  though  the  latter  had 
97  been  frequently  saluted  as  emperor.^  Upon  his  monu- 
ment was  inscribed  when  he  died :  '*  Having  conquered 
Vindex  he  ascribed  the  credit  of  victory  not  to  himself 
but  to  his  country. '  '* 

Nerva  ruled  so  well  that  he  once  remarked : '  *  I  have 
done  nothing  that  could  prevent  me  from  laying  down 
the  imperial  office  and  returning  to  private  life  in 

1  Compare  Book  Sixty-three,  chapter  25  of  Dio,  and  also  Tacitus, 
Eistorice  1,  9. 

2  Compare  also  Pliny's  Letters,  Book  Six,  number  10. 

182 


850) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

safety."  Wlien  Crassus  Calpumius,  a  grandson  of  .^'  ^"ggL 
the  famous  Crassi,  formed  a  plot  with  some  others 
against  him,  he  made  them  sit  beside  him  at  a  spectacle 
—  they  were  still  ignorant  of  the  fact  that  they  had 
been  informed  upon  —  and  gave  them  some  swords, 
nominally  to  look  at  and  see  if  they  were  sharp  (as  was 
often  done),  but  really  by  way  of  showing  that  he  did 
not  care  if  he  died  that  moment  where  he  was. 

^lianus  Casperius,  who  was  governor  under  him  as 
he  had  been  under  Domitian,  and  had  become  one  of 
the  Pretorians,  incited  the  soldiers  to  mutiny  against 
him ;  his  plan  was  to  have  them  demand  some  persons 
for  execution.  Nerva  resisted  them  stoutly,  even  to 
the  point  of  baring  his  collar-bone  and  offering  them 
his  throat:  but  he  accomplished  nothing  and  those 
whom  ^liaaus  wished  were  put  out  of  the  way. 
Wherefore  Nerva,  subjected  to  such  profound  humilia- 
tion because  of  his  old  age,  ascended  the  Capitol  and 
cried  aloud :  '  *  To  the  good  fortune  of  the  Eoman 
people  and  senate  and  myself  I  adopt  Marcus  Ulpius 
Nerva  Trajan." 

Subsequently  in  the  senate  he  designated  him  Csesar 
and  sent  a  message  to  him,  written  with  his  own  hand 
(Trajan  was  governor  of  Germany) : 

"  The  Danaans  by  thy  weapons  shall  requite  my  tears."  i 

Thus  did  Trajan  become  Caesar  and  afterwards  em-     —  •*— 
peror,  although  there  were  relatives  of  Nerva.     But 
the  man  did  not  esteem  family  relationship  above 
the  safety  of  the  State,  nor  was  he  less  inclined  to 

1  From  Homer's  Iliad,  Book  One,  verse  42. 

183 


A.  D.   97 

(a.   u.    850) 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

adopt  Trajan  because  the  latter  was  a  Spaniard  instead 
of  an  Italian  or  Italiot,^  or  because  no  foreigner  had 
previously  held  the  Roman  sovereignty.  It  was  a  per- 
son's virtue  and  not  his  country  that  he  thought  needed 
examination. 

A.  D.  98        Soon  after  this  act  he  passed  away,  having  ruled 
(a.  tt.   851)    ,      .  ,  . 

during  the  period  of  one  year,  four  months  and  nine 

days.  His  life  prior  to  that  time^  had  comprised 
sixty-five  years,  ten  months,  and  ten  days. 
—  5—  Trajan,  before  he  became  emperor,  had  had  a  dream 
of  the  following  nature.  He  thought  that  an  old  man 
in  purple  robe  and  vesture,  moreover  adorned  with  a 
crown,  as  the  senate  is  represented  in  pictures,  im- 
pressed a  seal  upon  him  with  a  finger  ring,  first  on  the 
left  side  of  his  throat  and  then  on  the  right.  When  he 
had  been  made  emperor,  he  sent  a  despatch  to  the 
senate  written  with  his  own  hand,  which  stated,  among 
other  things,  that  he  would  not  slay  nor  dishonor  any 
man  of  worth.  This  he  confirmed  by  oaths  not  merely 
at  that  time  but  also  later. 

He  sent  for  ^lianus  and  the  Pretorians  who  had 

mutinied  against  Nerva,  pretending  that  he  was  going 

to  employ  them  in  some  way,  and  relieved  the  world  of 

their  presence.     When  he  had  entered  Eome  he  did 

A.  D.  99    ]]2uch  toward  the  administration  of  state  affairs  and  to 

(a.   u.   852) 

please  the  excellent.  To  the  former  business  he  gave 
imusual  attention,  making  many  grants  even  to  Italian 
cities  for  the  support  of  their  children,  and  to  good  citi- 

1  Dio  means  by  Italian  one  born  in  Italy,  by  Italiot  one  who  settles 
in  Italy. 

2  Reading  Trpoefiefittoxei  ( Boissevain ) . 

184 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

zens  lie  did  continual  favors.    Plotina,  his  wife,  on  first    a.  d.  99 

'  '  (a.    u.    852) 

going  into  the  palace  turned  around  so  as  to  face  the 
Scalae  and  the  populace,  and  said :  ^'  My  wish  is  to  issue 
hence  the  same  sort  of  person  as  I  am  now  when  I 
enter."  And  she  so  conducted  herself  during  the 
entire  sovereignty  as  to  incur  no  censure. 

[U  The  ambassadors  who  came  from  the  kings  were    (— 15  — ) 
given    seats   by    Trajan   in   the    senatorial   row   at 
spectacles.] 

After  spending  some  time  in  Rome  he  instituted  a  a~1d  Too 
campaign  against  the  Dacians ;  for  he  made  their  deeds  («•  "•  ^^3) 
the  object  of  thought  and  was  irritated  at  the  amount 
of  money  they  were  annually  getting.  He  likewise 
saw  that  their  power  and  their  pride  were  increas- 
ing. Decebalus,  learning  of  his  advance,  was  fright- 
ened, since  he  well  knew  that  formerly  he  had  con- 
quered not  the  Romans  but  Domitian,  wEereas  now 
he  would  be  fighting  against  both  Romans  and  Trajan 
as  emperor. 

And  Trajan  had  a  great  reputation  for  justice,  for 
bravery,  and  for  simple  living.  He  was  strong  in  body 
(being  in  his  forty-second  year  when  he  began  to  rule) 
[so  that  in  every  enterprise  he  toiled  almost  as  much 
as  the  rest ;]  and  his  intellectual  powers  were  at  their 
highest,  so  that  he  had  neither  the  recklessness  of 
youth  nor  the  sluggishness  of  old  age.  He  did  not 
envy  nor  kill  any  one,  but  honored  and  exalted  all  with- 
out exception  that  were  men  of  worth,  and  hence  he 
neither  feared  nor  hated  one  of  them.  To  slanders 
he  paid  very  little  heed  and  was  no  slave  of  anger.    He 

185 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

refrained  equally  from  the  money  of  others  and  from 
imjust  murders.  He  expended  vast  sums  on  wars  and 
vast  sums  on  works  of  peace ;  and  while  making  very 
many  most  necessary  repairs  on  roads  and  harbors  and 
public  buildings,  he  drained  no  one's  blood  for  these 
undertakings.  His  nature  was  so  noble  and  magnani- 
mous that  even  upon  the  hippodrome  he  merely  in- 
scribed the  statement  that  he  had  made  it  suitable  for 
the  Roman  people  when  it  had  crumbled  away  in  spots, 
and  had  rendered  it  larger  and  more  beautiful.  For 
these  deeds  he  was  better  satisfied  to  be  loved  than 
honored.  His  meetings  with  the  people  were  marked 
by  affability  and  his  intercourse  with  the  senate  by 
dignity.  He  was  loved  by  all  and  dreaded  by  none  save 
the  enemy.  He  joined  people  in  hunting  and  banquets, 
and  in  work  and  plans  and  jokes.  Often  he  would 
make  a  fourth  in  somebody's  litter,  and  sometimes  he 
would  enter  persons'  houses  even  without  a  guard  and 
make  himself  at  home.  He  lacked  education  in  the 
exact  sense, — book-learning,  at  least,— but  he  both 
understood  and  carried  out  its  spirit,  and  there  was 
no  quality  of  his  that  was  not  excellent.  I  know  well 
enough  that  he  was  given  to  wine  and  boys,  but  if  he 
had  ever  committed  or  endured  any  base  or  wicked 
deed  as  a  result  of  this,  he  would  have  incurred  cen- 
sure. As  the  case  stood,  he  drank  all  the  wine  he 
wanted,  yet  remained  sober,  and  his  pursuit  of  peder- 
asty harmed  no  one.  And  even  if  he  did  delight  in 
war,  still  he  was  satisfied  with  success  in  it,—  with 
overthrowing  a  most  hostile  element  and  bettering  his 
own  side.    Nor  did  the  usual  thing  under  such  circum- 

186 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

stances,—  conceit  and  arrogance  on  the  part  of  the  A.  D.  loo 

.  .  ...  .{cm.    853) 

soldiers,—  ever  manifest  itself  during  his  reign;  with 
such  a  firm  hand  did  he  rule  them.  For  these  reasons 
Decebalus  was  somewhat  justified  in  fearing  him. 

When  Trajan,  in  the  course  of  his  campaign  against  —  s— 
the  Dacians  had  come  near  Tapai,  where,  the  barbar- 
ians were  encamping,  a  large  mushroom  was  brought 
to  him,  on  which  it  said  in  Latin  characters  that  the 
Buri  and  other  allies  advised  Trajan  to  turn  back  and 
make  peace.  At  Trajan's  first  encounter  with  the  foe 
he  visited  many  of  the  wounded  on  his  own  side  and 
killed  many  of  the  enemy.  And  when  the  bandages 
gave  out,  he  is  said  not  to  have  spared  even  his  own 
clothing,  but  to  have  cut  it  up  into  strips.  In  honor 
of  the  soldiers  that  had  died  in  battle  he  ordered  an 
altar  erected  and  the  performance  of  funeral  rites 
annually. 

[II  Decebalus  had  sent  envoys  also  before  the  defeat,  —  9— 
and  no  longer  the  long-haired  men,  as  before,  but  the 
chief  among  the  cap- wearers.*  These  threw  down  their 
arms  and  casting  themselves  upon  the  earth  begged 
Trajan  that  if  possible  Decebalus  himself  be  allowed  to 
meet  and  confer  with  him,  promising  that  he  would  do 
everything  that  might  be  commanded ;  or,  if  not,  that  at 
least  some  one  should  be  despatched  to  agree  upon 
terms  with  him.  Those  sent  were  Sura  and  Claudius 
Livianus,  the  prefect;  but  nothing  was  accomplished, 

1  Latin,  pileati.  The  distinction  drawn  is  that  between  the  plebeians 
and  the  nobles,  to  whom  reference  is  made  respectively  by  the  terms 
"  unshorn  "  and  "  covered."  Compare  here  the  make  up  of  the  Mar* 
eomanian  embassy  in  Book  Seventy-two,  chapter  two. 

187 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

(t  M  853)  ^^^  Decebalus  did  not  dare  even  to  come  near  them. 
He  sent  representatives  also  on  this  occasion. 

Trajan  had  now  seized  some  fortified  moimtains  and 
on  them  found  the  arms  and  the  captured  engines,  as 
well  as  the  standard  which  had  been  taken  in  the  time 

(o  u  854)  ^^  Fuscus.  Undertaking  to  ascend  the  heights  them- 
selves, he  secured  one  crest  after  another  amid  dangers 
and  approached  the  capital  of  the  Dacians.  Lusius, 
attacking  in  another  quarter,  slaughtered  numbers 
anid  captured  still  more  alive.  Then  Decebalus  sent 
envoys. 

Decebalus,  for  this  reason,  and  particularly  because 
Maximus  at  the  same  time  had  possession  of  his  sister 
and  a  strong  position,  was  ready  to  agree  without  ex- 
ception to  every  demand  made.  It  was  not  that  he 
intended  to  abide  by  his  agreement,  but  he  wanted  to 
secure  a  respite  from  his  temporary  reverses.]  So, 
though  against  his  will,  he  made  a  compact  to  sur- 
render his  arms,  engines,  and  manufacturers  of  en- 
gines, to  give  back  the  deserters,  to  demolish  his 
forts,  to  withdraw  from  captured  territory,  and  further- 
more to  consider  the  same  persons  enemies  and  friends 
as  the  Romans  did  [besides  neither  giving  shelter  to 
any  of  the  deserters,^  nor  employing  any  soldiers  from 
the  Roman  empire,  for  he  had  acquired  the  largest  and 
best  part  of  his  force  by  persuading  them  to  come  from 
that  quarter].  When  he  came  into  Trajan's  presence, 
he  fell  upon  the  earth  and  did  obeisance  [and  cast  away 
his  arms.    He  also  sent  envoys  to  the  senate  to  secure 

1  Reading    ainofidXtav  uvd  (Boissevain). 

188 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

these  terms,  in  order  that  he  miffht  have  the  further  ,-^-  ^-  loi 

'  °  (a.   u.    854) 

ratification  of  the  peace  by  that  body.  At  the  conclu- 
sion of  this  compact  the  emperor  left  a  camp  in  Sar- 
mizegethusa,  and,  having  placed  garrisons  at  intervals 
through  the  remainder  of  the  territory,  returned  to 
Italy.] 

The  envoys  from  Decebalus  were  introduced  in  the  —  lo  — 
senate.  They  laid  down  their  arms,  clasped  their  hands  („[  „,"  856) 
in  the  posture  of  captives,  and  spoke  some  words  of 
supplication;  thus  they  obtained  peace  and  received 
back  their  arms.  Trajan  celebrated  a  triumph  and  was 
given  the  title  of  Dacicus ;  in  the  theatre  he  had  contests 
of  gladiators,  in  whom  he  delighted,  and  he  brought 
back  dancers  once  more  to  the  theatre,  being  in  love 
with  one  of  them,  Pylades.  However,  he  did  not  pay 
less  attention  to  general  administration,  as  might  have 
been  expected  of  a  warlike  personage,  nor  did  he  hold 
court  the  less :  on  the  contrary,  he  conducted  trials  now 
in  the  forum  of  Augustus,  now  in  the  porch  named  the 
Porch  of  Livia,  and  often  elsewhere  on  a  platform. 

And  since  Decebalus  was  reported  to  him  to  be  act- 
ing in  many  ways  contrary  to  the  treaty,  since  he  was 
gathering  arms,  receiving  such  as  deserted,  repairing 
the  forts,  sending  ambassadors  to  the  neighbors,  and 
injuring  those  who  had  previously  differed  with  him, 
since  also  he  was  devastating  some  land  of  the  lazygaB 
(which  Trajan  later  would  not  give  back  to  them  when 
they  asked  for  it),  therefore,  the  senate  voted  that  he 
was  again  an  enemy.  And  Trajan  again  conducted  the 
war  against  him,  commanding  in  person  and  not  repre- 
sented by  others. 

189 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

—  ^^—         [As  nmnerous  Dacians  kept  transferrins  their  al- 

A.  D.  104  "-  ^  . 

(c.  tt.  857)  legiance  to  Trajan,  and  for  certain  other  reasons,  De- 
cebalus  again  requested  peace.  But  since  he  could  not 
be  persuaded  to  surrender  both  his  arms  and  himself, 
he  proceeded  openly  to  collect  troops  and  called  the 
surrounding  nations  to  his  aid,  saying  that  if  they 
deserted  him  they  themselves  would  come  into  danger 
and  that  it  was  safer  and  easier  by  fighting  on  his  side 
to  preserve  their  freedom,  before  suffering  any  harm, 
than  if  they  should  allow  his  people  to  be  destroj^ed 
and  then  later  be  subjugated  when  bereft  of  allies.] 
And  Decebalus  in  the  open  field  came  off  poorly,  but  by 
craft  and  deceit  he  almost  compassed  the  death  of 
Trajan.  He  sent  into  Moesia  some  deserters  to  see 
whether  they  could  make  away  with  him,  inasmuch  as 
the  emperor  was  generally  accessible,  and  now,  on  ac- 
count of  the  needs  of  warfare,  admitted  to  conference 
absolutely  every  one  who  desired  it.  But  this  plan  they 
were  unable  to  carry  out,  since  one  of  them  was  ar- 
rested on  suspicion  and,  under  torture,  revealed  the 
entire  plot. 

_  12  —  Longinus  was  the  commandant  of  the  Roman  camp 
who  had  made  himself  a  terror  to  the  Dacian  leader 
in  warfare.  The  latter,  therefore,  sent  him  an  invita- 
tion and  persuaded  him  to  meet  him,  on  the  pretext 
that  he  would  perform  whatever  should  be  enjoined. 
He  then  arrested  him  and  questioned  him  publicly 
about  Trajan's  plans.  As  the  Roman  would  not  yield 
at  all,  he  took  him  about  with  him  under  guard,  though 
not  in  bonds.    And  [Decebalus  sending  an  envoy  to 

190 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Trajan,  asked  that  lie  might  get  back  the  territory  as  ^-  ^-  104 
far  as  the  Ister  and  receive  indemnity  for  all  the  money 
he  had  spent  on  the  war,]  in  recompense  for  restoring 
Longinus  to  him.  An  ambiguous  answer  was  returned, 
of  a  kind  that  would  not  make  Decebalus  think  that  the 
emperor  regarded  Longinus  as  of  either  great  value  or 
small,  the  object  being  to  prevent  his  being  destroyed 
on  the  one  hand,  or  being  preserved  on  excessive 
terms,  on  the  other.  So  Decebalus  delayed,  still  con- 
sidering what  he  should  do. 

Meanwhile  Longinus,  having  [through  his  freedman] 
secured  a  poison  [ —  he  had  promised  Decebalus  that  he 
would  reconcile  Trajan  to  the  proposition,  in  order  that 
the  Dacian  should  be  as  far  as  possible  from  suspect- 
ing what  was  to  happen,  and  so  not  keep  an  especially 
careful  watch  over  him.  Also,  to  enable  his  servant  to 
attain  safety,  he  wrote  a  letter  containing  a  supplica- 
tion, and  gave  it  to  the  freedman  to  carry  to  Trajan. 
Then,  when  he  had  gone,  at  night  he  took  the  poison,] 
drank  it  and  died.  [After  this  event  Decebalus  asked 
Trajan  to  give  him  back  his  freedman,  promising  to 
give  him  in  return  the  body  of  Longinus  and  ten  cap- 
tives. He  sent  at  once  the  centurion  who  had  been  cap- 
tured with  the  dead  general,  assumiug  that  this  man 
would  arrange  the  matter  for  him ;  and  it  was  from  the 
centurion  that  the  whole  story  of  Longinus  was  learned. 
However,  Trajan  neither  sent  him  back,  nor  surren- 
dered the  freedman,  deeming  his  safety  more  valuable 
for  establishing  the  dignity  of  the  empire  than  the 
burial  of  Longinus.] 

191 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A~D^i04  ^^^i  Trajan  constructed  over  the  Ister  a  stone 
(c.  «.  857)  bridge,  for  which  I  cannot  sufficiently  admire  him.  His 
other  works  are  most  brilliant,  but  this  surpasses  them. 
There  are  twenty  square  pieces  of  stone,  the  height  of 
which  is  one  hundred  and  fifty  feet  above  the  founda- 
tions and  the  breadth  sixty,  and  these,  standing  at  a 
distance  of  one  hundred  and  seventy  feet  from  one  to 
another,  are  connected  by  arches.  How  then  could  one 
fail  to  be  astonished  at  the  expenditure  made  upon 
them?  Or  the  manner  in  which  each  of  them  was 
placed  in  a  river  so  deep,  in  water  so  full  of  eddies,  on 
ground  so  slimy  ?  It  was  impossible,  you  note,  to  divert 
the  course  of  the  river  in  any  direction.  I  have  spoken 
of  the  breadth  of  the  river ;  but  the  stream  is  not  uni- 
formly so  limited,  since  it  covers  in  some  places  twice 
and  elsewhere  thrice  as  much  ground,  but  the  narrow- 
est point,  and  the  one  in  that  region  most  adapted  to 
bridge-building,  has  just  those  dimensions.  Yet  the 
very  fact  that  the  river  here  shrinks  from  a  great  flood 
to  such  a  narrow  channel  and  is  here  confined,  though 
it  again  expands  into  a  greater  flood,  makes  it  all  the 
more  violent  and  deep ;  and  this  feature  must  be  con- 
sidered in  estimating  the  difficulty  of  preparing  a 
bridge.  This  achievement,  then,  shows  the  greatness 
of  Trajan's  designs,  though  the  bridge  is  of  no 
particular  use  to  us.  Merely  the  piers  are  standing, 
affording  no  means  of  crossing,  as  if  they  were  erected 
for  the  sole  purpose  of  demonstrating  that  there  is 
nothing  which  human  energy  can  not  accomplish.  Tra- 
jan's reason  for  constructing  the  bridge  was  his  fear 

192 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

that,  some  time  when  the  Ister  was  frozen,  war  might  A.  D.  104 

'  .  (a.   u.   857) 

he  made  on  the  Eomans  across  the  water,  and  his  de- 
sire to  enjoy  the  easy  access  to  them  that  this  work 
would  permit.  Hadrian,  on  the  contrary,  was  afraid 
that  the  barbarians  might  overpower  the  guard  at  the 
bridge  and  cross  into  Moesia,  and  so  he  removed  the 
surface  work. 

Trajan,  having  crossed  the  Ister  on  this  bridge,  con-     — 14  — 

A.  D.  105 

ducted  the  war  with  prudence,  rather  than  with  haste,  (o.  «.  858) 
and  eventually,  after  a  hard  struggle,  vanquished  the 
Dacians.  In  the  course  of  these  encounters  he  person- 
ally performed  many  deeds  of  good  generalship  and 
bravery,  and  his  soldiers  ran  many  risks  and  displayed 
great  prowess  on  his  behalf.  It  was  here  that  a  certain 
horseman,  dangerously  wounded,  was  carried  from  the 
battle  on  the  supposition  that  he  could  be  healed ;  but, 
when  he  found  that  he  could  not  recover,  he  rushed 
from  his  quarters  (since  his  hurt  had  not  incapacitated 
him)  and  stationing  himself  in  the  line  again  he  per- 
ished, after  having  displayed  great  valor.  Decebalus, 
when  his  capital  and  all  his  territory  had  been  occupied  a.  d.  io6 
and  he  was  himself  in  danger  of  being  captured,  com- 
mitted suicide,  and  his  head  was  brought  to  Rome. 

In  this  way  Dacia  became  subject  to  Rome  and  Tra- 
jan founded  cities  there.  The  treasures  of  Decebalus 
were  also  discovered,  though  hidden  beneath  the  Sar- 
getia  river,  which  ran  past  his  palace.  He  had  made 
some  captives  divert  the  course  of  the  river  and  had 
then  excavated  its  bed.  There  he  had  placed  a  large 
amount  of  silver  and  of  gold  and  other  objects  of  great 
VOL.  5-13.  193 


DIO'S   KOMAN   HISTORY 

i^'  u  859)  ^^^^^>  ^^^t  could  endure  some  moisture,  had  heaped 
stones  over  them  and  piled  on  earth.  After  that  he  had 
let  the  river  flow  over  them.  The  same  captives  were 
compelled  to  deposit  his  robes  and  other  similar  objects 
in  neighboring  caves;  and  when  he  had  effected  this, 
he  made  away  with  them  to  prevent  their  talking.  But 
Bicilis,  a  comrade  of  Ms,  who  knew  what  had  been 
done,  was  seized  and  gave  this  information.—  About 
this  same  time,  Palma,  who  was  governor  of  Syria, 
subdued  the  portion  of  Arabia,  near  Petra,  and  made  it 
subservient  to  the  Eomans. 
—  15—        Upon  Trajan's  return  to  Eome  the  greatest  imagin- 

A.    D.    107  ,  ,  ^  n  ,  .  ^    .  n  11 

(c.  u.  860)  able  number  of  embassies  came  to  him  from  the  bar- 
barians, even  the  Indi  being  represented.  And  he  gave 
spectacles  on  one  hundred  and  twenty-three  days. 
At  these  affairs  thousands,  yes,  possibly  tens  of  thou- 
sands of  animals,  both  wild  and  tame,  were  slaugh- 
tered, and  fully  ten  thousand  gladiators  fought  in 
combat. 

HAbout  the  same  period  he  made  the  Pontine 
marshes  traversable  by  means  of  a  stone  foundation, 
and  built  roads  alongside,  which  he  furnished  with 
most  magnificent  bridges.—  All  the  obsolete  money  he 
had  melted  down. 

(—  5  — )  [^  He  had  sworn  not  to  commit  bloodshed  and  he  con- 
firmed his  promise  by  his  actions  in  spite  of  plots.  He 
was  by  nature  not  at  all  given  to  duplicity  or  guile  or 
harshness.  He  loved  and  greeted  and  honored  the  good, 
and  the  rest  he  neglected.  His  age  made  him  still  more 
_  15  _    inclined  to  mildness.]    When  Licinius  Sura  died,  he  be- 

194 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

stowed  upon  him  a  public  funeral  and  a  statue.    This   ^-  ^-  ^^"^ 

^  ^  {a.   u.    860) 

man  had  attained  such  a  degree  of  wealth  and  pride 
that  he  built  a  gymnasium  for  the  Romans.  So  great 
was  the  friendship  and  confidence  [which  Sura  showed 
toward  Trajan  and  Trajan  toward  him  that  although 
the  man  was  often  slandered,— as  naturally  happens  in 
the  case  of  all  those  who  possess  any  influence  with  the 
emperors,—  Trajan  never  felt  a  moment's  suspicion  or 
hatred.  On  the  contrary,  when  those  who  envied  him 
became  insistent,  Trajan]  went  [uninvited  to  his  house] 
to  dinner.  And  having  dismissed  his  whole  body-guard 
he  first  called  Sura's  physician  and  had  him  anoint  his 
eyes  and  then  his  barber  shave  his  chin.  Anciently  the 
emperors  themselves  as  well  as  all  other  people  used 
to  do  this.  It  was  Hadrian  who  first  set  the  fashion  of 
wearing  a  beard.  When  he  had  done  this,  he  next  took 
a  bath  and  had  dinner.  So  the  next  day  he  said  to  his 
friends  who  were  always  in  the  habit  of  making  state- 
ments detrimental  to  Sura :  * '  If  Sura  had  wanted  to 
kill  me,  he  would  have  killed  me  yesterday."  Now  he  —  is  — 
did  a  great  thing  in  running  this  risk  in  the  case  of  a; 
man  who  had  been  calumniated,  but  a  still  greater  thing 
in  believing  that  he  would  never  be  harmed  by  him. 

So  it  was  that  the  confidence  of  his  mind  was  strengthened  by  his  own 
knowledge  of  his  dealings  with  Sura  instead  of  being  influenced  by  the 
fancies  of  others. 

Indeed,  when  he  first  handed  to  him^  who  was  to  be 
prefect  of  the  Pretorians  the  sword  which  the  latter 
was  required  to  wear  by  his  side,  he  bared  the  blade, 
and  holding  it  up  said :  * '  Take  this  sword,  to  the  end 

1  Saburanus.  (?) 

195 


—  17  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

.^*  ^'  12L  that  if  I  rule  well,  you  may  use  it  for  me,  but  if  ilL 

{a.   u.    860)  7  ^  ^  7  r 

against  me." 

He  also  set  up  images  of  Sosia  and  Palma  and  Cel- 
sus,^ — so  greatly  did  he  esteem  them  above  others. 
Those,  however,  who  conspired  against  him  (among 
•whom  was  Crassus)  he  brought  before  the  senate  and 
caused  to  be  punished. 
^^'  ^'  HI      Again  he  gathered  collections  of  books.    And  he  set 

(c.    «.    86/)  _*^  ^ 

up  in  the  Forum  an  enormous  column,  to  serve  at  once 
as  a  sepulchral  monument  to  himself  and  as  a  reminder 
of  his  work  in  the  Forum.  The  whole  region  there  was 
*  hilly  and  he  dug  it  down  for  a  distance  equaling  the 
height  of  the  column,  thus  making  the  Forum  level. 

Next  he  made  a  campaign  against  the  Armenians 
and  Parthians  on  the  pretext  that  the  Armenian  king* 
had  obtained  his  diadem  not  at  his  hands  but  from  the 
Parthian  king.^  His  real  reason,  however,  was  a  desire 
to  win  fame.  [On  his  campaign  against  the  Parthians, 
when  he  had  reached  Athens,  an  embassy  from  Osrhoes 
met  him  asking  for  peace  and  proffering  gifts.  This 
king  had  learned  of  his  advance  and  was  terrified  be- 
cause Trajan  was  wont  to  make  good  his  threats  by 
deeds.  Therefore  he  humbled  his  pride  and  sent  a 
supplication  that  war  be  not  made  against  him:  he 
asked  Armenia  for  Parthomasiris,  who  was  likewise  a 
son  of  Pacorus,  and  requested  that  the  diadem  be  sent 
to  him.    He  had  put  a  stop,  he  said,  to  the  reign  of 

Exedares,  who  was  beneficial  neither  to  the  K-omans 
nor  to  the  Parthians. 

1  L.  Puhlilius  Celsus. 

2  Exedares. 

3  Osrhoes. 

196 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

The  emperor  neither  received  the  gifts,  nor  sent  any  a.  d.  ii4 

■^  _      _  ^  (a.   u.   867] 

answer  or  command,  save  that  friendship  is  determined 
by  deeds  and  not  by  words ;  and  that  accordingly  when 
he  should  reach  Syria  he  would  do  what  was  proper. 
And  being  of  this  mind  he  proceeded  through  Asia, 
Syria,  and  adjoining  provinces  to  Seleucia.  Upon  his 
coming  to  Antioch,  Abgarus  the  Osrhoenian  did  not 
appear  in  person,  but  sent  gifts  and  a  friendly  com- 
munication. For,  as  he  dreaded  both  him  and  the  Par- 
thians,  he  was  trying  to  play  a  double  game  and  for 
that  reason  would  not  come  to  confer  with  him.] 

f  [Lusius  Quietus  was  a  Moor,  himself  a  leader  of  the  (_32— ) 
Moors,  and  had  belonged  to^  a  troop  in  the  cavalry. 
C/ondemned  for  base  conduct  he  was  temporarily  re- 
lieved of  his  command  and  dishonored.^  But  later,  when 
the  Dacian  war  came  on  and  the  army  stood  in  need  of 
the  Moorish  alliance,  he  came  to  it  of  his  own  accord 
and  gave  great  exhibitions  of  prowess.  For  this  he 
was  honored,  and  in  the  second  war  performed  far 
greater  and  more  numerous  exploits.  Finally,  he  ad- 
vanced so  far  in  bravery  and  good  fortune  during  this 
war  which  we  are  considering  that  he  was  enrolled 
among  the  ex-praetors,  became  consul,  and  governed 
Palestine.  To  this  chiefly  was  due  the  jealousy  and 
hatred  felt  for  him,  and  his  destruction.]  Now  when 
Trajan  had  invaded  the  hostile  territory,  the  satraps 
and  kings  of  that  region  approached  him  with  gifts. 
One  of  these  gifts  was  a  horse  taught  to  do  obeisance. 
It  would  kneel  with  its  front  legs  and  place  its  head 
beneath  the  feet  of  whoever  stood  near. 

1  Some  puzzling  corruption  in  the  MS. 
*  Probably  in  the  days  of  Domitian. 

197 


18  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

~^®  77,       Parthomasiris  behaved  in  rather  violent  fashion.    In 

A.  D.   114 

(a.  u.  867)  his  first  letter  to  Trajan  he  had  signed  himself  as  king, 
but  when  no  answer  came  to  his  epistle,  he  wrote  again, 
omitting  this  title,  and  asked  that  Marcus  Junius,  the 
governor  of  Cappadocia,  be  sent  to  him,  implying  that 
he  wanted  to  prefer  some  request  through  him.  Trajan, 
accordingly,  sent  him  the  son  of  Junius,  and  himself 
went  ahead  to  Arsamosata,  of  which  he  took  possession 
without  a  struggle.  Then  he  came  to  Satala  and  re- 
warded with  gifts  Anchialus,  the  king  of  the  Heniochi 
and  Machelones.  At  Elegeia  in  Armenia  he  awaited 
Parthomasiris.  He  was  seated  upon  a  platform  in  the 
trenches.  The  prince  greeted  him,  took  off  his  diadem 
from  his  head,  and  laid  it  at  his  feet.  Then  he  stood 
there  in  silence,  expecting  to  receive  it  back.  At  this 
the  soldiers  shouted  aloud,  and  hailed  Trajan  impera- 
tor  as  if  on  account  of  some  victory.  (They  termed 
it  an  uncrowned,^  bloodless  victory  to  see  the  king,  a 
descendant,  of  Arsaces,  a  son  of  Pacorus,  and  a  nephew 
of  Osrhoes,  standing  beside  Trajan  without  a  diadem, 
like  a  captive.)  The  shout  terrified  the  prince,  who 
thought  that  it  heralded  insult  and  destruction  for  him. 
He  turned  about  as  if  to  flee,  but,  seeing  that  he  was 
hemmed  in  on  all  sides,  begged  as  a  favor  not  to  be 
obliged  to  speak  before  the  crowd.  Accordingly,  he 
was  escorted  into  the  tent,  where  he  had  none  of  his 
—  20—  wishes  granted.  So  out  he  rushed  in  a  rage,  and  from 
there  out  of  the  camp,  but  Trajan  sent  for  him,  and 
again  ascending  the  platform  bade  him  speak  in  the 

1  Reading   dffiXivov      (Bekker)^"  without  the  parsley  crown  "  (such 
as  was  bestowed  upon  victors  in  some  of  the  Greek  games). 

198 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

hearing  of  all  everything  that  he  desired.  This  was  'A-  l^-  Ji^ 
to  prevent  any  person  from  spreading  a  false  report 
through  ignorance  of  what  had  been  said  in  private 
conference.  On  hearing  this  exhortation  Parthoma- 
siris  no  longer  kept  silence,  but  with  great  frankness 
made  many  statements,  some  of  them  being  to  the 
effect  that  he  had  not  been  defeated  or  captured,  but 
had  come  there  voluntarily,  believing  that  he  should 
not  be  wronged  and  should  receive  back  the  kingdom, 
as  Tiridates  had  received  it  from  Nero.  Trajan  made 
appropriate  replies  to  all  his  remarks  and  said  that 
he  should  abandon  Armenia  to  no  one.  It  belonged 
to  the  Romans  and  should  have  a  Roman  governor. 
He  would,  however,  allow  Parthomasiris  to  depart  to 
any  place  he  pleased.  So  he  sent  the  prince  away  to- 
gether with  his  Parthian  companions  and  gave  them 
an  escort  of  cavalry  to  ensure  their  meeting  no  one 
and  adopting  no  rebellious  tactics.  All  the  Armenians 
who  had  come  with  him  he  commanded  to  remain  where 
they  were,  on  the  ground  that  they  were  already  his 
subjects.] 

"When  he  had  captured  the  whole  country  of  Armenia  ^~  ^^  ~^ 
and  had  won  over  also  many  of  the  kings,  some  of 
whom,  since  they  submitted,  he  treated  as  his  friends, 
end  others,  though  disobedient,  he  subdued  without 
resort  to  arms,  the  senate  voted  to  him  many  honors  —23  — 
of  various  descriptions,  and  they  bestowed  upon  him 
the  title  of  Optimus,  i.  e..  Excellent. —  He  was  always 
accustomed  to  trudge  on  foot  with  his  entire  army  and 
he  had  the  ordering  and  arrangement  of  the  troops 

199 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

(o."  u'  m)  throughout  the  entire  expedition,  leading  them  some- 
times in  one  order  and  sometimes  in  another;  and  he 
forded  as  many  rivers  as  they  did.  Sometimes  he  even 
had  his  scouts  circulate  false  reports,  in  order  that 
the  soldiers  might  at  the  same  time  practice  military 
manoeuvres  and  be  so  impervious  to  alarm  as  to  be 
ready  for  anything.  After  he  had  captured  Nisibis 
and  Batnae  he  was  given  the  title  of  Parthicus.  But 
he  took  greater  pride  in  the  name  of  Optimus  than  in 
all  the  rest,  inasmuch  as  it  belonged  rather  to  his 
character  than  to  his  arms. 

—21—  [Leaving  garrisons  at  opportune  points  Trajan 
came  to  Edessa^  and  there  for  the  first  time  he  set  eyes 
upon  Abgarus.  Previously  this  person  had  sent  en- 
voys and  gifts  to  the  prince  frequently,  but  he  himself 
for  different  reasons  at  different  times  failed  to  put 
in  an  appearance.  The  same  was  true  also  of  Mannus, 
the  phylarch  of  adjoining  Arabia,  and  Sporaces,  phy- 
larch  of  Anthemusia.  On  this  occasion,  however,  he 
was  persuaded  partly  by  his  son  Arvandes,  who  was 
beautiful  and  in  the  prime  of  youth  and  therefore  on 
good  terms  with  Trajan,  and  partly  by  the  fear  of  the 
latter *s  presence  near  by;  consequently  he  met  him 
on  the  road,  made  his  apologies,  and  obtained  pardon. 
He  had  a  powerful  intercessor  in  the  boy.  Accord- 
ingly, he  became  a  friend  of  Trajan's  and  entertained 
him  with  a  banquet.  At  the  dinner  in  question  he  pre- 
sented his  boy  in  some  kind  of  barbaric  dance.] 

—22—  [When  Trajan  came  into  Mesopotamia,  Mannus 
sent  a  herald  to  him,  and  Manisarus  despatched  envoys 

200 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

in  regard  to  peace,  because,  he  said,  Osrhoes  was  mak-  ,-^-  ^-  ^i* 

(a.   u.   867) 

mg  a  campaign  against  him,  and  he  was  ready  to  with- 
draw from  Armenia  and  Mesopotamia  so  far  as  cap- 
tured. Thereupon  the  emperor  replied  that  he  would 
not  believe  him  until  he  should  come  to  him  and  con- 
firm his  offers  by  deeds,  as  he  was  promising.  He  was 
also  suspicious  of  Mannus,  especially  because  the  lat- 
ter had  sent  an  auxiliary  force  to  Mebarsapes,  king 
of  Adiabene,  and  then  had  lost  it  all  at  the  hands  of 
the  Romans.  Therefore  Mannus  never  waited  for  the 
Romans  to  draw  near  but  took  his  course  to  Adiabene 
to  find  shelter  with  the  other  two  princes.  Thus  were 
Singara  and  some  other  points  occupied  by  Lusius, 
without  a  battle.] 
While  he  was  staying  in  Antioch,  a  dreadful  earth-     —24  — 

•^      *  '  A.  D.  115 

quake  occurred.  Many  cities  were  damaged,  but  Anti-  («•  «•  868) 
och  was  most  of  all  unfortunate.  SiQce  Trajan  was 
wintering  there  and  many  soldiers  and  many  private 
persons  had  flocked  thither  from  all  directions  for  law- 
suits, embassies,  business,  or  sightseeing,  there  was  no 
nation  nor  people  that  went  unscathed.  Thus  in  Anti- 
och the  whole  world  under  Roman  sway  suffered  dis- 
aster. 

There  were  many  thunderstorms  to  start  with  and 
portentous  winds,  but  no  one  could  have  expected  that 
so  many  evils  would  result  from  them.  First  came, 
on  a  sudden,  a  great  bellowing  roar,  and  there  followed 
it  a  tremendous  shock.  The  whole  earth  was  up- 
heaved and  buildings  leaped  into  the  air.  Those  that 
were  lifted  up  collapsed  and  were  smashed  to  pieces, 

201 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

s..  D.  115   while  others  were  beaten  this  way  and  that  as  if  by  the 

I.    u.    868) 

surges  and  were  turned  about.  The  wrecks  were 
strewn  a  long  distance  over  the  countryside.  The 
crash  of  grinding  and  breaking  timbers,  tiles,  and 
stones  together  became  most  frightful,  and  an  incon- 
ceivable mass  of  dust  arose,  so  that  no  one  could  see 
any  person  nor  say  or  hear  anything.  Many  persons 
were  hurt  even  outside  the  houses,  being  picked  up  and 
tossed  violently  about,  and  then  with  a  momentum  as 
in  a  fall  from  a  cliff  dashed  to  the  earth.  Some  were 
maimed,  others  killed.  Not  a  few  trees  leaped  into 
the  air,  roots  and  all. 

The  number  of  those  found  in  the  houses  who  per- 
ished was  beyond  discovery.  Multitudes  were  de- 
stroyed by  the  very  force  of  the  collapse  and  crowds 
were  suffocated  in  the  debris.  Those  who  lay  with  a 
part  of  their  bodies  buried  under  the  stones  or  tim- 
bers suffered  fearful  agony,  being  able  neither  to  live 
nor  to  find  an  immediate  death. 
—  25  —  Nevertheless  many  even  of  these  were  saved,  as  was 
natural  in  such  overwhelming  numbers  of  people. 
And  those  outside  did  not  all  get  off  safe  and  sound. 
Numbers  lost  their  legs  or  their  shoulders  and  some 
.  .  .  their  .  .  .  heads.  Others  vomited  blood. 
One  of  these  was  Pedo  the  consul,  and  he  died  at  once. 
In  brief,  there  was  no  form  of  violent  experience  that 
those  people  did  not  undergo  at  that  time.  And  as 
Heaven  continued  the  earthquake  for  several  days  and 
nights,  the  people  were  dismaj^ed  and  helpless,  some 
crushed  and  perishing  under  the  weight  of  the  build- 
ings pressing  upon  them,  and  others  dying  of  hunger 

202 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.  115 

(a.   u.   868) 


in  case  it  chanced  that  by  the  inclination  of  the  timbers 
they  were  left  alive  in  a  clear  space,  it  might  be  in  a 
kind  of  arch-shaped  colonnade.  When  at  last  the 
trouble  had  subsided,  some  one  who  ventured  to  mount 
the  ruins  caught  sight  of  a  live  woman.  She  was  not 
alone  but  had  also  an  infant,  and  had  endured  by  feed- 
ing both  herself  and  her  child  with  her  milk.  They 
dug  her  out  and  resuscitated  her  together  with  her 
offspring,  and  after  that  they  searched  the  other  heaps- 
but  were  no  longer  able  to  find  in  them  any  living 
creature  save  a  child  sucking  at  the  breasts  of  its 
mother,  who  was  dead.  As  they  drew  out  the  corpses 
they  no  longer  felt  any  pleasure  at  their  own  escape. 

So  great  were  the  disasters  that  had  overwhelmed 
Antioch  at  this  time.  Trajan  made  his  way  out 
through  a  window  of  the  room  where  he  was.  Some 
being  of  more  than  human  stature  had  approached  him 
and  led  him  forth,  so  that  he  survived  with  only  a  few 
small  bruises.  As  the  shocks  extended  over  a  number 
of  days,  he  lived  out  of  doors  in  the  hippodrome. 
Casium  itself,  too,  was  so  shaken  that  its  peaks  seemed 
to  bend  and  break  and  to  be  falling  upon  the  city.  Other 
hills  settled,  and  quantities  of  water  not  previously 
in  existence  came  to  light,  while  quantities  more  es- 
caped by  flowing  away. 

Tra  j  an  about  spring  time  proceeded  into  the  enemy  *s  —  26  — 
country.  Now  since  the  region  near  the  Tigris  is  bar- 
ren of  timbers  fit  for  shipbuilding,  he  brought  the  boats 
which  had  been  constructed  in  the  forests  surrounding 
Nisibis  on  wagons  to  the  river.  The  vessels  had  been 
arranged  in  such  a  way  that  they  could  be  taken  apart 

203 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  115   and  put  together.     He  had  very  hard  work  in  brider- 

(o.   «.   868)    .  .  ° 

mg  the  stream  opposite  Mount  Cardnenmn,  for  the 
opposing  barbarians  tried  to  hinder  him.  Trajan, 
however,  had  a  great  abundance  of  both  ships  and 
soldiers,  and  so  some  boats  were  fastened  together 
with  great  speed  while  others  lay  motionless  in  front 
of  them,  carrying  heavy  infantry  and  archers.  Still 
others  kept  making  dashes  this  way  and  that,  as  if  they 
intended  to  cross.  As  a  result  of  these  tactics  and 
from  their  very  astonishment  at  seeing  so  many  ships 
at  once  appear  en  masse  from  a  land  devoid  of  trees 
the  barbarians  gave  way  and  the  Romans  crossed  over. 
They  won  possession  of  the  whole  of  Adiabene.  (This 
is  a  portion  of  Assyria  in  the  vicinity  of  Ninus ;  and 
Arbela  and  Graugamela,  close  to  which  Alexander  con- 
quered Darius,  are  also  in  this  same  territory.  The 
country  has  also  been  called  Atyria  in  the  language  of 
the  barbarians,  the  double  S  being  changed  to  T.) 

(—  22  — )  [ Adenystrse  was  a  strong  post  to  which  one  Sentius, 
a  centurion,  had  been  sent  as  an  envoy  to  Mebar- 
Bapes.  He  was  imprisoned  by  the  latter  in  that  place, 
and  later,  at  the  approach  of  the  Romans,  he  made  an 
arangement  with  some  of  his  fellow-prisoners,  and 
with  their  aid  escaped  from  his  shackles,  killed  the 
commander  of  the  garrison,  and  opened  the  gates  to  his 

(_26— )  countrymen.]  Hereupon  they  advanced  as  far  as 
Babylon  itself,  being  quite  free  from  molestation,  since 
the  Parthian  power  had  been  ruined  by  civil  conflicts 
and  was  still  at  this  time  involved  in  dissensions. 

27 Cassius  Dio  Cocceianus  in  writings  concerning  the  Latins  has  written 

that  this  city  [i.  e.  Babylon]  comprised  a  circuit  of  four  hundred  stades. 
(Compare  also  Tzetzes,  Exegesis  of  Homer's  Iliad,  p.  141,  15  ff.) 

204 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

Here,  moreover,  Trajan  saw  the  asphalt  out  of  which  ,^'  P-  IH^ 
the  walls  of  Babylon  had  been  built.  When  mixed  with 
baked  bricks  or  smooth  stones  this  material  affords  so 
great  strength  as  to  render  them  stronger  than  rock 
or  any  kind  of  iron.  He  also  looked  at  the  opening 
from  which  issues  a  deadly  vapor  that  destroys  any 
creature  living  upon  the  earth  and  any  winged  thing 
that  so  much  as  inhales  a  breath  of  it.  If  it  extended 
far  above  ground  or  had  several  vents,  the  place 
would  not  be  inhabitable ;  but,  as  it  is,  this  gas  circles 
round  within  itself  and  remains  stationary.  h^"<=«  ''^®*' 
tures  that  fly  high  enough  above  it  and  such  as  remain  to  one  side 
are  safe.  \  gaw  another  opening  like  it  at  Hierapolis  in 
Asia,  and  tested  it  by  means  of  birds ;  I  bent  over  it  my- 
self and  myself  gazed  down  upon  the  vapor.  It  is  en- 
closed in  a  sort  of  a  cistern  and  a  theatre  had  been  built 
over  it.  It  destroys  all  living  things  save  human  beings 
that  have  been  emasculated.  The  reason  for  that  I 
can  not  comprehend.  I  relate  what  I  have  seen  as  I 
have  seen  it  and  what  I  have  heard  as  I  have  heard  it. 

Trajan  had  planned  to  conduct  the  Euphrates  AT~D^n6 
through  a  channel  into  the  Tigris,  in  order  that  boats  ^*'  "•  ^'^^^ 
might  be  floated  down  by  this  route,  affording  him  an 
opportunity  to  make  a  bridge.  But  on  learning  that  it 
had  a  much  higher  elevation  than  the  Tigris,  he  did  not 
do  it,  fearing  that  the  water  might  rush  pell-mell  down 
hill  and  render  the  Euphrates  unnavigable.  So  he 
conveyed  the  boats  across  by  means  of  hauling  engines 
at  the  point  where  the  space  between  the  rivers  is  the 
least— the  whole  stream  of  the  Euphrates  empties  into 

205 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^-  ^-  JJ^  a  swamp  and  from  there  somehow  joins  the  Tigris  — 
then  crossed  the  Tigris  and  entered  Ctesiphon.  Hav- 
ing taken  possession  of  this  town  Ee  was  saluted  as 
imperator  and  established  his  right  to  the  title  of  Par- 
thicus.  Various  honors  were  voted  him  by  the  senate, 
among  others  the  privilege  of  celebrating  as  many  tri- 
umphs as  he  might  desire. 

After  his  capture  of  Ctesiphon  he  felt  a  wish  to  sail 
down  into  the  Eed  Sea.  This  is  a  part  of  the  ocean  and 
has  been  so  named^  from  some  person  formerly  ruler 
there.  Mesene,  the  island  in  the  Tigris  of  which  Ath- 
ambelus  was  king,  he  acquired  without  difficulty.  [And 
it  remained  loyal  to  Trajan,  although  ordered  to  pay 
tribute.]  But  through  a  storm,  and  the  violence  of  the 
Tigris,  and  the  backward  flow  from  the  ocean,  he  fell 
into  danger.  The  inhabitants  of  the  so-called  palisade 
of  Spasinus  [they  were  subject  to  the  dominion  of  Ath- 
ambelus]  received  him  kindly. 

—  20  —  Thence  he  came  to  the  ocean  itself,  and  when  he  had 
learned  its  nature  and  seen  a  boat  sailing  to  India,  he 
said :  * '  I  should  certainly  have  crossed  over  to  the 
Indi,  if  I  were  still  young. ' '  He  gave  much  thought  ta 
the  Indi  and  was  curious  about  their  affairs.  Alex- 
ander he  counted  a  happy  man  and  at  the  same  time 
declared  that  he  himself  had  advanced  farther.  This 
was  the  tenor  of  the  despatch  that  he  forwarded  to  the 
senate,  although  he  was  unable  to  preserve  even  what 
territory  had  been  subdued.    On  its  receipt  he  obtained 

*  IpuOpA  from  Erythras,  who  was  said  to  have  been  drowned  in  it 
(as  if  in  English  we  should  invent  a  King  Redd). 

206 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

among  other  honors  the  privilege  of  celebrating  a  tri-  {a.  «."  869) 
umph  for  as  many  nations  as  he  pleased.  For,  on  ac- 
count of  the  nmnber  of  those  peoples  regarding  which 
communications  in  writing  were  being  constantly  for- 
warded to  them,  they  were  unable  to  understand  them 
or  even  to  name  some  of  them  correctly.  So  the  citi- 
zens of  the  capital  prepared  a  trophy-bearing  arch,  be- 
sides many  other  decorations  in  his  own  forum,  and 
were  getting  themselves  in  readiness  to  meet  him  some 
distance  out  when  he  should  return.  But  he  was  des- 
tined never  to  reach  Rome  again  nor  to  accomplish 
anything  deserving  comparison  with  his  previous  ex- 
ploits, and  furthermore  to  lose  even  those  earlier  ac- 
quisitions. For,  during  the  time  that  he  was  sailing 
down  the  ocean  and  returning  from  there  again,  all  his 
conquests  were  thrown  into  tumult  and  revolted.  And 
the  garrisons  placed  among  the  various  peoples  wer© 
in  some  cases  driven  out  and  in  others  killed. 

Trajan  ascertained  this  in  Babylon.^  He  had  taken  —30  — 
the  side-trip  there  on  the  basis  of  reports,  unmerited 
by  aught  that  he  saw  (which  were  merely  mounds  and 
stones  and  ruins),  and  for  the  sake  of  Alexander,  to 
whose  spirit  he  offered  sacrifice  in  the  room  where  he 
had  died.  When,  therefore,  he  ascertained  it,  he  sent 
Lusius  and  Maximus  against  the  rebels.  The  latter 
perished  after  a  defeat  in  the  field ;  but  Lusius  was  gen- 
erally successful,  recovering  Nisibis,  besieging  Edessa, 
and  plundering  and  burning.  Seleucia  was  also  cap- 
tured by  Erucius  Clarus  and  Julius  Alexander,  lieu- 

1  The  Tauchnitz  reading,  Iv  nXoitft  will  not  fit  the  context.  Just  below 
idovi  (Bekker)  has  to  be  read  for  fioffoui. 

207 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

>^'  ^'  ^n^  tenants,  and  was  burned.     Trajan,  in  fear  that  the 

(a.    u.    869)  "       ' 

Parthians,  too,  might  begin  some  revolt,  decided  to  give 
them  a  king  of  their  own.  And  when  he  came  to  Ctesi- 
phon  he  called  together  in  a  great  plain  all  the  Eomans 
and  likewise  all  the  Parthians  that  were  there  at  the 
time.  He  mounted  a  lofty  platform,  and,  after  describ- 
ing in  lofty  language  what  he  had  accomplished,  he  ap- 
pointed Parthamaspates  king  of  the  Parthians  and  set 
the  diadem  upon  his  head. 
Lxxv,  9,  6  ^  When  Volgaesus,  the  son  of  Sanatruces,  confronted 
in  battle  array  the  followers  of  Severus  and  be- 
fore coming  to  an  actual  test  of  strength  asked  and 
secured  an  armistice,  Trajan  sent  envoys  to  him  and 
granted  him  a  portion  of  Armenia  in  return  for  peace. 
—  31  —  Next  he  came  into  Arabia  and  commenced  operations 
against  the  people  of  Hatra,  since  they,  too,  had  re- 
volted. This  city  is  neither  large  nor  prosperous. 
The  surrounding  country  is  mostly  desert  and  holds 
no  water  (save  a  small  amount,  poor  in  quality), 
nor  timber,  nor  herb.  It  is  protected  by  these  very 
features,  which  make  a  siege  in  any  form  impos- 
sible, and  by  the  Sun,  to  whom  it  is,  in  a  way,  conse- 
crated. It  was  neither  at  this  time  taken  by  Trajan 
nor  later  by  Severus,  although  they  knocked  down  some 
parts  of  its  wall.  Trajan  sent  the  cavalry  ahead  against 
the  wall  but  failed  in  his  attempt,  and  the  attacking 
force  was  hurled  back  into  the  camp.  As  he  was  riding 
by,  he  barely  missed  being  wounded  himself,  in  spite 
of  the  fact  that  he  had  laid  aside  his  imperial  attire  to 
avoid  being  recognized.     Seeing  the  majestic  gray 

208 


DIO  S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

head  and  his  august  countenance  they  suspected  him  A.  d.  ii6 

*^  ^  X  (a,   u.    869) 

to  be  the  man  he  was,  shot  at  him,  and  killed  a  cavalry- 
man in  his  escort.  There  were  peals  of  thunder  and 
rainbow  tints  glimmered  indistinctly.  Flashes  of  light- 
ning and  spray-like  storms,  hail  and  thunderbolts  fell 
upon  the  Romans  as  often  as  they  made  assaults.  And 
whenever  they  ate  a  meal,  flies  settled  on  the  food  and 
drink,  causing  universal  discomfort.  Thus  Trajan  left 
the  place  and  not  long  after  began  to  fail  in  health. 

Meanwhile  the  Jews  in  the  region  of  Cyrene  had  put  —  32  — 
one  Andreas  at  their  head  and  were  destroying  both 
the  Romans  and  the  Greeks.  They  would  cook  their 
flesh,  make  belts  for  themselves  of  their  entrails, 
anoint  themselves  with  their  blood,  and  wear  their  skins 
for  clothing.  Many  they  sawed  in  two,  from  the  head 
downwards.  Others  they  would  give  to  wild  beasts 
and  force  still  others  to  fight  as  gladiators.  In  all, 
consequently,  two  hundred  and  twenty  thousand  per- 
ished. In  Egypt,  also,  they  performed  many  similar 
deeds,  and  in  Cyprus  under  the  leadership  of  Artemio. 
There,  likewise,  two  hundred  and  forty  thousand  per- 
ished. For  this  reason  no  Jew  may  set  foot  in  that 
land,  but  even  if  one  of  them  is  driven  upon  the  island 
by  force  of  the  wind,  he  is  put  to  death.  Various  per- 
sons took  part  in  subduing  these  Jews,  one  being 
Lusius,  who  was  sent  by  Trajan. 

Now  Trajan  was  preparing  to  make  a  new  expedition   ^^^  jj^ 
into  Mesopotamia.     Finding  himself,  however,  held  <"•  "•  ^^o) 
fast  by  the  clutches  of  the  disease,  he  started  to  sail  to 
Italy  himself  and  left  behind  Publius  ^'Elius  Hadrian 
VOL.  5  —  14  209 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

,-^'  ^-  IIL  with  the  army  in  Svria.    So  the  Romans,  who  had  con- 

(o.   u.   8/0)  "^  '  ' 

quered  Armenia,  most  of  Mesopotamia,  and  the  Par- 
thians,  had  labored  in  vain  and  had  vainly  undergone 
danger.  The  Parthians  disdained  Parthamaspates 
and  began  to  have  kings  according  to  their  original 
custom.  Trajan  suspected  that  his  falling  sick  was 
due  to  the  administration  of  poison.  Some  declare  it 
was  because  his  blood,  which  annually  descended  into 
the  lower  part  of  his  body,  was  kept  from  flowing. 
He  had  also  become  paralyzed,  so  that  part  of  his  body 
was  disabled,  and  his  general  diathesis  was  dropsical. 
And  on  coming  to  Selinus  in  Cilicia,  which  we  also  call 
Traianoupolis,  he  suddenly  expired  after  a  reign  of 
nineteen  years,  six  months,  and  fifteen  days. 


210 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

69 


211 


Hadrian  without  being  adopted  succeeds,  through  the  favor 
of  Plotina  (chapters  1,  2). 

About  the  assassinations  authorized  by  Hadrian:  about  hii 
varied  learning  and  jealousies  (chapters  3,  4). 

His  virtues,  particularly  affability  and  generosity:  old  ar- 
rears of  debt  forgiven  (chapters  5,  8) . 

Travels :  discipline  of  the  army  reformed :  interest  in  hunting 
(chapters  9,  10). 

How  he  honored  Antinous  with  various  marks  of  remem- 
brance (chapter  11). 

■Uprising  of  Jews  on  account  of  the  founding  of  Capitolina: 
Bithynia  recovered  (chapters  12-14). 

The  Albanians  are  held  in  check:  Fharasmanes  the  Iberian 
is  honored  (chapter  15). 

The  Temple  of  Jupiter  Olympius  and  the  Fanellenium  are 
eoniecrated  (chapter  16). 

Growing  ill,  he  adopts  Commodus,  slays  Servianus:  the  dis- 
tinguished services  of  Turbo,  Fronto,  Similis  (chapters  17-19). 

On  the  death  of  Commodus  he  adopts  Antoninus,  the  latter 
adopting  at  the  same  time  Marcus  and  Verus  (chapters  20,  21). 

How  Hadrian  departed  this  life  (chapters  22,  23). 


DURATION  OF  TIME,  IN  WHICH  THE  FOLLOWING  WERE 

CONSULS. 

Quinctius  Niger,  Vipsanius  Apronianus.  (A.  D.  117  =  a.  u. 
870  =  First  of  Hadrian,  from  Aug.  11th.) 

Hadrianus  Aug.  (11),  Claudius  Fuscus  Salinator.  (A.  D.  118 
==  a.  u.  871  =;  Second  of  Hadrian.) 

Hadrianus  Aug.  (Ill),  Q,.  lunius  Rusticus.  (A.  D.  119  = 
a.  u.  872  =^  Third  of  Hadrian.) 

L.  Catilius  Severus,  T.  Aurelius  Fulvus.  (A.  D.  120  =  a.  u. 
873  —  Fourth  of  Hadrian.) 

L.  Annius  Verus,  Aur.  Augurinus.  (A.  D.  121  =;  a.  u.  874  = 
Fifth  of  Hadrian.) 

Acilius  Aviola,  Corellius  Pansa.  (A.  D.  122=^  a.  u.  875  = 
Sixth  of  Hadrian.) 


Q..  Arrius  Psetinus,  C.  Ventidius  Apronianus.  (A.  D.  123  = 
a.  u.  876  =  Seventh  of  Hadrian.) 

Manius  Acilius  Glabrio,  C.  Bellicius  Torquatus.  (A.  D.  124 
=  a.  u.  877  =^  Eighth  of  Hadrian.) 

P.  Com.  Scipio  Asiaticus  (II),  Q.  Vettius  Aquilinus.  (A.  D. 
125  =  a.  u.  878  =  Ninth  of  Hadrian.) 

Annius  Verus  (HI),  L.  Varius  Ambibulus.  (A.  D.  126  = 
a.  u.  879  =  Tenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Gallicianus,  Cselius  Titianus.  (A.  D.  127  =  a.  u.  880  =» 
Eleventh  of  Hadrian.) 

L.  Nonius  Asprenas  Torquatus  (II),  M.  Annius  libo.  (A.  D. 
128  =^  a.  u.  881  =  Twelfth  of  Hadrian.) 

luventius  Celsus  (II),  Marcellus.  (A.  D.  129  =  a.  u.  882  = 
Thirteenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Q.  Fabius  CatuUinus,  M.  Flavins  Aper.  (A.  D.  130=;  a.  n. 
883  =  Fourteenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Ser.  Octav.  Lsenas  Pontianus,  M.  Antonius  Rufinus.  (A.  D. 
131  =  a.  u.  884  =  Fifteenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Augurinus,  Severianus  (or,  according  to  others,  Sergianus). 
(A.  D.  132  =  a.  XL.  885  =  Sixteenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Hiberus,  lunius  Silanus  Sisenna.  (A.  D.  133  =  a.  u.  886  = 
Seventeenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Servianus  (III),  Vibius  Varus.  (A.  D.  134  =  a.  u.  887  = 
Eighteenth  of  Hadrian.) 

Pontianus,  Atilianus.  (A.  D.  135  =  a.  u.  888  =;  Nineteenth 
of  Hadrian.) 

L.  Ceionius  Conimodus  Verus,  Sex.  Vetulenus  Civica  Pompci- 
anus.     (A.  D.  136  =  a.  u.  889  =  Twentieth  of  Hadrian.) 

L.  .Sllius  Verus  Caesar,  P.  Cselius  Balbinus  Vibullius.  (A.  D. 
137  =  a.  u.  890  =  Twenty-first  of  Hadrian.) 

Camerinus,  Niger.  (A.  D.  138  =^  a.  u.  891  =Twenty-second 
of  Hadrian,  to  July  10th.) 


{BOOK  69,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Hadrian  had  not  been  adopted  by  Trajan.     He  was     —  i  — 

A.   D.   117 

merely  a  fellow-citizen  of  the  latter,  had  enjoyed  Tra-  («!  u[  870) 
jan's  services  as  guardian,  was  of  near  kin  to  him, 
and  had  married  his  niece.  In  fine,  he  was  a  companion 
of  his,  sharing  his  daily  life,  and  had  been  assigned  to 
Syria  for  the  Parthian  War.  However,  he  had  re- 
ceived no  distinguishing  mark  of  favor  from  Trajan 
and  had  not  been  one  of  the  first  to  be  appointed  consul. 
His  position  as  Caesar  and  emperor  was  due  to  the  fact 
that,  when  Trajan  died  without  an  heir,  Attianus,  a 
fellow-citizen  and  former  guardian,  together  with  Plo- 
tina,  who  was  in  love  with  him,  secured  him  the  appoint- 
ment,— their  efforts  being  facilitated  by  his  proximity 
and  his  having  a  large  force  under  his  command.  My 
father  Apronianus,  who  was  governor  of  Cilicia,  had 
ascertained  accurately  the  whole  story  about  him.  He 
used  to  relate  the  different  incidents,  and  said  in  par- 
ticular that  the  death  of  Trajan  was  concealed  for  sev- 
eral days  to  the  end  that  the  adoption  might  be  an- 
nounced. This  was  shown  also  by  his  letters  to  the 
senate,  the  signature  upon  which  was  not  his,  but  Flo- 
tina's.  She  had  not  done  this  in  any  previous  in- 
stance. 

At  the  time  that  he  was  declared  emperor,  Hadrian     —  2  _ 
was  in  Antioch,  the  metropolis  of  Syria,  of  which  he 
was  governor.    In  a  dream  just  before  that  day  he 
seemed  to  see  fire  descend  from  heaven  in  the  midst 
of  clear  sky  and  wholly  fair  weather  and  fall  first  upon 

215 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A,  D.  117   the  left  of  his  throat  and  then  upon  the  risrht  also, 

(a.   «.   870)  ^  °  ' 

though  it  neither  frightened  nor  injured  him.  And 
Hadrian  wrote  to  the  senate,  asking  that  his  sover- 
eignty be  confirmed  also  by  that  body,  and  forbidding 
any  measure  to  be  voted  (as  was  so  often  done)  either 
then  or  thereafter  that  contained  any  special  honor 
for  him,  unless  he  should  first  himself  approve  it. 

The  bones  of  Trajan  were  deposited  in  his  column, 
and  the  so-called  Parthian  games  continued  for  a  num- 
ber of  years.  At  a  later  date  even  this  observance, 
like  many  others,  was  abolished. 

Hadrian's  rule  was  in  general  most  humane.  [In  a 
letter  he  expresses  himself  with  the  greatest  degree  of 
consideration  for  others  and  swears  that  he  will  neither 
do  anything  contrary  to  the  public  advantage  nor  put  to 
death  any  senator,  calling  down  destruction  upon  him- 
self, if  he  shall  transgress  these  principles  in  any  way. 
But]  Still  he  was  spoken  against  on  account  of  some 
murders  of  excellent  men  that  he  had  sanctioned  in  the 
beginning  of  his  reign  and  near  the  end  of  his  life. 
And  for  this  reason  he  came  near  not  being  enrolled 
among  the  heroes.  Those  murdered  at  the  beginning 
were  Pahna  and  Celsus,  Nigrinus  and  Lusius,  the  first 
two  for  the  alleged  reason  that  they  had  conspired 
against  hiTn  during  a  hunt,  and  the  others  on  certain 
other  complaints,  because  they  had  great  influence,  or 
were  in  a  strong  position  as  regards  wealth  and  fame. 
Hadrian  felt  so  keenly  the  talk  that  was  made  about 
them  that  he  defended  himself  and  declared  upon  oath 
that  he  had  not  ordered  their  deaths.    Those  that  per- 

216 


—  8  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

ished  at  the  end  of  the  reign  were  Servianua  and  his    A.  d.  117 

^  {a.  u.   870) 

grandson  Fuscus. 

^  Hadrian  was  a  pleasant  man  to  meet  and  his  presence  shed  a  kind 
of  grace. 

As  for  Hadrian *s  family,  he  was  a  son  of  [a  man  of 
senatorial  rank,  an  ex-prsBtor]  Hadrianus,  [for  thus 
he  was  named].  In  regard  to  his  disposition,  he  was 
fond  of  literature  in  both  languages  and  has  left  behind 
all  kinds  of  prose  pieces  as  well  as  compositions  in 
verse.  His  ambition  was  insatiable,  and  as  a  result 
he  practiced  all  conceivable  pursuits,  even  the  most 
trivial.  He  modeled  and  painted  and  declared  that 
there  was  nothing  in  peace  or  in  war,  in  imperial  or  in 
private  life,  of  which  he  was  not  cognizant.  [And  this, 
of  course,  did  people  no  harm;  but  his  jealousy  of  those 
who  excelled  in  any  branch  was  terrible  and]  ruined 
many  besides  utterly  destroying  quite  a  few.  [For,] 
since  he  desired  to  surpass  everybody  in  everything, 
[he  hated  those  who  attained  eminence  in  any  direction.] 
This  feeling  it  was  which  led  him  to  undertake  the  over- 
throw of  two  sophists,  Favorinus  the  Gaul  and  Dio- 
nysius  the  Milesian,  [by  various  methods,  chiefly]  by 
stirring  up  their  antagonists  [who  were  of  little  or  no 
worth  at  all].  Dionysius  is  said  to  have  remarked  at 
this  time  to  Avidius*  Heliodorus,  who  managed  his  cor- 
respondence :  *  *  Caesar  can  give  you  money  and  honor, 
but  he  can't  make  you  an  orator."  Favorinus  was 
about  to  bring  a  case  before  the  emperor  in  regard 
to  exemption  from  taxes,  a  privilege  which  he  desired 
to  secure  in  his  native  city.    Suspecting,  however,  that 

1  Boissevain's  reading. 

217 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

^-  ^'  III,  he  should  be  unsuccessful  and  be  insulted  in  addition, 

(a.  «.   870)  ' 

he  entered  the  court-room,  to  be  sure,  but  made  no  other 
statement  save:  *'My  teacher  stood  this  night  in  a 
dream  by  my  side  and  bade  me  do  service  for  my 
country,  since  I  have  been  bom  in  it." 
—4—  Now  Hadrian  spared  these  men,  although  he  was  dis- 
pleased with  them,  for  he  could  find  no  satisfactory 
pretext  to  use  against  them  that  might  compass  their 
destruction.  But  he  first  banished  and  later  actually 
put  to  death  Apollodorus  the  architect,  who  had 
planned  the  various  creations  of  Trajan  in  Rome,— 
the  forum,  the  odeum,  and  the  gymnasium.  The  excuse 
given  was  that  he  had  been  guilty  of  some  misde- 
meanor, but  the  true  reason  was  that,  when  Trajan  was 
consulting  him  on  some  point  about  the  works,  he  had 
said  to  Hadrian,  who  broke  in  with  some  remark :  ' '  Be 
off  and  draw  gourds.  You  don't  understand  any  of 
these  matters."  It  happened  that  Hadrian  at  the 
time  was  pluming  himself  upon  some  such  drawing. 
When  he  became  emperor,  therefore,  he  remembered 
the  slight  and  would  not  endure  the  man's  freedom  of 
speech.  He  sent  him  his  own  plan  of  the  temple  of 
Venus  and  Roma  by  way  of  showing  him  that  a  great 
work  could  be  accomplished  without  his  aid,  and  he 
asked  Apollodorus  whether  the  structure  was  a  good 
one.  The  latter  in  his  reply  said  about  the  temple  that 
it  ought  to  have  been  made  to  tower  aloft  in  the  air 
and  have  been  scooped  out  beneath.  Then,  as  a  result 
of  being  higher,  it  would  have  stood  out  more  conspicu- 
ously on  the  Sacred  Way,  and  might  have  received 

218 


DIO'S  ROMAN    HISTORY 

within  its  expanse  the  engines,  so  that  they  could  be 
built  unobserved  and  could  be  brought  into  the  theatre 
"without  any  one's  being  aware  of  it  beforehand.  In 
regard  to  the  statues,  he  said  that  they  had  been  made 
too  tall  for  the  height  adopted  in  the  principal  room. 
*  *  If  the  goddesses  ' ',  he  said,  *  *  wish  to  get  up  and  go 
out,  they  will  be  unable  to  do  so. ' '  When  he  wrote  this 
so  bluntly  to  Hadrian,  the  latter  was  both  vexed  and 
exceedingly  pained  because  he  had  fallen  into  a  mistake 
that  could  not  be  set  right.  He  restrained  neither  his 
anger  nor  his  grief,  but  murdered  the  man.  [By  na- 
ture] the  emperor  was  such  a  person  [that  he  was  jeal- 
ous not  only  of  the  living,  but  also  of  the  dead.  For 
instance,]  he  abolished  Homer  and  introduced  in  his 
stead  Antimachus,  whose  name  many  persons  had  not 
previously  known. 

These  acts  were  charged  against  him  as  offences, 
and  so  were  also  his  great  exactness,  his  superfluous 
labors,  and  his  divided  interests.  But  he  healed  the 
wounds  made  and  recovered  favor  by  his  general  care, 
his  foresight,  his  grandeur  and  his  skill.  Again,  he 
did  not  stir  up  any  war  and  ended  those  already  in 
progress.  He  deprived  no  one  of  money  unjustly,  and 
upon  many  peoples  and  private  citizens  and  senators 
and  knights  he  bestowed  large  sums.  He  did  not  wait 
to  be  asked,  but  was  certain  to  act  each  time  according 
to  each  man's  needs.  The  military  he  trained  with 
great  precision,  so  that  its  strength  rendered  it  neither 
disobedient  nor  insolent.  Allied  and  subject  cities  he 
aided  most  munificently.    He  had  seen  many  that  no 

219 


A.  D.  117 

(a.   u.   870) 


—  6  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  117  other  emperor  had  even  set  eyes  upon,  and  he  assisted 

(a.   M.   8/0)  ^  .    . 

practically  all  of  them,  giving  to  some  water,  to  others 
harbors,  or  food,  or  public  works,  or  money,  and  to 
still  others  various  honors. 

—6—  As  a  leader  of  the  Eoman  people  he  was  distin- 
guished for  force  rather  than  for  flattery.  Once,  at  a 
gladiatorial  contest,  when  the  crowd  was  urging  its 
petition  strongly,  he  not  only  would  not  grant 
its  wish,  but  further  ordered  this  command  of  Domi- 
tian's  to  be  proclaimed:  **  Be  silent."  The  words 
were  not  uttered,  though.  The  herald  raised  his  hand 
and  by  that  very  gesture  quieted  the  people  as  he  had 
been  accustomed  to  do.  (They  are  never  silenced  by 
proclamation.)  Then,  when  they  had  become  quiet,  he 
said:  **  This  is  what  he  wishes."  Hadrian  was  not 
in  the  least  angry  with  the  herald ;  on  the  contrary,  he 
honored  him  for  not  publishing  the  rudeness  of  the 
order.  He  could  endure  such  things  and  was  not  dis- 
pleased if  he  was  aided  in  any  unexpected  way  and  by 
chance  comers.  It  must  be  admitted  that  once,  when  a 
woman  passed  him  on  some  road  and  preferred  a  re- 
quest, he  at  first  said  to  her:  ''  I  haven't  time." 
Afterwards,  when  she  cried  out  loudly,  saying: 
"Don't  be  emperor,  then",  he  turned  about  and 
granted  her  a  hearing. 

(—7—)  He  transacted  through  the  senate  all  serious  and 
most  urgent  business  and  he  held  court  with  the  assist- 
ance of  prominent  men  now  in  the  palace  or  again  in 
the  Forum,  the  Pantheon,  and  in  many  other  places, 
always  on  a  platform,  so  that  what  was  done  was  open 

220 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 


A.  D.  117 

(a.   u.    870) 


to  public  inspection.  Sometimes  he  would  join  the  con- 
suls when  thei/  were  trying  cases,  and  he  showed  them 
honor  at  the  horse-races.  When  he  returned  home  he 
was  accustomed  to  be  carried  in  a  litter,  in  order  not 
to  trouble  any  one  to  accompany  him.  On  days 
neither  sacred  nor  public  he  remained  at  home,  and  ad- 
mitted no  one  even  long  enough  to  greet  him,  unless 
it  were  some  urgent  matter;  this  was  to  relieve  the 
courtiers  of  needless  annoyance.  Both  in  Rome  and 
abroad  he  always  kept  the  noblest  men  about  him; 
and  he  used  to  join  them  at  banquets,  which  led  to  his 
being  often  carried  in  their  litters  as  one  of  a  party  of 
four.  As  frequently  as  possible  he  went  hunting,  and 
he  breakfasted  without  wine;  in  fact,  most  of  Ms  food  was 
served  without  any  accompanying  beverage;  and  often  In  the  midst 
of  a  meal  he  would  turn  his  attention  to  a  case  at  law:    later  he 

would  drive  in  the  company  of  all  the  foremost  and 
best  men,  and  their  eating  together  was  the  occasion 
for  all  kind  of  discussions.  When  his  friends  were 
very  ill,  he  would  go  to  see  them,  and  he  used  to  attend 
their  festivals,  besides  evincing  pleasure  at  visiting 
their  country  seats  and  houses.  As  might  have  been 
expected,  then,  he  set  up  in  his  forum  images  for 
many  who  were  dead  and  many  still  alive.  No  one  of 
his  associates,  moreover,  displayed  insolence  nor  sold 
aught  that  he  should  pronounce  or  perform^  as  the 
Caesarians  and  other  attendants  in  the  suite  of  em- 
perors have  made  it  their  custom  to  do. 

This  is  a  kind  of  preface,  of  a  summary  nature,     _8— 
that  I  have  been  giving  in  regard  to  his   character. 

221 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  117   I  shall  also  touch  upon  all  the  details  that  require 

(a.   u.   870)  .  ^  ^ 

mention. 

If  The  Alexandrians  had  been  rioting  and  nothing  would  make  them 
stop  until  they  received  a  letter  from  Hadrian  rebuking  them.  So  true 
it  is  that  an  emperor's  word  has  more  power  than  force  of  arms. 

(a  u  871)  ^^  coming  to  Rome  he  canceled  debts  owing  to  the 
imperial  treasury  and  to  the  public  treasury  of  the 
Romans,  setting  a  limit  of  sixteen  years,  from  which 
and  as  far  back  as  which  this  provision  was  to  be  ob- 
served. On  his  own  birthday  he  gave  a  spectacle  to 
the  people  free  of  charge,  and  slaughtered  numbers 
of  wild  beasts,—  one  hundred  lions  and  a  like  number 
of  lionesses  biting  the  dust  on  this  one  occasion.  Gifts, 
likewise,  he  brought  about  by  means  of  balls  both  in 
the  theatres  and  in  the  hippodrome,  one  lot  for  the  men 
and  one  lot  for  the  women.  Indeed,  he  had  also  com- 
manded them  to  battle  separately. 

This,  then,  was  what  happened  that  year.  Euphrates 
the  philosopher  also  died  a  death  of  his  own  choos- 
ing; and  Hadrian  assented  to  his  drinking  hemlock 
in  consideration  of  his  extreme  age  and  sickliness. 
—9—  Hadrian  went  from  one  province  to  another,  visiting 
the  districts  and  cities  and  observing  all  the  garrisons 
and  fortifications.  Some  of  these  he  removed  to  more 
desirable  locations,  some  he  abolished,  and  he  founded 
some  new  ones.  He  personally  oversaw  and  investi- 
gated absolutely  everything,  not  merely  the  usual  ap- 
purtenances of  camps,—  I  mean  weapons  and  engines 
and  ditches  and  enclosures  and  palisades, — but  also 
the  private  affairs  of  each  one,  and  the  lives,  the  dwell- 

222 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

ings  and  the  characters  both  of  the  men  serving  in  the  a.  d.  iis 
organization,  and  of  the  commanders  themselves. 
Many  cases  of  too  delicate  living  and  equipment  he 
harmonized  with  military  needs  and  reformed  in  vari- 
ous ways.  He  exercised  the  men  in  every  variety  of 
battle,  honoring  some  and  reproving  others.  He 
taught  all  of  them  what  they  ought  to  do.  And  to 
make  sure  that  they  should  obtain  benefit  from  ob- 
serving him,  he  led  everywhere  a  severe  existence  and 
walked  or  rode  horseback  on  all  occasions.  Never  at 
this  period  did  he  enter  either  a  chariot  or  a  four- 
wheeled  vehicle.  He  covered  his  head  neither  in  heat 
nor  in  cold,  but  alike  in  Celtic  snows  and  under  scorch- 
ing Egyptian  suns  he  went  about  with  it  bare.    In  ,-^-  ^'  ii^ 

*        ^"^  ^  {a.   u.   872) 

fine,  so  thoroughly  by  action  and  exhortations  did  he 
train  and  discipline  the  whole  military  force  through- 
out the  whole  empire  that  even  now  the  methods  then 
introduced  by  him  are  the  soldiers'  law  of  campaign- 
ing. This  best  explains  why  he  lived  for  the  most 
part  at  peace  with  foreign  nations.  As  they  saw  what 
support  he  had  and  were  victims  of  no  injustice,  but 
instead  received  money,  they  made  no  uprising.  So 
excellently  had  his  soldiery  been  trained,  that  the  cav- 
alry of  the  so-called  Batavians  swam  the  Ister  with 
their  heavy  armor  on.  Seeing  this  the  barbarians 
stood  in  terror  of  the  Eomans,  and  turning  their  at- 
tention to  their  own  affairs^  they  employed  Hadrian 
as  an  arbitrator  of  their  differences. 
He  also  constructed  theatres  and  held  games  as  he    —  lo  — 

1  Reading  ^T^i  (Dindorf)   instead  of  fs^j' 

223 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  119  traveled  about  from  city  to  city,  dispensing,  however, 
with  the  imperial  paraphernalia.  This  he  never  used 
outside  of  Eome.  His  own  country,  though  he  did  her 
great  honor  and  bestowed  many  proud  possessions  on 
her,  he  nevertheless  did  not  set  eyes  upon. 

He  is  said  to  have  been  enthusiastic  over  hunting. 
Indeed,  he  broke  his  collar-bone  in  this  pursuit  and 
came  near  losing  a  leg.  And  to  a  city  that  he  founded 
A.  D.  121  in  Mysia  he  gave  the  name  of  AdrianothersB.  How- 
(a.  tt.  874)  gygj,^  Yie  did  not,  while  so  occupied,  leave  undone  any  of 
the  duties  pertaining  to  his  office.  Of  his  enthusiasm 
for  hunting  his  horse  Borysthenes,  which  was  his  fav- 
orite steed  for  the  chase,  gives  us  an  indication. 
When  the  animal  died,  he  prepared  a  tomb  for  him, 
set  up  a  slab,  and  placed  an  inscription  upon  it.  Hence 
it  is  scarcely  surprising  that  when  Plotina  died,  the 
woman  through  whom  he  had  secured  the  imperial 
office,  and  who  was  passionately  in  love  with  him,  he 
honored  her  to  the  extent  of  wearing  mourning  gar- 
ments for  nine  days,  building  a  temple  to  her,  and  com- 
posing several  hymns  to  her  memory. 

f  When  Plotina  was  dead,  Hadrian  praised  her  and  said :  "  Though 
she  asked  much  of  me,  she  was  never  refused  aught."  By  this  he  surely 
meant  to  say :  "  Her  requests  were  of  such  a  character  that  they  neither 
burdened  me  nor  afforded  me  any  justification  for  saying  no." 

He  was  so  skillful  in  hunting  that  once  he  brought 
down  a  huge  boar  with  a  single  blow. 
—  11—         Qjj  reaching  Greece  he  became  a  spectator  at  the 
Mysteries. 

A    D.  122 

(o.  tt.  875)      After  this  he  passed  through  Judaea  into  EgjT)t  and 

224 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

offered  sacrifice  to  Pompey,  about  whom  he  is  said  to  ,^-  ^-  322 

^    •"  {a.   u.   87o) 

have  uttered  this  verse: 

strange  lack  of  tomb  for  one  with  shrines  o'erwhelmed !  1 

And  he  restored  his  monument,  which  had  fallen  to 
ruin.  In  Egypt  also  he  restored  the  so-called  City  of 
Antinous.  Antinous  was  from  Bithynium,  a  city  of 
Bithynia  which  we  also  call  Claudioupolis ;  he  had  been 
a  favorite  of  the  emperor  and  had  died  in  Egypt, 
either  by  falling  into  the  Nile,  as  Hadrian  writes,  or, 
as  is  more  probably  the  truth,  by  being  offered  in  sac- 
rifice. For  Hadrian,  as  I  have  stated,  was  in  general 
a  great  dabbler  in  superstitions  and  employed  divina- 
tions and  incantations  of  all  kinds.  Accordingly,  he 
honored  Antinous  either  because  of  his  love  for  him 
or  because  he  had  voluntarily  submitted  to  death  (it 
being  necessary  that  a  life  be  surrendered  voluntarily 
for  the  accomplishment  of  the  ends  he  had  in  viefw), 
by  building  a  city  on  the  spot  where  he  had  suffered 
this  fate  and  naming  it  after  him :  and  he  further  set 
up  likenesses,  or  rather  sacred  statues  of  him,  practi- 
cally all  over  the  world.  Finally,  he  declared  that  he 
had  seen  a  star  which  he  assumed  to  belong  to  An- 
tinous, and  gladly  lent  an  ear  to  the  fictitious  tales 
woven  by  his  associates  to  the  effect  that  the  star  had 
really  come  into  being  from  the  spirit  of  Antinous  and 
had  then  appeared  for  the  first  time.  On  this  account 
he  became  the  object  of  some  ridicule  [as  also  because 
at  the  death  of  his  sister  Paulina  he  had  not  immedi-  (a.  u.  886) 
ately  paid  her  any  honor.    .    .    .] 

1  Compare  Appian,  Civil  Wars,  Book  Two,  chapter  86    (also  Spar- 
tianus,  14,  4 ) . 

VOL.  5—15  225 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

"~^"7  In  Jerusalem  he  founded  a  city  in  place  of  the  one 
(o.  u.  886)  razed  to  the  ground,  naming  it  ^lia  Capitolina,  and  on 
the  site  of  the  temple  of  the  god  he  raised  a  new  temple 
'  to  Jupiter.     This  brought  on  a  war  that  was  not  slight 

nor  of  brief  duration,  for  the  Jews  deemed  it  intoler- 
able that  foreign  races  should  be  settled  in  their  city 
and  foreign  religious  rites  be  planted  there.  While 
Hadrian  was  close  by  in  Egypt  and  again  in  Syria,  they 
remained  quiet,  save  in  so  far  as  they  purposely  made 
the  weapons  they  were  called  upon  to  furnish  of  poorer 
quality,  to  the  end  that  tlie  Romans  might  reject  them 
and  they  have  the  use  of  them.  But  when  he  went 
farther  away,  they  openly  revolted.  To  be  sure,  they 
did  not  dare  try  conclusions  with  the  Romans  in  the 
open  field,  but  they  occupied  advantageous  positions 
in  the  country  and  strengthened  them  with  mines  and 
walls,  in  order  that  they  might  have  places  of  refuge 
whenever  they  should  be  hard  pressed,  and  meet  to- 
gether unobserved  under  ground ;  and  in  these  subter- 
ranean passages  they  sunk  shafts  from  above  to  let  in 

—  13—  air  and  light.  At  first  the  Romans  made  no  account 
of  them.  Soon,  however,  ail  Judaea  had  been  up- 
heaved, and  the  Jews  all  over  the  world  were  showing 
signs  of  disturbance,  were  gathering  together,  and 
giving  evidence  of  great  hostility  to  the  Romans, 
partly  by  secret  and  partly  by  open  acts ;  many  other 
outside  nations,  too,  were  joining  them  through  eager- 
ness for  gain,  and  the  whole  earth,  almost,  was  becom- 
ing convulsed  over  the  matter.  Then,  indeed,  did 
Hadrian  send  against  them  his  best  generals,  of  whom 

226 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Julius  Severus  was  the  first  to  be  despatched,  from  ,^-  ^-  H^ 

^  '  (a.   u.   886) 

Britain,  of  which  he  was  governor,  against  the  Jews. 
He  did  not  venture  to  attack  his  opponents  at  any  one 
point,  seeing  their  numbers  and  their  desperation,  but 
by  taking  them  in  separate  groups  by  means  of  the 
number  of  his  soldiers  and  his  under-officers  and  by 
depriving  them  of  food  and  shutting  them  up  he  was 
able,  rather  slowly,  to  be  sure,  but  with  comparatively 
little  danger,  to  crush  and  exhaust  and  exterminate 
them.  Very  few  of  them  survived.  Fifty  of  their  —in- 
most important  garrisons  and  nine  hundred  and  eighty- 
five  of  their  most  renowned  towns  were  blotted  out. 
Fifty-eight  myriads  of  men  were  slaughtered  in  the 
course  of  the  invasions  and  battles,  and  the  number  of 
those  that  perished  by  famine  and  disease  and  fire 
was  past  all  investigating.  Thus  nearly  the  whole  of 
Judaea  was  made  desolate,  an  event  of  which  the  people 
had  had  indications  even  before  the  war.  The  tomb 
of  Solomon,  which  these  men  regarded  as  one  of  their 
sacred  objects,  fell  to  pieces  of  itself  and  collapsed 
and  many  wolves  and  hyenas  rushed  howling  into  their 
cities. 

Many  Romans,  moreover,  perished  in  the  war. 
Wherefore  Hadrian  in  writing  to  the  senate  did  not 
employ  the  opening  phrase  commonly  affected  by  the 
emperors :  ' '  If  you  and  your  children  are  in  health, 
it  shall  be  well:    I  and  the  armies  are  in  health." 

Severus^  he  sent  into  Bithynia,  which  needed  no  force  a.  d.  i34(t) 
of  arms  but  a  governor  and  presiding  officer  who  was 

1  Not  the  Bame  person  as  is  mentioned  in  the  previous  chapter. 

227 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  134(7)  j^gi;  ajj^  prudent  and  had  a  reputation.  All  these 
qualifications  Severus  possessed.  And  he  managed 
and  administered  both  their  private  and  their  public 
affairs  in  such  a  way  that  we^  are  still,  even  to-day, 
wont  to  remember  him.  [Pamphylia  in  place  of 
Bithjmia  was  given  into  the  jurisdiction  of  the  senate 
and  the  lot.] 
— 15  —  This,  then,  was  the  ending  that  the  war  with  the  Jews 
took.  A  second  war  was  started  among  the  Alani 
(they  are  Massagetae)  by  Pharasmanes.  On  Albanis 
and  Media  he  inflicted  severe  injury  and  then  laid  hold 
on  Armenia  and  Cappadocia,  after  which,  as  the  Alani 
were  on  the  one  hand  persuaded  by  gifts  from  Volo- 
gaesus  and  on  the  other  stood  in  dread  of  Flavins  Arri- 
anus,  the  governor  of  Cappadocia,  he  stopped. 
[Envoys  were  sent  from  Vologsesus  and  from  the 
lazygae;  the  former  made  some  charges  against 
Pharasmanes  and  the  latter  wanted  to  confirm  the 
peace.  [?]^  introduced  them  to  the  senate  and  was 
empowered  by  that  body  to  return  appropriate 
answers;  and  accordingly  he  prepared  and  read  to 
them  his  responses.] 
—  16—  Hadrian  completed  the  Olympieum  in  Athens,  in 
which  his  own  statue  also  stands,  and  consecrated 
there  a  serpent,  which  was  brought  from  India.  He 
also  presided  at  the  Dionysia,  the  greatest  office  within 
the  gift  of  the  people,  and  arrayed  in  the  local  costume 
carried  it  through  brilliantly.    He  allowed  the  Greeks, 

1 1,  e.,  "  we  natives  of  Bithynia  "  ( Dio's  country ) . 
2  It  is   impossible   to   determine,   from  the   date  of   this   fragment, 
whether  the  subject  should  be  Hadrian  or  Antoninus  Pius. 

228 


DTO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

too,  to  build  his  sepulchre  (called  the  Panellenium),  ^-  ^-  ^34(?) 

and  instituted  a  series  of  games  to  be  connected  with 

it;   and  he  granted  to  the  Athenians  large  sums  of 

money,  annual  corn  distribution,   and  the  whole  of 

Cephallenia.— Among  various  laws  that  he  enacted 

was  one  to  the  effect  that  no  senator,  either  personally 

or  through  the  medium  of  another,  should  have  any  tax 

farmed  out  to  him.    After  he  had  come  to  Rome,  the  („."  „/  gss) 

crowd  at  a  spectacle  shouted  their  request  for  the 

emancipation  of  a  certain  charioteer:   but  he  replied 

by  means  of  a  writing  on  a  board :   *  *  It  is  not  right  for 

you  either  to  ask  me  to  free  another's  slave  or  to  force 

his  master  to  do  so." 

He  now  began  to  be  sick,  having  suffered  even  before  — 17  — 
this  from  blood  gushing  from  his  nostrils:  this  flow 
now  grew  very  much  more  copious,  so  that  he  despaired 
of  his  life.  Consequently,  he  appointed  as  Caesar  for 
the  Romans  Lucius  Commodus,  although  this  man  fre- 
quently vomited  blood.  Servianus  and  his  grandson  a.  d.  136 
Fuscus,  the  former  a  nonagenarian  and  the  latter 
eighteen  years  of  age,  were  put  to  death  on  the  ground 
that  they  were  displeased  at  this  action.  Servianus 
before  being  executed  asked  for  fire,  and  as  he  offered 
incense  he  exclaimed :  * '  That  I  am  guilty  of  no  wrong, 
ye,  0  Gods,  are  well  aware:  and  as  for  Hadrian  I 
pray  only  this,  that  he  may  desire  to  die  and  not  be 
able. ' '  And,  indeed,  Hadrian  did  come  to  his  end  only 
after  often  praying  that  he  might  expire  and  often  feel- 
ing a  desire  to  kill  himself.  There  is  in  existence  also 
a  letter  of  his  which  lays  stress  on  this  very  matter, 

229 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

(t'  ?.'  889)  showing  what  a  dreadful  thing  it  is  for  a  man  to  desire 
to  die  and  not  be  able.  This  Servdanus  had  been  by 
Hadrian  deemed  capable  of  filling  the  imperial  office. 
He  had  once  at  a  banquet  told  his  friends  to  name  for 
him  ten  men  who  were  competent  to  be  sole  rulers,  and 
then  after  a  moment's  pause,  had  added :  **  I  want  to 
know  nine :  I  have  one  already,  Servianus.  * ' 
—  18—  Other  excellent  men,  also,  had  come  to  light  during 
that  period,  of  whom  the  most  distinguished  were 
Turbo  and  Similis,  who,  indeed,  were  honored  with 
statues. 

Turbo  was  a  man  of  great  qualities  as  a  general, 
who  had  become  prefect  (or  commander  of  the  Pre- 
torians).  He  committed  no  act  of  luxury  or  haughti- 
ness, but  lived  like  one  of  the  multitude :  the  entire  day 
he  spent  in  proximity  to  the  palace  and  often  he  would 
go  there  even  shortly  before  midnight,  when  some  of 
the  others  were  beginning  to  sleep.  A  characteristic 
anecdote  is  that  which  brings  in  the  name  of  Cornelius 
Fronto,  at  this  time  reputed  to  be  the  foremost  Roman 
advocate  in  lawsuits.  One  evening  very  late  he  was 
returning  hoone  from  dinner  and  ascertained  from  a 
man  whose  counsel  he  had  promised  to  be  that  Turbo 
was  holding  court.  Accordingly,  just  as  he  was,  in  his 
dress  for  dinner,  he  went  into  his  courtroom  and 
greeted  him  not  with  the  morning  salutation,  I  wish 
you  joy,  but  with  that  belonging  to  the  evening,  I  trust 
your  health  continues  good. 

Turbo  was  never  seen  at  home  in  the  daytime  even 
when  he  was  sick ;  and  to  Hadrian,  who  advised  him  to 
remain  quiet,  he  replied :  '  *  The  prefect  ought  to  die 
on  his  feet** 

230 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

Similis,  who  was  of  greater  age  and  more  advanced  ^IF~ 
rank,  in  character  was  second  to  none  of  the  great  men,  (a.  u.  889) 
I  think.  Very  slight  things  may  serve  ns  as  evidence. 
When  he  was  centurion,  Trajan  had  summoned  him  to 
enter  his  presence  before  the  prefects,  whereupon  he 
said :  *'  It  is  a  shame  for  ycu,  Csesar,  to  be  talking  with 
a  centurion,  while  the  prefects  stand  outside."  And 
he  took  unwillingly  at  that  time  the  command  of  the 
Pretorians,  and  after  taking  it  resigned  it.  Having 
with  difl&culty  secured  his  release  he  spent  the  rest  of 
his  life,  seven  years,  quietly  in  the  country,  and  upon 
Lis  tomb  he  had  this  inscription  placed:  ''Similis  lies 
here,  who  existed  so-and-so  many  years,  but  lived  for 
seven. ' ' 

^  Julius  ( ?)  Fabius  ( ?),  not  being  able  to  endure  his    (—23—) 
son's  effeminacy,  desired  to  throw  himself  into  the 
river. 

Hadrian  became  consumptive  as  a  result  of  the  r~5°T7Q 
great  loss  of  blood,  and  that  led  to  dropsy.  And  as  it  (a.  «.  89i) 
happened  that  Lucius  Commodus  was  suddenly  re- 
moved from  the  scene  by  the  outgushing  of  a  large 
quantity  of  blood  all  at  once,  he  convened  at  his  house 
the  foremost  and  most  renowned  of  the  senators ;  and 
lying  on  a  couch  he  spoke  to  them  as  follows :  * '  I,  my 
friends,  was  not  permitted  by  nature  to  secure  off- 
spring, but  you  have  made  it  possible  by  legal  enact- 
ment. There  is  this  difference  between  the  two  ways,— 
that  a  begotten  son  turns  out  to  be  whatever  sort  of 
person  Heaven  pleases,  whereas  one  that  is  adopted  a 
man  takes  to  himself  because  he  chooses  just  that  sort 
of  being.    Thus  in  process  of  nature  a  maimed  and 

231 


BIOS   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  138  senseless  creature  is  often  given  to  a  parent,  but  by 
process  of  voluntary  decision  one  of  sound  body  and 
sound  mind  is  certain  to  be  selected.  For  this  cause 
I  formerly  chose  out  Lucius  from  among  all,  a  person 
of  such  attainments  as  I  could  never  have  prayed  to 
find  in  a  child.  But  since  the  Heavenly  Power  has 
taken  him  from  among  us,  I  have  found  an  emperor  in 
his  place  whom  I  now  give  you,  one  who  is  noble,  mild, 
tractable,  prudent,  neither  young  enough  to  do  any- 
thing reckless  nor  old  enough  to  neglect  aught,—  one 
brought  up  according  to  the  laws,  who  has  held  posses- 
sion of  authority  according  to  his  country's  traditions, 
so  that  he  is  not  ignorant  of  any  matters  pertaining  to 
his  ofl&ce,  but  can  handle  them  all  effectively.  I  refer 
to  Aurelius  Antoninus  here.  Although  I  know  him  to 
be  the  most  retiring  of  men  and  to  be  far  from  desiring 
any  such  thing,  still  I  do  not  think  that  he  will  de- 
liberately disregard  either  me  or  you  but  will  accept 
the  office  even  against  his  will. ' ' 

So  it  was  that  Antoninus  became  emperor.  Since  he 
was  destitute  of  male  children,  Hadrian  adopted  for 
him  Commodus's  son  Commodus  and,  moreover,  be- 
sides the  latter,  Marcus  Annius  Verus ;  for  he  wished  to 
appoint  those  who  were  afterwards  to  be  emperors  for 
as  long  a  time  ahead  as  possible.  (This  Marcus  Annius, 
earlier  named  Catilius,  was  a  grandson  of  Annius 
Verus  who  had  thrice  been  consul  and  prefect  of  the 
city.)  And  though  Hadrian  urged  Antoninus  to  adopt 
them  both,  he  preferred  Verus  on  account  of  his  kin- 
ship and  his  age  and  because  he  already  exhibited  an 
extremely  strong  cast  of  mind.    This  led  him  to  apply 

232 


—  21  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

to  the  yomiff  man  the  name  Verissimus,  with  a  play   a.  d.  138 

•^  °  .  ^      "^     (a.   «.    891) 

upon  the  meaning  of  the  Latin  word. 

By  certain  charjns  and  species  of  magic  Hadrian  was  —  aa  — 
relieved  of  the  water,  but  shortly  was  full  of  it  again. 
Since,  therefore,  he  was  constantly  growing  worse  and 
might  be  said  to  be  slowly  perishing  day  by  day,  he 
began  to  long  for  death.  Often  he  would  ask  for  poison 
and  a  sword,  but  no  one  would  give  them  to  him.  As 
no  one  would  obey  him,  although  he  promised  money 
and  immunity,  he  sent  for  Master,  an  lazygian  bar- 
barian that  had  become  a  captive,  whom  he  had  em- 
ployed in  hunts  on  account  of  his  strength  and  daring. 
Then,  partly  by  threatening  him  and  partly  by  making 
promises,  he  compelled  the  man  to  undertake  the  duty 
of  killing  him.  He  drew  a  colored  line  around  a  spot 
beneath  the  nipple  that  had  been  shown  him  by  Hermo- 
genes  the  physician,  in  order  that  he  might  there  be 
struck  a  finishing  blow  and  perish  painlessly.  But 
even  this  plan  did  not  succeed,  for  Master  became 
afraid  of  the  project  and  in  terror  withdrew.  The  em- 
peror lamented  bitterly  the  plight  in  which  the  disease 
had  placed  him  and  bitterly  his  powerlessness,  in  that 
he  was  not  able  to  make  away  with  himself,  though  he 
might  still,  even  when  so  near  death,  destroy  anybody 
else.  Finally  he  abandoned  his  careful  regimen  and 
through  using  unsuitable  foods  and  drinks  met  his 
death,  saying  and  shouting  aloud  the  popular  saying: 
*  *  Many  physicians  have  ruined  a  king. ' ' 

He  had  lived  sixty-two  years,  five  months  and  nine-    _  23  — i 
teen^  days,  and  had  been  emperor  twenty  years  and 

1  Seventeen,  according  to  the  common  tradition. 

233 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  138  eleven  months.  He  was  buried  near  the  river  itself, 
close  to  the  ^lian  bridge ;  that  was  where  he  had  pre- 
pared his  tomb,  for  the  one  belonging  to  Augustus  was 
full  and  no  other  body  was  deposited  there. 

This  emperor  was  hated  [by  the  people,  in  spite  of 
his  excellent  reign]  on  account  of  the  early  and  the  late 
murders,  since  they  had  been  unjustly  and  impiously 
brought  about.  Yet  he  had  so  little  of  a  bloodthirsty 
disposition  that  even  in  the  case  of  some  who  took 
pains  to  thwart  him  he  deemed  it  sufficient  to  write  to 
their  native  lands  the  bare  statement  that  they  did  not 
please  him.  And  if  any  man  who  had  children  was  ab- 
solutely obliged  to  receive  punishment,  still,  in  propor- 
tion to  the  number  of  his  children  he  would  also  lighten 
the  penalty  imposed.  [Notwithstanding,  the  senate 
persisted  for  a  long  time  in  its  refusal  to  vote  him  di- 
vine honors,  and  in  its  strictures  upon  some  of  those 
who  had  committed  excesses  during  his  reign  and  had 
been  honored  therefor,  when  they  ought  to  have  been 
chastised.] 

After  Hadrian's  death  there  was  erected  to  him  a  huge  equestrian 
statue  representing  him  with  a  four-horse  team.  It  was  so  large  that 
the  bulkiest  man  could  walk  through  the  eye  of  each  horse,  yet  because 
of  the  extreme  height  of  the  monument  persons  passing  along  on  the 
ground  below  are  wont  to  think  that  the  horses  themselves  as  well  as 
Hadrian  are  very  smalL 


234 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

70 


235 


Antoninus  Pius,  succeeding  by  adoption,  effects  the  deification 
of  Hadrian  (chapter  1). 

The  cognomen  Pius  is  bestowed  upon  Antoninus  by  the  senate 
(chapter  2). 

He  showed  little  hostility  toward  the  Christians :  was  careful 
in  trifles:  met  a  quiet  death  in  old  age  (chapter  3). 

Earthquake  that  damaged  Bithynia,  the  Hellespontine  region, 
and  especially  Cyzicua  (chapter  4). 

He  is  compared  with  Numa:  his  gentleness  and  kindliness 
(chapter  5). 

He  was  intent  upon  justice,  not  upon  enlarging  the  empire: 
hence  the  barbarians  brought  their  quarrels  to  him  to  settle 
(chapters  6,  7) . 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

Camerinus,  Niger.  (A.  D.  138  =  a.  u.  891  ==  First  of  Anto- 
ninus, from  July  10th.) 

Antoninus  Pius  Aug.  (II),  Bruttius  Prsesens.  (A.  D.  139  = 
a.  u.  892  =  Second  of  Antoninus.) 

Antoninus  Pius  Aug.   (HI),  Aurelius  Csesar  (11).     (A.  D. 

140  =3  a.  u.  893  =^  Third  of  Antoninus.) 

li.  Peducseus  Sylloga  Priscinus,  T.  Hoenius  Severus.     (A.  D. 

141  =;  a.  u.  894  =:  Fourth  of  Antoninus.) 

L.  Cuspius  Rufinus,  L.  Statins  Quadratus.  (A.  D.  142  =  a.  u. 
895  =  Fifth  of  Antoninus.) 

C.  Bellicius  Torquatus,  Tib.  Claudius  Atticus  Herodes.  (A.  D. 
143  =^  a.  u.  896  =  Sixth  of  Antoninus.) 

Avitus,  Maximus.  (A.  D.  144  =^  a.  u.  897  =  Seventh  of  An- 
toninus.) 

Antoninus  Pius  Aug.  (IV ),  M.  Aurelius  Csesar  (IT).  (A.  D. 
145  =;  a.  u.  898  =  Eighth  of  Antoninus.) 

Sex.  Erucius  Clams  (II),  Cn.  Claudius  Severus.  (A.  D.  14G 
=3  a.  u.  899  =  Ninth  of  Antoninus.) 

Largnis,  Messalinus.  (A.  D.  147  =  a.  u.  900  =  Tenth  of  An- 
toninus.) 

L.  Torquatus  (III) ,  C.  lulianua  Vetus.  (A.  D.  148  =  a.  u. 
901  =  Eleventh  of  Antoninus.) 


Sergiufi  Sclpio  Orfitus,  Q.  Nonius  Friscus.  (A.  D.  149  =  a.  a. 
902  =  Twelfth  of  Antoninus.) 

Gallicanus,  Vetus.  (A.  D.  150  =  a.  u.  903  ==  Thirteenth  of 
Antoninus.) 

Quintilius  Condianus,  ftuintilius  Maximus.  (A.  D.  151  = 
a.  u.  904  =5  Fourteenth  of  Antoninus.) 

M.'  Acilius  Glabrio,  M.  Valerius  HomuUus.  (A.  D.  152  = 
a.  u.  905  =^  Fifteenth  of  Antoninus.) 

C.  Bruttius  Prsesens,  A.  Junius  Rufinus.  (A.  D.  153  =  a.  u. 
906  =  Sixteenth  of  Antoninus.) 

L.  2E1.  Aurelius  Commodus,  T.  Sextius  Lateranus.  (A.  D.  154 
=  a.  u.  907  =  Seventeenth  of  Antoninus.) 

C.  lulius  Severus,  M.  Rufinius  Sabinianus.  (A.  D.  155  =  a.  n. 
908  ==:  Eighteenth  of  Antoninus.) 

M.  Ceionius  Silvanus,  C.  Serius  Augurinus.  (A.  D.  156  = 
a.  u.  909  =5  Nineteenth  of  Antoninus.) 

Barbarus,  Regulus.  (A.  D.  157  =:  a.  u.  910  =  Twentieth  of 
Antoninus.) 

Tertullus,  Sacerdos.  (A.  D.  158  =  a.  u.  911  =;  Twenty-first 
of  Antoninus.) 

Plautius  Quintilius,  Statins  Prisons.  (A.  D.  159  =  a.  u.  912 
=  Twenty-second  of  Antoninus.) 

T.  Clodius  Vibius  Varus,  App.  Annius  Atilius  Bradua.  (A.  D. 
160=:  a.  u.  913  =  Twenty-third  of  Antoninus.) 

M.  .ail.  Aurelius  Verus  Ccesar  (HI),  L.  Ml.  Aurelius  Corn- 
modus  (II).  (A.  D.  161  =  a.  u.  914  =  Twenty-fourth  of  An- 
toninus, to  Harch  7th.) 


(BOOK  70,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

I.  From  Dio : 

It  should  be  noted  that  information  about  Antoninus    r'^  ~7„- 

A.,    XJ,    lt5o 

Pius  is  not  found  in  the  copies  of  Dio,  probably  because  («•  «•  89i) 
the  books  have  met  with  some  accident,  so  that  the  his- 
tory of  his  reign  is  almost  wholly  unknown,  save  that 
when  Lucius  Commodus,  whom  Hadrian  had  adopted, 
died  before  Hadrian,  Antoninus  was  also  adopted  by 
him  and  became  emperor,  and  that  when  the  senate  de- 
murred to  giving  heroic  honors  to  Hadrian  after  his 
demise  on  account  of  certain  murders  of  eminent  men, 
Antoninus  addressed  many  words  to  them  with  tears 
and  laments,  and  finally  said :  *  *  I  will  not  govern  you 
either,  if  he  has  become  base  and  inimical  and  a  na- 
tional foe  in  your  eyes.  For  you  will  of  course  be 
annulling  all  his  acts,  of  which  my  adoption  was  one. ' ' 
On  hearing  this  the  senate  both  through  respect  for  the 
man  and  through  a  certain  fear  of  the  soldiers  be- 
stowed the  honors  upon  Hadrian. 

Only  this  in  regard  to  Antoninus  is  preserved  in  Dio.  ~^~~ 
Yes,  one  thing  more  —  that  the  senate  gave  him  th(^ 
titles  both  of  Augustus  and  of  Pius  for  some  such  rea- 
son as  the  following.  Wlien  in  the  beginning  of  his  im- 
perial reign  many  men  were  accused  and  some  of  them 
had  been  interceded  for  by  name,  he  nevertheless 
punished  no  one,  saying :  * '  I  must  not  begin  my  career 
of  supervision  with  such  deeds." 

[When  Pharasmanes  the  Iberian  came  to  Rome  with  ^xix,  is,  s 
his  wife,  he  increased  his  domain,  allowed  him  to  offer 
sacrifice  on  the  Capitoline,  set  up  a  statue  of  him  on 

239 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

,^-  ^-l^^   horseback  in  the  temple  of  Bellona,  and  viewed  an  ex- 

(a.  M.  891)  ^        ^  ^  ' 

ercise  in  arms  of  the  chieftain,  his  son,  and  the  other 
prominent  Iberians.] 

We  do  not  find  preserved,  either,  the  first  part  of  the 
account  of  Marcus  Verus,  who  ruled  after  Antoninus 
A.  D.  139    and  all  that  the  latter  himself  did  in  the  case  of  Lucius, 
son  of  Commodus,  whom  Marcus  made  his  son-in-law, 
and  all  that  Lucius  accomplished  when  sent  by  his 
father  to  the  war  against  Vologaesus.    I  shall  speak 
briefly  about  these  matters,  gathering  my  material 
from  other  books,  and  then  I  shall  go  back  to  the  con- 
tinuation of  Dio  's  narrative. 
II.  From  Xiphilinus : 
A^'  153       Antoninus  is  admitted  by  all  to  have  been  noble  and 
(a.  tt.  906)  good,  not  oppressive  to  the  Christians  nor  severe  to 
any  of  his  other  subjects;  instead,  he  showed  the 
Christians  great  respect  and  added  to  the  honor  in 
which  Hadrian  had  been  wont  to  hold  them.    For 
Eusebius,  son  of  Pamphilus,  cites  in  his  Church  His- 
tory^ some  letters  of  Hadrian  in  which  the  latter  is 
shown  to  threaten  terrible  vengeance  upon  those  who 
harm  in  any  way  or  accuse  the  Christians,  and  to  swear 
by  Hercules  that  they  shall  receive  punishment. 

Antoninus  is  said  also  to  have  been  of  an  enquiring 
turn  of  mind  and  not  to  have  held  aloof  from  careful 
investigation  of  even  small  and  commonplace  matters ; 
for  this  those  disposed  to  scoff  called  him  Cummin- 
(a  «  914)  splitter.  Quadratus  states  that  he  died  at  an  ad- 
vanced age,  and  that  the  happiest  death  befell  him,  like 
unto  gentlest  slumber. 

IIV,  8. 

240 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 


—  4  — 

(A.D.177T) 


In  the  days  of  Antoninus  also  a  most  frightful  earth- 
quake is  said  to  have  occurred  in  the  region  of  Bithynia 
and  the  Hellespont.  Various  cities  were  severely 
damaged  or  fell  without  a  building  left  standing,  and 
in  particular  Cyzicus;  and  the  temple  there  that  was 
the  greatest  and  most  beautiful  of  all  temples  was 
thrown  down.  Its  columns  were  four  cubits  in  thick- 
ness and  fifty  cubits  in  height,  each  of  a  single  block  of 
stone ;  and  each  of  the  other  features  of  the  edifice  was 
more  to  be  wondered  at  than  to  be  praised.  Some- 
where in  the  interior  of  the  country  the  peak  of  a 
mountain  rose  upwards  and  surges  of  the  sea  are  said 
to  have  gushed  out,  while  the  spray  from  pure,  trans- 
parent sea-water  was  driven  to  a  great  distance  over 
the  land.*—  So  much  is  the  account  of  Antoninus  at 
present  extant.    He  reigned  twenty-four  years. 

III.  Of  Dio  [or  rather  of  Eutropius,  or  John  of 
Antioch].    Taken  from  the  Writings  of  Suidas. 

This  prince  Antoninus  was  an  excellent  man  and  de- 
serves to  be  compared  especially  with  Numa  on  account 
of  the  similarity  of  his  reign  to  that  king's,  just  as 
Trajan  was  seen  to  resemble  Romulus.  The  private 
life  that  Antoninus  lived  was  thoroughly  excellent  and 
honorable,  and  in  his  position  as  ruler  he  seemed  to  be  —  5 
even  more  excellent  and  more  prudent.    To  no  one  was 

1  Compare  also  Zonaraa  V,  12  (p.  80,  11.  3-11  Dind.). 

It  is  not  certain  whether  this  earthquake  properly  belongs  to  the  reign 
of  Pius  or  that  of  Marcus.  If  to  the  former,  it  must  have  occurred 
between  150  and  155  B.C.  See  Hermes  XXVI,  pages  444-446  (Boisse- 
vain:  Zonaras  Quelle  fiir  die  Romische  Kaisergeschichte  von  Nerva 
bis  Severus  Alexander)  and  XXXII,  pages  497-508  (B.  Keil:  Kyzi- 
kenisches)  ;  also  Byzantinische  Zeitschrift  I,  page  30  ff.  (article  by; 
de  Boor ) . 

VOL.  5—16  241 


— ae— 


•7  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

he  harsh  or  oppressive,  but  he  was  gracious  and  gentle 
toward  all. 

In  warfare  he  sought  glory  rather  from  an  impulse  of 
duty  than  from  one  of  gain,  and  was  determined  to  pre- 
serve the  borders  of  the  empire  intact  rather  than  to 
extend  them  to  greater  distances.  In  the  matter  of 
men  he  appointed  to  the  administration  of  public 
affairs,  so  far  as  possible,  those  who  were  particularly 
scrupulous  about  right  conduct,  and  he  rewarded  good 
oflBcials  with  the  honors  that  were  in  his  power  to  grant, 
whereas  he  banished  the  worthless  (though  without 
any  harshness)  from  the  conduct  of  public  affairs. 

He  was  admired  not  alone  by  those  of  his  own  race, 
but  even  by  foreigners,  as  was  shown  by  some  of  the 
neighboring  barbarians  laying  down  their  arms  and 
permitting  the  prince  to  decide  their  quarrels  by  his 
vote.  And  whereas  he  had  in  the  course  of  his  life  as 
a  private  citizen  amassed  a  vast  amount  of  money, 
when  he  entered  upon  oflSce  he  expended  his  own 
abundance  upon  gifts  for  the  soldiers  and  for  his 
friends.  To  the  public  treasury  he  left  a  great  deal  of 
property  of  all  kinds. 


242 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

71 


343 


The  emperor  Marcus  takes  Verus  as  an  associate :  he  gives  him 
charge  of  the  Parthian  war  (chapters  1,  2). 

Wars  with  the  lazyges,  Marcomani,  and  Germans  (chapters 
3  and  5) . 

Abont  the  war  in  Eg^pt  with  the  Bucoli  (chapter  4). 

Marcus's  tirelessness  in  hearing  cases  at  law  (chapter  6). 

The  lazyges  conquered  (chapter  7). 

The  ftuadi  are  vanquished  by  rain  sent  from  Heaven  in 
answer  to  Roman  prayers  (chapters  8  and  10) . 

About  the  Thunderbolt  Legion  from  Melitene  (chapter  9). 

How  envoys  came  to  the  emperor  from  a  number  of  bar- 
barians,— ^the  Quadi,  Asting^,  lazyges,  Marcomani,  Naristl 
(chapters  11-21). 

Eevolt  of  Cassius  and  of  Syria  (chapters  22-26). 

How  Cassius  was  killed,  together  with  his  son  (chapter  27) . 

Kindness  of  Marcus  toward  the  adherents  of  Cassius:  death 
of  Faustina  and  honors  accorded  her  (chapters  28-31). 

The  return  of  Marcus  and  his  generosity  (chapter  32). 

With  his  son  Commodus  he  subjugates  the  Scythians:  he 
himself  meets  death  (chapter  33). 

Eulogy  of  Marcus  (chapters  34,  35). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

M.  iEl.  Aurel.  Verus  Caes.  (Ill),  L.  ^1.  Aurel.  Commodui 
(11).  (A.  D.  161=^  a.  u.  914=^  First  of  Marcus,  from  March 
7th.) 

lunius  Rusticus,  Vettius  Aquilinus.  (A.  D.  162  =:  a.  u.  915 
=;  Second  of  Marcus.) 

I.  iElianus,  Pastor.  (A.  D.  163  =  a.  u.  916  =  Third  of 
Marcus.) 

M.  Pompeius  Macrinus,  P.  luventius  Celsus.  (A.  D.  164  = 
a.  n.  917  =  Fourth  of  Marcus.) 

L.  Arrius  Pudens,  M.  Gavins  Orfitus.  (A.  D.  165  =  a.  u.  918 
=  Fifth  of  Marcus.) 

Q.  Servilius  Pudens,  L.  Fufidius  PoUio.  (A.  D.  166  —  a.  u. 
919  =^  Sixth  of  Marcus.) 


I.  Anrelins  Verus  Aug.  (Ill),  Quadratus.    (A.  D.  167  =  a.  u. 

920  =:  Seventh  of  Marcus.) 

T.  lunius  Montanus,  L.  Vettius  Paulus.     (A.  D.  168  =  a.  u. 

921  =  Eighth  of  Marcus.) 

Q.  Sosius  Priscus,  P.  Cselius  ApolKnaris.     (A.  D.  169  =  a.  u. 

922  =  Ninth  of  Marcus.) 

M.  Cornelius  Cethegus,  C.  Erucius  Claras.    (A.  D.  170  =  a.  u. 

923  —  Tenth  of  Marcus.) 

L.  Septimius  Severus  (II),  L.  Alfidius  Herennianus.  (A.  D. 
171  —  a.  u.  924  =^  Eleventh  of  Marcus.) 

Maximus,  Orfitus.  (A.  D.  172  =  a.  u.  925=;  Twelfth  of 
Marcus.) 

M.  Aurelius  Severus  (II),  T.  Claudius  Pompeianus.  (A.  D. 
173  =  a.  u.  926  =  Thirteenth  of  Marcus.) 

Gallus,  Flaccus.  (A.  D.  174=;  a.  u.  927  =;  Fourteenth  of 
Marcus.) 

Piso,  lulianus.  (A.  D.  175  =  a.  u.  928  =  Fifteenth  of 
Marcus.) 

PoUio  (II),  Aper  (H).  (A.  D.  176  =  a,  u.  929  =  Sixteenth 
of  Marcus.) 

L.  Aurel.  Commodus  Aug.,  ftuintilius.  (A.  D.  177  ==;  a.  u. 
930  =  Seventeenth  of  Marcus.) 

Rufus,  Orfitus.  (A.  D.  178  =  a.  u.  931  =  Eighteenth  of 
Marcus.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (II),  T.  Annius  Aurel.  Verus  (II).  (A.  D. 
179  =  a.  u.  932  =  Nineteenth  of  Marcus.) 

L.  Fulvius  Bruttius  Prsesens  (II),  Sextus  ftuintilius  Condi- 
anus.  (A.  D.  180  =  a.  u.  933  =:  Twentieth  of  Marcus,  to  March 
17tli.) 


{BOOK  71,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Marcus  Antoninus,  the  philosopher,  upon  obtaining  —  i  — 
the  sovereignty  at  the  death  of  Antoninus,  who  adopted  (a.  «.  914 ) 
him,  had  immediately  taken  to  share  the  authority  with 
him  the  son  of  Lucius  Commodus,  Lucius  Verus.  He 
was  personally  weak  in  body  and  he  devoted  the 
greater  part  of  his  time  to  letters.  It  is  told  that  even 
when  he  was  emperor  he  showed  no  shame  (or  hesita- 
tion) at  going  to  a  teacher  for  instruction,  but  became 
a  pupil  of  Sextus,  the  Boeotian  philosopher,^  and  did 
not  hesitate  to  go  to  hear  the  lectures  of  Hermogenes 
on  rhetoric.  He  was  most  inclined  to  the  Stoic  school. 
—  Lucius,  on  the  other  hand,  was  strong  and  rather 
young,  and  better  suited  for  military  enterprises. 
Therefore,  Marcus  made  him  his  son-in-law  by  marry- 
ing him  to  his  daughter  Lucilla,  and  sent  him  to  the 
Parthian  war. 

For  Vologaesus  had  begun  war  by  assailing  on  all     —  2  — 
sides  the  Roman  camp  under  Severianus,  situated  in 
Elegeia,  a  place  in  Armenia ;  and  he  had  shot  down  and 
destroyed  the  whole  force,  leaders  and  all.    He  was 
now  proceeding  with  numbers  that  inspired  terror 
against  the  cities  of  Syria.     Lucius,  accordingly,  on  ^  j^  jg2 
coming  to  Antioch  collected  a  great  many  soldiers,  and  («•  «•  9i5) 
with  the  best  commanders  under  his  supervision  took 
up  a  position  in  the  city,  spending  his  time  in  ordering 
all  arrangements  and  in  gathering  the  contingent  for 
the  war.    He  entrusted  the  armies  themselves  to  Cas- 
sius.     The  latter  made  a  noble  stand  against  the  attack 

1"  Sextus  of  Chaeronea,  grandson  of  Plutarch"    ( Capitolinus,  Vita 
M.  Antoni  Philosophi,  3,  2 ) . 

247 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  165  of  Vologaesus,  and  finally  the  chieftian  was  deserted 
by  his  allies  and  began  to  retire ;  then  Cassius  pursued 
him  as  far  as  Seleucia  and  destroyed  it  and  razed  to 
the  ground  the  palace  of  Vologassus  at  Ctesiphon.  In 
the  course  of  his  return  he  lost  a  great  many  soldiers 
through  famine  and  disease,  yet  he  started  off  to  Syria 
with  the  men  that  were  left.  Lucius  attained  glory  by 
these  exploits  and  felt  a  just  pride  in  them,  yet  his  ex- 
treme good  fortune  did  him  no  good.  For  he  is  said 
to  have  subsequently  plotted  against  his  father-in-law 

A.  D.  169   Marcus  and  to  have  perished  by  poison  before  he  could 

(o.  u.  922)  accomplish  anything. 

Fragments  of  Dio  from  Suidas  (thought  by  deValois 
to  belong  to  Book  LXXI). 

[II  Martins  Verus  sends  out  Thucydides  to  conduct 
Sohaemus  into  Armenia;  and  he,  in  spite  of  lack  of 
arms,  applied  himself  sturdily  to  this  distant  task  with 
the  inherent  good  sense  that  he  showed  in  all  business 
falling  to  his  lot.  Marcus  had  the  gift  not  only  of 
overpowering  his  antagonists  or  anticipating  them  by 
swiftness  or  outwitting  them  by  deceit  (on  which  quali- 
ties generals  most  rely),  but  also  of  persuading  them 
by  trustworthy  promises  and  conciliating  them  by  gen- 
erous gifts  and  luring  them  on  by  tempting  hopes.  He 
was  suave  in  all  that  he  did  or  said,  and  soothed  the 
vexed  and  angry  feelings  of  each  adversary  while 
greatly  raising  his  hopes.  He  knew  well  the  right  time 
for  flattery  and  presents  and  entertainment  at  table. 
And  since  in  addition  to  these  talents  he  showed  per- 
sistency in  endeavor  and  activity  together  with  speed 
against  his  foes,  he  made  it  plain  to  the  barbarians  that 

248 


DIO'S   ROMAN    HISTORY 

his  friendship  was  better  worth  gaining  than  his 
enmity.  So  when  he  arrived  at  the  New  city,  which  a 
garrison  of  Romans  placed  there  by  Priscus  was  occu- 
pying, and  found  them  attempting  mutiny,  he  took  care, 
both  by  word  and  by  deed,  to  bring  them  to  a  better 
temper,  and  he  made  the  city  the  foremost  of  Armenia.] 

[*  *  Bridging. —  By  the  Romans  the  streams  and 
rivers  are  bridged  with  the  greatest  ease,  since  the  sol- 
diers are  always  practicing  at  it,  and  it  is  carried  on 
like  any  other  warlike  exercise  on  the  Ister  and  the 
Rhine  and  the  Euphrates.  The  manner  of  doing  it 
(which  I  think  not  everybody  knows)  is  as  follows.  The 
boats,  by  means  of  which  the  river  is  bridged,  are  flat. 
They  are  anchored  up  stream  a  little  above  the  spot 
where  the  bridge  is  to  be  constructed.  When  the  signal 
is  given,  they  first  let  one  ship  drift  down  stream  close 
to  the  bank  that  they  are  holding.  When  it  has  come 
opposite  the  spot  to  be  bridged,  they  throw  into  the 
water  a  basket  filled  with  stones  and  fastened  with  a 
cord,  which  serves  as  an  anchor.  Made  fast  in  this 
way  the  ship  is  joined  to  the  bank  by  planks  and 
bridgework,  which  the  vessel  carries  in  large  quanti- 
ties, and  immediately  a  floor  is  laid  to  the  farther  edge. 
Then  they  release  another  ship  at  a  little  distance  from 
this  one  and  another  one  after  that  until  they  run  the 
bridge  to  the  opposite  bank.  The  boat  which  is  near 
the  hostile  side  carries  also  towers  upon  it  and  a  gate 
and  archers  and  catapults. 

As  many  weapons  were  hurled  at  the  men  engaged  in 
bridging,  Cassius  ordered  weapons  and  catapults  to  be 
discharged.  And  when  the  front  rank  of  the  bar- 
barians fell,  the  rest  gave  way.] 

249 


{BOOK  72,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Cassius,  however,  was  bidden  by  Marcus  to  have  the   ^""jJ'T^g 
feuperintendence  of  all  Asia.     The  emperor  himself  (».  «.  925) 
fought  for  a  long  time,  in  fact  almost  his  whole  life,  one 
might  say,  with  the  barbarians  in  the  Ister  region,  the 
lazyges  and  the  Marcomani,  first  one  and  then  the 
other,  and  he  used  Pannonia  as  his  starting  point. 

1[  The  Langobardi  and.  the  Obiii  to  the  number  of  six  thousand 
crossed  the  Ister,  but  the  cavalry  under  Vindex2  marched  out  and 
the  infatnry  commanded  by  Candidus  got  the  start  of  them,  so  that  • 

an  utter  rout  of  the  barbarians  was  instituted.  The  barbarians,  thrown 
into  consternation  by  such  an  outcome  of  their  very  first  undertaking, 
despatched  as  envoys  to  the  headquarters  of  lallius  BassusS  (adminis- 
trator of  Pannonia)  Bellomarius,*  king  of  the  Marcomani,  and  ten- 
more,  for  they  selected  one  man  per  nation.  The  envoys  took  oaths  to 
cement  the  peace  and  departed  homewards. 

Many  of  the  Celtae,  too,  across  the  Rhine,  advanced 
to  the  confines  of  Italy  and  inflicted  much  serious  harm 
upon  the  Romans.  They,  in  turn,  were  followed  up  by 
Marcus,  who  opposed  to  them  the  lieutenants  Pom- 
peianus  and  Pertinax.  Pertinax,  who  later  became 
emperor,  greatly  distinguished  himself.  Among  the 
corpses  of  the  barbarians  were  found  also  the  bodies 
of  women  in  armor. 

Yet,  when  a  most  violent  struggle  and  brilliant  vie-  -^-D.iesc?) 
tory  had  taken  place,  the  emperor  nevertheless  refused 
the  petition  of  the  soldiers  for  money,  making  this 
statement :   ' '  Whatever  excess  they  obtain  above  the 
customary  amount  will  be  wrung  from  the  blood  of  their 

lOr  perhaps  Osi, 

2  if.  Macriniua  Avitus  Catoniua  Vindex. 

8  M.  lallius  Bassus. 

*0r  perhaps  Badomarius. 

251 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

parents  and  their  kinsmen.  For  respecting  the  fate  of 
the  empire  Heaven  alone  can  decide." — And  he  ruled 
them  so  temperately  and  firmly  that  even  in  the  course 
of  so  many  arid  great  wars  he  was  impelled  neither  by 
flattery  nor  by  fear  to  do  aught  that  was  unfitting. 
— 11  —  [Marcus  [Antoninus]  remained  in  Pannonia  in  order 
to  transact  business  with  the  embassies  of  the  bar- 
barians. Many  came  to  him  also  at  this  time.  Some 
promised  an  alliance:  they  were  led  by  Battarius,  a 
child  twelve  years  old,  and  they  received  money  and 
succeeded  in  restraining  Tarbus,  a  neighboring  poten- 
tate, who  had  come  into  Dacia,  was  demanding  money, 
and  threatening  to  make  war  if  he  should  not  get  it. 
Others,  like  the  Quadi,  were  asking  for  peace,  and  they 
obtained  it,  the  emperor's  purpose  being  to  have  them 
detached  from  the  Marcomani.  Another  reason  was 
that  they  gave  horses  and  cattle,  surrendered  all  the 
deserters  and  the  captives  at  first  to  the  number  of 
thirteen  thousand,  though  later  they  promised  to  re- 
store the  remainder  as  well.  However,  the  i^ight  of 
free  intercourse  even  at  markets  was  not  granted  them, 
the  intention  being  to  prevent  the  lazyges  and  the  Mar- 
comani, whom  they  had  sworn  not  to  receive  nor  let 
pass  through  their  country,  from  either  mingling  with 
them  or  presenting  themselves  also  in  the  guise  of 
Quadi,—  a  plan  which  would  enable  them  to  reconnoitre 
the  Roman  position  and  to  purchase  provisions.  Be- 
sides these  who  came  to  Marcus,  many  others  de- 
spatched envoys,  some  by  tribes  and  some  by  nations, 
offering  to  surrender  themselves.  Some  of  them  were 
sent  on  campaigns  to  other  parts  of  the  world,  and  the 

252 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

captives  and  deserters  who  were  fit  for  it  were  simi- 
larly treated.  Others  received  land,  in  Dacia  or  in 
Pannonia  or  in  Moesia  and  Germany  or  in  Italy  itself. 
A  few  of  them  who  settled  at  Ravenna  made  an  up- 
rising and  even  dared  to  take  possession  of  the  city: 
and  for  this  reason  he  did  not  again  bring  any  bar- 
barian into  Italy,  but  made  even  those  who  had  pre- 
viously come  there  find  homes  outside.] 

TI  Detachments  of  both  Astingi  and  Lacringi  had  come  to  lend  assist- 
ance to  Marcus. 

[The  Astingi,  whose  leaders  were  Raus  and  Raptus,  — 12  — 
came  into  Dacia  to  settle,  in  the  hope  of  receiving  both 
money  and  land  in  return  for  terms  of  alliance.  As 
they  did  not  obtain  this,  they  put  their  wives  and  chil- 
dren in  the  keeping  of  Clemens,^  with  the  apparent  in- 
tention of  acquiring  the  land  of  the  Costobocci  by  force 
of  arms;  and  upon  conquering  them  they  injured  Dacia 
no  less.  The  Lacringi,  fearing  that  Clemens  out  of 
dread  might  lead  these  newcomers  into  the  land  which 
they  were  inhabiting,  attacked  them  off  their  guard  and 
won  a  decisive  victory.  As  a  result,  the  Astingi  com- 
mitted no  further  deeds  displaying  hostility  to  the 
Romans,  but  by  making  urgent  supplication  to  Marcus 
received  money  from  him  and  asked  that  land  might  be 
given  them  if  they  should  harm  in  some  way  his  tem- 
porary enemies.  Now  these  performed  some  of  their 
promises.  The  Cotini  made  similar  propositions,  but 
upon  getting  control  of  Tarrutenius  Patemus,  secre- 
tary of  the  emperor's  Latin  letters,  under  the  pretext 
of  requiring  his  aid  for  a  campaign  against  the  Mar- 

1  Sex.  Cornelius  Clemens. 

253 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

comani,  they  not  only  failed  to  take  this  course  but  did 
him  frightful  injury  and  thereby  ensured  their  own 
destruction  later.] 
A.  D.  171       When  in  one  battle  the  Mareomani  were  successful 

(a.   u.   924) 

and  killed  Marcus  Vindex,  the  prefect,  he  erected  three 

statues  in  his  memory.     After  conquering  them  Mar- 

(—3—)     cus  received  the  title  of  Germanicus.    We  give  the 

A.  D.    172 

(a.  M.  925)  name  "  Germans  "  to  those  who  dwell  in  the  northern 
regions. 
—4—  The  so-called  Bucoli  began  a  disturbance  in  Egypt, 

and  under  the  leadership  of  Isidorus,  a  priest/  caused 
the  rest  of  the  Egyptians  to  revolt.  They  had  first, 
arrayed  in  women's  garments,  deceived  the  Roman 
centurion,  making  him  think  that  they  were  Bucoli 
women  and  wanted  to  give  him  gold  pieces  in  exchange 
for  their  husbands,  and  then  striking  him  down  when 
he  approached  them.  His  companion  they  sacrificed, 
and  after  taking  a  common  oath  over  his  entrails  they 
devoured  them.  Isidorus  surpassed  in  bribery  all  his 
contemporaries.  Next,  having  conquered  the  Romans 
in  Egypt  in  regular  battle  they  came  very  near  cap- 
turing Alexandria,  and  would  have  done  so,  had  not 
Cassius  been  sent  against  them  from  Syria  as  direct- 
ing general.  He  succeeded  in  spoiling  the  concord  that 
existed  among  them  and  sundering  them  one  from 
another,  for  on  account  of  their  numbers  and  despera- 
tion he  had  not  ventured  to  attack  them  united.  So 
when  they  fell  into  factional  disputes  he  easily  subdued 
them. 

1  Omitting  xaC 

254 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Now  it  was  in  Marcus's  war  against  the  Germans  (if     —  5  — 

®  A.  D.   172 

mention  ought  to  be  made  of  these  matters),  that  a  cap-  (a.  «.  926) 
tive  lad  on  being  asked  some  questions  by  him  re- 
joined :  "  I  can  not  answer  you  because  of  the  cold.  So 
if  you  want  to  find  out  anything,  command  that  a  coat 
be  given  me,  if  you  have  one."— And  a  soldier  one 
night,  who  was  doing  guard  duty  on  the  Ister,  hearing 
a  shout  of  his  fellow-soldiers  in  captivity  on  the  other 
side,  at  once  swam  the  stream  just  as  he  was,  released 
them,  and  brought  them  back. 

One  prefect  of  Marcus 's  was  Bassseus  Eufus,  a  good 
man  on  the  whole,  but  uneducated  and  boorish,  having 
been  brought  up  in  poverty  in  his  early  youth. 
[Wherefore  he  had  been  disinclined  to  go  on  the  cam- 
paign, and  what  Marcus  said  was  incomprehensible  to 
him.]  Once  some  one  had  interrupted  him  in  the  midst 
of  trimming  a  vine  that  wound  about  a  tree,  and  when 
he  did  not  come  down  at  the  first  bidding,  the  person 
rebuked  him,  and  said:  "  Come  down  there,  prefect." 
This  he  said  thinking  to  humiliate  him  for  his  previous 
haughtiness;  yet  later  Fortune  gave  him  this  title  to 
wear. 

The  emperor,  as  often  as  he  had  leisure  from  war,  _6— 
held  court  and  used  to  order  that  a  most  liberal  supply 
of  water  be  measured  out  for  the  speakers.^  He  made 
inquiries  and  answers  of  greater  length,  so  that  exact 
justice  was  ensured  by  every  possible  expedient. 
When  thus  engaged  he  would  often  hold  court  to  try 
the  same  case  for  eleven  or  even  twelve  days  and  some- 

1  This  refers  to  the  contrivance  known  as  the  clepsydra  or  water- 
clock,  which  measured  time  by  the  slow  dropping  of  water  from  an 
upper  into  a  lower  vessel,  somewhat  on  the  plan  of  the  hour-glasa. 

255 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'^'  ^'  ll^s  times  at  niglit.    He  was  industrious  and  applied  him- 

(a.  u.    923)  ^  *^  ^  ^  ^^ 

self  diligently  to  all  the  duties  of  his  office;  and  there 
"was  nothing  which  he  said  or  wrote  or  did  that  he  re- 
garded as  a  minor  matter,  but  sometimes  he  would  con- 
sume whole  days  on  the  finest  point,  putting  into  prac- 
tice his  belief  that  the  emperor  should  do  nothing  hur- 
riedly. For  he  thought  that  if  he  should  slight  even 
the  smallest  detail,  it  would  bring  him  reproach  that 
would  overshadow  all  his  other  achievements.  Yet  he 
was  so  frail  in  body  that  at  first  he  could  not  endure 
the  cold,  but  when  the  soldiers  had  already  come  to- 
gether in  obedience  to  orders  he  would  retire  before 
speaking  a  word  to  them;  and  he  took  but  very  little 
food  always,  and  that  at  night.  It  was  never  his  custom 
to  eat  during  the  daytime  unless  it  were  some  of  the 
drug  called  theriac.^  This  drug  he  took  not  so  much 
because  he  feared  anything  as  because  his  stomach 
and  chest  were  in  bad  condition.  And  it  is  related  that 
this  practice  enabled  him  to  endure  the  disease  as  well 
as  other  hardships. 
—  7—  The  lazyges  were  conquered  by  the  Romans  on  land 

173  (?)  at  this  time  and  subsequently  on  the  river.  By  this  I 
mean  not  that  any  naval  battle  took  place,  but  that  the 
Romans  followed  them  as  they  fled  over  the  frozen 
Ister  and  fought  there  as  on  dry  land.  The  lazyges, 
perceiving  that  they  were  being  pursued,  awaited  the 
foe's  onset,  expecting  easily  to  overcome  them,  since 
their  opponents  were  not  accustomed  to  ice.  Accord- 
ingly, some  of  the  barbarians  dashed  straight  at  them, 
while  others  rode  around  to  attack  the  flanks,  for  their 

2  See  Galen,  On  Antidotes,  Book  Two,  chapter  17,  and  On  Theriac 
(to  Piso),  chapter  2. 

256 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

horses  were  trained  to  run  safely  even  over  a  surface  ai>172(?) 

173  (?) 

of  this  kind.  The  Romans,  seeing  this,  were  not 
alarmed,  but  made  a  close  formation,  placing  them- 
selves so  as  to  face  all  of  them  at  once.  The  majority 
laid  down  their  shields  and  resting  one  foot  upon  them, 
so  that  they  might  slip  less,  received  the  enemy's  as- 
sault. Some  seized  bridles,  others  shields  and  spear- 
shafts,  and  drew  them  towards  them.  Then,  becoming 
involved  in  close  conflict,  they  knocked  down  both  men 
and  horses,  for  on  account  of  their  momentum  the 
enemy  could  not  help  slipping.  The  Romans  also 
slipped  down :  but  in  case  one  of  them  fell  on  his  back 
he  dragged  his  adversary  down  on  top  of  him  and  then 
by  winding  his  legs  about  him  as  in  a  wrestling  match 
would  get  him  underneath ;  and  if  one  fell  on  his  face, 
he  made  his  opponent  fall  before  he  did,  also  on  his 
face.  The  barbarians,  being  unused  to  a  contest  of 
this  sort,  and  having  lighter  equipment,  were  unable  to 
resist,  so  that  but  few  escaped  out  of  a  large  force. 

[Envoys  were  also  sent  to  Marcus  by  the  lazyges, 
requesting  peace,  but  they  did  not  obtain  any.  For 
Marcus,  knowing  their  race  to  be  untrustworthy,  and, 
furthermore,  because  he  had  been  deceived  by  the 
Quadi,  wished  to  annihilate  them  absolutely.^  The 
Quadi  had  not  only  made  alliances  at  this  time  with 
the  lazyges,  but  previously,  too,  were  wont  to  receive 
in  their  own  land  Marcomanian  fugitives  who  might  be 
hard  pressed,  while  that  tribe  was  at  war  with  the 
Romans.  Nor  did  they  do  aught  else  that  they  had 
agreed,  for  they  did  not  restore  all  the  captives,  but 

1  Reading  i^eXeiv  (Boissevain)    in  place  of  the  MS.   i^eXdelv. 

VOL.  5  —  17.  257 


—  18  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.D.i72(  ?)  only  a  few,  and  these  were  such  as  they  could  not  sell 
173  (T)  -^  '  -  . 

nor  use  for  any  work  as  helpers.    And  whenever  they 

did  give  back  any  of  those  in  good  condition,  they 

would  keep  their  relatives  at  home  in  order  that  the 

men  given  up  might  desert  again  to  join  their  friends. 

They  also  expelled  their  king,  Furtius,  and  on  their 

own    responsibility    made    Ariogassus    king    instead. 

Consequently  the  emperor  did  not  confirm  him,  since 

he  had  not  been  legally  installed,  nor  renew  the  treaty 

of  peace,  though  they  promised  to  return  fifty  thousand 

captives  if  he  would.] 

—  14—  [Against  Ariogsesus  Marcus  was  so  bitter  that  he 
issued  a  proclamation  to  the  effect  that  any  one  who 
would  bring  him  alive  should  receive  a  thousand  gold 
pieces,  and  any  one  who  killed  him  and  exhibited  his 
head,  five  hundred.  Yet  in  other  cases  this  emperor 
was  always  accustomed  to  treat  even  his  most  stubborn 
foes  humanely ;  for  instance,  he  did  not  kill,  but  merely 
sent  to  Britain  Tiridates,  a  satrap  who  roused  a  tumult 
in  Armenia  and  the  person  who  slew  the  king  of  the 
Heniochi  and  then  held  the  sword  in  Verus  's^  face, 
when  the  latter  rebuked  him  for  it.  This,  then,  shows 
the  extent  of  his  irritation  against  Ariogsesus  at  the 
time.  However,  when  the  man  was  later  captured  he 
did  him  no  harm,  but  sent  him  away  to  Alexandria.] 
__g_  So  Marcus  made  the  Marcomani  and  lazyges  sub- 

A.  D.  174  servient  by  a  series  of  great  struggles  and  dangers.  A 
great  war  against  the  so-called  Quadi  also  fell  to  his  lot 
and  it  was  his  good  fortune  to  win  an  unexpected  vic- 
tory, or  rather  it  was  given  him  from  Heaven.    At  a 

IP.  Martius  Verus. 

258 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

time  when  the  Eomans  had  run  into  danger  in  the  bat-   a.  d.  174 

°  (a.  u.  927) 

tie  the  Heavenly  Power  most  unexpectedly  saved  them. 
The  Quadi  had  surrounded  them  at  an  opportune  spot 
and  the  Eomans  were  fighting  valiantly  with  their 
shields  locked  together:  and  the  barbarians  ceased 
fighting,  expecting  to  capture  their  enemies  easily  by 
heat  and  thirst.  So  they  posted  guards  all  about  and 
hemmed  them  in  to  prevent  their  getting  water  any- 
where, for  the  barbarians  were  far  superior  in  num- 
bers. The  Eomans  fell  into  dire  distress  from  their 
fatigue  and  wounds  and  the  sun 's  heat  and  their  thirst, 
and  for  these  reasons  could  neither  fight  nor  march  in 
any  direction  but  were  standing  and  being  scorched  in 
line  of  battle  and  at  their  several  posts,  when  suddenly 
numbers  of  clouds  rushed  together  and  a  great  rain, 
certainly  of  divine  origin,  came  pouring  down.  Indeed, 
there  is  a  story  that  Amouphis,  an  Egyptian  wizard, 
who  was  a  companion  of  Marcus,  invoked  by  means  of 
enchantments  various  deities  and  in  particular  Mer- 
cury, god  of  the  air,  and  by  this  means  attracted  the 
rain. 

This  is  what  Dio  says  about  it,  but  he  seems  to  be  —  0  — 
telling  an  untruth,  whether  voluntarily  or  involun- 
tarily ;  I  am  more  inclined  to  think  it  is  voluntarily.  It 
surely  must  be  so,  for  he  was  not  ignorant  of  the  fact 
that  one  company  of  the  soldiers  had  the  special  name 
of  The  Thunderbolt  "  (he mentions  it  in  the  list  along 
with  the  rest),^  and  this  was  due  to  no  other  cause  (nor 

1  The  reference  is   evidently  to  Book   Fifty-five,   chapter  23,  but  it 

should  be   observed  that  the  names,  though  very  possibly  having  the 

same  sense,  are  not  identical.     The  legion  is  here  called      xepau/ui36/.o(f 

(=  Fulminatrix  or  Fulminata)    but  in  55,  23    xepauvofopoi    (=Ful- 

xninif  era ) . 

259 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  174   ig  any  other  reported)  save  that  event  which  gave  rise 

\  U*  Urn  «7^  I     j 

to  the  title  in  this  very  war,—  an  event  which  enabled 
the  Eomans  to  survive  on  this  occasion  and  brought  de- 
struction upon  the  barbarians.  It  was  not  Arnouphis, 
the  wizard,  for  Marcus  is  not  accounted  to  have  taken 
pleasure  in  the  company  of  wizards  and  charms.  But 
what  I  have  reference  to  is  as  follows :  Marcus  had  a 
company  (and  the  Roman  name  for  company  is  **  le- 
gion ")  of  soldiers  from  Melitene.  They  were  all  wor- 
shipers of  Christ.  Now  it  is  stated  that  in  that  battle, 
when  Marcus  was  in  a  quandary  over  having  been  sur- 
rounded and  feared  the  loss  of  his  whole  army,  the 
prefect  approached  him  and  said  that  those  called 
Christians  can  accomplish  anything  whatever  by  their 
prayers,  and  that  among  them  there  chanced  to  be  a 
whole  company  of  this  sect.  Marcus,  on  hearing  this, 
made  an  appeal  to  them  to  pray  to  their  God.  And 
when  they  had  prayed,  the  God  immediately  gave 
ear,  hurling  a  thunderbolt  upon  the  enemy  and  encour- 
aging the  Romans  with  rain.  Marcus  was  astounded 
at  what  happened  and  honored  the  Christians  by  an 
official  decree,  while  the  legion  he  named  ' '  The  Thun- 
derbolt. "  It  is  said  also  that  there  is  a  letter  of  Mar- 
cus extant  on  this  matter.  But  the  Greeks,  though  they 
know  that  the  company  was  called  ' '  Thunderbolt '  * 
and  bear  witness  to  the  fact  themselves,  make  no  state- 
ment whatever  about  the  reason  for  the  appellation. 
— 10  —  Dio  goes  on  to  say  that  when  the  rain  poured  down 
at  first  all  bent  their  faces  upwards  and  received  it  in 
their  mouths.  Then  some  held  their  shields  and  some 
their  helmets  as  pails,  and  they  themselves  took  full- 

260 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

mouthed  draughts  of  it  and  gave  their  horses  to  drink.    ^-  ^-  174 

.  °  (a.    u.   927) 

The  barbarians  making  a  charge  upon  them,  they  drank 
and  fought  at  the  same  time;  and  some  who  were 
wounded  gulped  down  together  the  water  and  the  blood 
that  flowed  into  their  helmets.  The  most  of  them  had 
given  so  much  attention  to  drinking  that  th&y  would 
have  suffered  some  great  damage  from  the  enemy's 
onset  had  not  a  violent  hail  and  numbers  of  thunder- 
bolts fallen  upon  the  latter 's  ranks.  In  the  same  spot 
one  might  see  water  and  fire  descending  from  Heaven 
at  the  same  time :  the  one  side  was  being  drenched  and 
drinking,  the  other  was  being  burned  with  fire  and 
dying.  The  fire  did  not  touch  the  Romans,  but  if  it  fell 
anywhere  among  them  it  was  straightway  extinguished. 
On  the  other  hand,  the  shower  did  the  barbarians  no 
good,  but  like  oil  served  rather  to  feed  the  flames  that 
fed  on  them,  and  they  searched  for  water  while  in  the 
midst  of  rain.  Some  wounded  themselves  in  the  at- 
tempt to  put  out  the  fire  with  blood,  and  others  ran 
over  to  the  side  of  the  Romans,  convinced  that  they 
alone  had  the  saving  water.  Marcus  finally  took  pity 
on  them.  He  was  for  the  seventh  time  saluted  as 
imperator  by  the  soldiers.  And  although  he  was  not 
wont  to  accept  any  such  honor  before  the  senate  voted 
it,^  nevertheless  this  time  he  took  it  under  the  assump- 
tion that  it  was  bestowed  from  Heaven,  and  he  sent  a 
despatch  to  that  effect  to  the  senate.—  Moreover  Faus- 
tina was  named  ' '  Mother  of  the  Legions. ' ' 

When  Pertinax  in  consideration  of  his  brave  exploits    —  22  — 
obtained  the  consulship,  there  were  nevertheless  some      175 (?) 

iCp.  Mommsen,  Staatarecht,  I2,  p.  123  (or  13,  p.  124) ;  also  III,  p. 
1108. 

261 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  174  (?)  who  showed  displeasure  at  the  fact  that  he  was  of 
obscure  family,  and  quoted  the  line  from  tragedy : 

"  Such  things  the  wretched  war  brings  in  its  train."  1 

They  did  not  know  that  he  should  yet  be  sovereign. 
_15_  [At  the  request  of  the  Marcomani,  as  expressed  by 
A.D.i75(?)  |]jgjj.  envoys  and  in  view  of  the  fact  that  they  had  fol- 
lowed all  the  injunctions  laid  upon  them,  even  if  sul- 
lenly and  hesitatingly,  he  released  to  them  one  half  of 
the  adjoining  territory,  so  that  they  could  settle  for  a 
distance  of  about  thirty-eight  stades^  from  the  Ister, 
and  established  the  places  and  the  days  for  their 
meeting  together  (these  had  not  been  previously  de- 
termined), and  he  exchanged  hostages  with  them.] 
—  16—  [The  lazyges,  also,  when  they  had  experienced  re- 
Co.  u.  928)  verses,  came  to  an  agreement,  Zanticus  himself  appear- 
ing as  suppliant  before  Antoninus.  Previously  they 
had  imprisoned  Banadaspus,  their  second  king,  for 
making  proposals  to  him.  Now,  however,  all  the  fore- 
most men  came  in  company  with  Zanticus  and  made  the 
same  compact  as  that  accepted  by  the  Quadi  and  the 
Marcomani,  except  in  so  far  as  they  were  required^  to 
dwell  twice  as  far  away  from  the  Ister  as  those  tribes. 
It  was  his  wish  to  root  them  out  utterly.  That  they 
were  still  strong  at  this  time  and  could  have  done  the 
Romans  great  harm  is  evident  from  the  fact  that  they 
gave  back  one  hundred  thousand  captives  out  of  a  body 
in  which  many  had  been  sold,  many  were  dead,  and 
many  had  run  away  and  been  recaptured.    They  sup- 

1  From  Euripides,  The  Suppliants,  verse  119. 

2  Or  five  miles. 

3  Heading  ^'^e/l/lov  (Boissevain). 

262 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

plied  Antoninus  at  once  with  a  cavalry  force  of  eisrlit   ^-  ^-  ^^^ 

^  J  &         (^^   ^     928) 

thousand  allies,  fifty-five  hundred  of  whom  he  sent  to 
Britain.] 

[The  revolt  of  Cassius  and  Syria  forced  Marcus  —17  — 
Antoninus,  even  contrary  to  his  wishes,  to  come  to 
terms  with  the  lazyges.  He  was  so  upset  at  the  news 
that  he  did  not  even  communicate  to  the  senate  the 
basis  of  the  reconciliation  made  with  them,  as  he  was 
wont  to  do  in  all  other  cases.] 

Upon  the  rebellion  of  Cassius  in  Syria,  Marcus,  in  (—22—) 
great  alarm,  summoned  his  son  Commodus  from  Rome, 
since  he  was  now  able  to  enter  the  ranks  of  the  iuvenes. 
Now  Cassius,  who  was  a  Syrian  from  Cyrrhus,  had 
shown  himself  an  excellent  man  and  the  sort  of  person 
one  would  desire  to  have  as  emperor:  only  he  was 
a  son  of  one  Heliodorus,^  who  had  been  delighted  to 
secure  the  governorship  of  Egypt  as  a  result  of  his 
oratorical  skill.  But  in  this  uprising  he  made  a  ter- 
rible mistake,  and  it  was  all  due  to  his  having  been  de- 
ceived by  Faustina.  The  latter,  who  was  a  daughter 
of  Antoninus  Pius,  seeing  that  her  husband  had  fallen 
ill,  and  expecting  that  he  might  die  at  any  moment,  was 
afraid  that  the  imperial  office  might  revert  to  some  out- 
sider and  she  be  left  in  private  life ;  for  Commodus  was 
both  young  and  rather  callow,  besides.  So  she  secretly 
induced  Cassius  to  make  preparations  to  the  end  that 
if  anything  should  happen  to  Antoninus  he  might  take 
both  her  and  the  sovereignty.  Now  while  he  was  in  —23  — 
this  frame  of  mind,  a  message  came  that  Marcus  was 

1(7.  Avidius  Eeliodorus   (ep.  Book  Sixty-nine,  chapter  3). 

263 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 


A.  D.   175 
(a.   u.   928) 


dead  (in  sucli  circumstances  reports  always  make  mat- 
ters worse  than  they  really  are)  and  immediately,  with- 
out waiting  to  confirm  the  rumor,  he  laid  claim  to  the 
empire  on  the  ground  that  it  had  been  bestowed  upon 
him  by  the  soldiers  at  this  time  quartered  in  Pannonia. 
And  in  spite  of  the  fact  that  before  long  he  learned  the 
truth,  nevertheless,  since  he  had  once  made  a  move,  he 
would  not  change  his  attitude  but  speedily  won  over 
the  whole  district  bounded  by  the  Taurus,  and  was 
making  preparations  to  maintain  his  ascendancy  by 
war.  Marcus,  on  being  informed  of  his  uprising  by 
Verus,  the  governor  of  Cappadocia,  for  a  time  con- 
cealed it;  but,  as  the  soldiers  were  being  mightily  dis- 
turbed by  the  reports  and  were  doing  a  deal  of  talking, 
he  called  them  together  and  read  an  address  of  the 
following  nature : 
24—  "  Fellow-soldiers,  I  have  not  come  before  you  to  ex- 
press indignation,  nor  yet  in  a  spirit  of  lamentation. 
Why  rage  against  Fate,  that  is  all-powerful?  But 
perchance  it  is  needful  to  bewail  the  lot  of  those  who 
are  undeservedly  unfortunate,  a  lot  which  is  now  mine. 
Is  it  not  afflicting  for  us  to  meet  war  after  war?  Is  it 
not  absurd  to  be  involved  in  civil  conflict?  Are  not 
both  these  conditions  surpassed  in  affliction  and  in 
absurdity  by  the  proof  before  us  that  there  is  naught 
to  be  trusted  among  mankind,  since  I  have  been  plotted 
against  by  my  dearest  friend  and  have  been  thrust  into 
a  conflict  against  my  will,  though  I  have  committed  no 
crime  nor  even  error?  What  virtue,  what  friendship 
shall  henceforth  be  deemed  secure  after  this  experi- 

264 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

ence  of  mine?    Has  not  faith,  has  not  hope  perished?  A  ^-  i^^, 

'  .  (a-   tt.   928) 

If  the  danger  were  mine  alone,  I  should  give  the  matter 
no  heed,— I  was  not  bom  to  be  immortal,— but  since 
there  has  been  a  public  secession  (or  rather  obsession) 
and  war  is  fastening  its  clutches  upon  all  of  us  alike,  I 
should  desire,  were  it  possible,  to  invite  Cassius  here 
and  argue  the  case  with  him  in  your  presence  or  in  the 
presence  of  the  senate;  and  I  would  gladly,  without  a 
contest,  withdraw  from  my  office  in  his  favor,  if  this 
seemed  to  be  for  the  public  advantage.  For  it  is  onj 
behalf  of  the  public  that  I  continue  to  toil  and  undergo 
dangers  and  have  spent  so  much  time  yonder  outside 
of  Italy,  during  mature  manhood  and  now  in  old  age 
and  weakness,  though  I  can  not  take  food  without  pain 
nor  get  sleep  free  from  anxiety. 

*  *  But  since  Cassius  would  never  be  willing  to  agree  —  25  — 
to  this  (for  how  could  he  trust  me  after  having  shown 
himself  so  untrustworthy  towards  me?),  you,  at  least, 
fellow-soldiers,  ought  to  be  of  good  cheer.  Cilicians, 
Syrians,  Jews  and  Egyptians  have  never  proved  your 
superiors  nor  shall  so  prove,  even  if  they  assemble  in 
numbers  ten  times  your  own,  whereas  they  are  now  by 
the  same  proportion  inferior.  Nor  yet  would  Cassius 
himself  now  appear  worthy  of  any  particular  consid- 
eration, however  much  he  may  seem  to  possess  the 
qualities  of  generalship,  however  many  successes  he 
may  seem  to  have  gained.  An  eagle  is  not  formidable 
at  the  head  of  an  army  of  daws,  nor  a  lion  command- 
ing fawns;  and  it  was  not  Cassius,  but  you,  that 
brought  to  an  end  the  Arabian  or  the  famous  Parthian 
War.  Again,  even  though  he  is  renowned  as  a  result 
of  his  achievements  against  the  Parthians,  yet  you 

265 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ^'  H^,  have  Verus,  who  has  won  more  victories  than  he  and 

(a.   tt.   928)  .     '  ... 

has  acquired  more  territory  m  a  not  less,  but  more 
distinguished  manner. —  But  probably  he  has  already 
changed  his  mind,  on  hearing  that  I  am  alive,  for 
surely  he  has  done  this  on  no  other  assumption  than 
that  I  was  dead.  And  if  he  resists  still  further,  yet 
when  he  learns  that  we  are  approaching,  he  will  surely 
hesitate  both  out  of  fear  of  you  and  out  of  respect  for 
me. 

—26—  ''  There  is  only  one  thing  I  fear,  fellow-soldiers  (you 
shall  be  told  the  whole  truth) ,  and  that  is  that  he  may 
either  kill  himself  because  ashamed  to  come  into  our 
presence,  or  some  one  else  upon  learning  that  I  shall 
come  and  am  setting  out  against  him  may  do  it.  Then 
should  I  be  deprived  of  a  great  prize  both  of  war  and 
of  victory,  and  of  a  magnitude  such  as  no  human  being 
ever  yet  obtained.  What  is  this?  Why,  to  forgive  a 
man  that  has  done  you  an  injury,  to  remain  a  friend 
to  one  who  has  transgressed  friendship,  to  continue 
faithful  to  one  who  has  broken  faith.  Perhaps  this 
seems  strange  to  you,  but  you  ought  not  to  disbelieve 
it.  For  all  goodness  has  not  yet  perished  from  among 
mankind,  but  there  is  still  in  us  a  remnant  of  the 
ancient  virtue.  And  if  any  one  does  disbelieve  it,  that 
renders  the  more  ardent  my  desire  that  men  may  see 
accomplished  what  no  one  would  believe  could  come  to 
pass.  That  would  be  one  profit  I  could  derive  from 
present  ills,  if  I  could  settle  the  affair  well  and  show 
to  all  mankind  that  there  is  a  right  way  to  handle 
even  civil  wars." 

—  27—         This  is  what  Marcus  both  said  to  the  soldiers  and 
wrote  to  the  senate,  in  no  place  abusing  Cassius,  save 

266 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

that  he  constantly  termed  him  ungrateful.  Nor,  indeed,   a.  d.  175 
did  Cassius  ever  utter  or  write  anything  of  a  nature 
insulting  to  Marcus. 

T[  Marcus  at  the  time  he  was  preparing  for  the  war  against  Cassius 
would  accept  no  barbarian  alliance  although  he  found  a  concourse  of 
foreign  nations  offering  their  services;  for  he  said  that  the  barbarians 
■ought  not  to  know  about  troubles  arising  between  Romans. 

While  Marcus  was  making  preparations  for  the  civil 
war,  many  victories  over  various  barbarians  were  re- 
ported at  one  and  the  same  time  with  the  death  of 
Cassius.  The  latter  while  walking  had  encountered 
Antonius,  a  centurion,  who  gave  him  a  sudden  wound  in 
the  neck,  though  the  blow  was  not  entirely  effective. 
And  Antonius,  borne  away  by  the  impetus  of  his  horse, 
left  the  deed  incomplete,  so  that  his  victim  nearly  es- 
caped; but  meantime  the  decurion  had  finished  what 
was  left  to  do.  They  cut  off  his  head  and  set  out  to 
meet  the  emperor. 

Marcus  Antoninus  [was  so  much  grieved  at  the  de-     —28  — 
struction  of  Cassius  that  he  would  not  even  endure  to 
see  the  severed  head,  but  before  the  murderers  drew 
near  gave  orders  that  it  should  be  buried.] 

Thus  was  this  pretender  slain  after  a  dream  of  (—27—) 
sovereignty  lasting  three  months  and  six  days,  and 
his  son  was  murdered  somewhere  else.  And  Marcus 
upon  reaching  the  provinces  that  had  joined  in  Cas- 
sius's  uprising  treated  them  all  very  kindly  and  put  no 
one,  either  obscure  or  prominent,  to  death. 

[The  same  man  would  not  slay  nor  imprison  nor  did 
he  put  under  any  guard  any  one  of  the  senators  asso- 
ciated with  Cassius.  He  did  not  so  much  as  bring  them 
before  his  own  court,  but  merely  sent  them  before  the 
senate,  nominally  under  some  other  complaint,  and  ap- 

267 


—  28  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  175   pointed  them  a  fixed  day  on  which  to  have  their  case 

(o.    u.    92b) 

heard.  Of  the  rest  he  brought  to  justice  a  very  few, 
who  had  not  only  cooperated  with  Cassius  to  the  extent 
of  some  overt  action  but  were  personally  guilty  of  some 
crime.  A  proof  of  this  is  that  he  did  not  murder  nor 
deprive  of  his  property  Flavins  Calvisius,  the  governor 
of  Egypt,  but  merely  confined  him  on  an  island.  The 
records  made  about  his  case  Marcus  caused  to  be 
burned,  in  order  that  no  reproach  might  attach  to  him 
from  them.  Furthermore  he  released  all  his  relatives.] 
r~^^7:^       About  this  same  time  Faustina  died,  either  of  the 

A.  D.   176  ' 

{a.  u.  929)  gout  from  which  she  had  suffered  or  from  less  natural 
causes  and  to  avoid  being  convicted  of  her  compact 
with  Cassius.—  Moreover,  Marcus  destroyed  the  docu- 
ments [found  in  the  chests  of  Pudens],^  not  even  read- 
ing them,  in  order  that  he  might  not  learn  even  a  name 
of  any  of  the  conspirators  who  had  written  something 
against  him  and  that  he  might  not  [therefore]  be  re- 
luctantly forced  to  hate  any  one.  Another  account  is 
that  Verus,  who  was  sent  ahead  into  Syria,  of  which  he 
had  secured  the  governorship,  found  them  among  the 
effects  of  Cassius  and  put  them  out  of  the  way,  saying 
that  this  course  would  most  probably  be  agreeable  to 
the  emperor,  but  even  if  he  should  be  angry,  it  would 
be  better  that  he  [Verus]  himself  should  perish  than 
many  others.  Marcus  was  so  averse  to  slaughter 
that  he  saw  to  it  that  the  gladiators  in  Rome  contended 
without  danger,  like  athletes ;  for  he  never  permitted 
any  of  them  to  have  any  sharp  iron,  but  they  fought 
imth  blunt  weapons,  rounded  off  at  the  ends.    [And  so 

1  Reimar  suggested  that  perhaps  Pudens  was  secretary  of  the  Greek 
letters  of  Cassius,  as  Manlius  (Book  Seventy-two,  chapter  7)  was  of  his 
Latin  letters. 

268 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

far  was  he  from  countenancing  any  slaughter  that  /^-  ^-  H^ 
though  at  the  request  of  the  populace  he  ordered  to  be 
brought  in  a  lion  trained  to  eat  men,  he  would  not  look 
at  the  beast  nor  emancipate  its  teacher,  in  spite  of  the 
long-continued  and  urgent  demands  of  the  people.  In- 
stead, he  commanded  proclamation  to  be  made  that  the 
man  had  done  nothing  to  deserve  freedom.] 

In  his  great  grief  over  the  death  of  Faustina  he  —  30  — 
wrote  to  the  senate  that  no  one  of  those  who  had 
cooperated  with  Cassius  was  dead,  as  if  in  this  fact 
alone  he  could  find  some  consolation  for  Faustina's 
loss.  "  May  it  never  happen,"  he  continued,  '^  that 
any  one  of  you  is  slain  during^  my  lifetime  either  by 
my  vote  or  by  your  own. ' '  Finally  he  said :  * '  If  I  do 
not  obtain  this  request,  I  shall  hasten  on  to  death."  So 
pure  and  excellent  and  godfearing  did  he  show  himself 
throughout  his  career.  [Nothing  could  force  him  to 
do  anything  inconsistent  with  his  character,  neither  the 
wickedness  of  daring  attempts  nor  the  expectation  of 
similar  events  to  follow  as  the  result  of  pardon.  To 
such  an  extent  did  he  refrain  from  inventing  any 
imaginary  conspiracy  and  concocting  any  tragedy  that 
had  not  taken  place,  that  he  released  even  those  who 
most  openly  rose  against  him  and  took  arms  against 
him  and  against  his  son,  whether  they  were  generals 
or  heads  of  tribes  or  kings,  and  he  put  none  of  them  to 
death  either  by  his  own  action  or  by  that  of  the  senate 
or  by  any  other  arrangement  whatever.  Wherefore  I 
actually  believe  that  if  he  had  captured  Cassius  himself 
alive,  he  would  certainly  have  saved  him  from  injury.] 
For  he  conferred  benefits  upon  many  who  had  been 

1  Reading  ^:r'  i/^oo  (Dindorf). 

269 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  176   murderers,—  so  far  as  lay  in  their  power,—  of  himself 

{a.   u.   929)  ^  ±  7 

and  his  son. 

—  31  —        A  law  was  at  this  time  passed  that  no  one  should  be 

governor  in  the  province  from  which  he  had  originally 
come,  because  the  revolt  of  Cassius  had  oc<!urred  dur- 
ing his  administration  of  Syria,  which  included  his 
native  district.  It  was  voted  by  the  senate  that  silver 
images  of  Marcus  and  Faustina  should  be  set  up  in  the 
temple  of  Venus  and  Eoma,  and  that  an  altar  should 
be  erected  whereon  all  the  maidens  married  in  the  city 
and  their  bridegrooms  should  offer  sacrifice ;  also  that 
a  golden  image  of  Faustina  should  be  carried  in  a  chair 
to  the  theatre  on  each  occasion  that  the  emperor  should 
be  a  spectator,  and  that  it  should  be  placed  in  the  seat 
well  forward,  where  she  herself  was  wont  to  take  her 
place  when  alive,  and  that  the  women  of  chief  influence 
should  all  sit  round  about  it. 

Marcus  went  to  Athens,  where  after  being  initiated 
into  the  mysteries  he  bestowed  honors  upon  the  Athe- 
nians and  gave  teachers  to  all  men  in  Athens,  for  every 
species  of  knowledge,  these  teachers  to  receive  an 

—  32—    annual  salary.    On  his  return  to  Rome  he  made  an 

address  to  the  people ;  and  while  he  was  saying,  among 
other  things,  that  he  had  been  absent  many  years,  they 
cried  out :  * '  Eight ! ' '  and  indicated  this  also  with  their 
hands,  in  order  that  they  might  receive  an  equal  num- 
ber of  gold  pieces  for  a  banquet.  He  smiled  and  him- 
self uttered  the  word  *' Eight."  After  that  he  dis- 
tributed to  them  two  hundred  denarii  apiece,  more  than 
they  had  ever  received  before. —  In  addition  to  doing 
this,  he  forgave  all  persons  all  their  debts  to  the  im- 
perial and  to  the  public  treasury  for  a  space  of  forty- 

270 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

six  years,  outside  of  the  sixteen  granted  by  Hadrian.  ■^-  ^-  ^^^ 
And  all  the  documents  relating  to  these  debts  he  or- 
dered burned  in  the  Forum.—  He  gave  money  to  many 
cities,  one  of  them  being  Smyrna,  that  had  suffered  (^;  ^;  IH^ 
terribly  by  an  earthquake ;  he  also  assigned  the  duty  of 
building  up  this  place  to  an  ex-praetor  of  senatorial 
rank.  Therefore  I  am  surprised  at  the  censures  even 
now  passed  upon  him  to  the  effect  that  he  was  not  a 
man  of  large  calibre.  For,  whereas  in  ordinary  mat- 
ters he  was  really  quite  frugal,  he  never  demurred  at  a 
single  necessary  expenditure  (though,  as  I  have  said,^ 
he  hurt  no  one  by  levies),  and  he  necessarily  laid  out 
very  large  sums  beyond  the  ordinary  requirements. 

The  Scythian  imbroglio,  which  needed  his  attention,  —  33  — 
caused  him  to  give  his  son  a  wife,  Crispina,  sooner  than 
he  actually  wished.  The  Quintilii  could  not  end  the 
war,  although  there  were  two  of  them  and  they  pos- 
sessed prudence,  courage,  and  considerable  experience. 
Consequently  the  rulers  themselves  were  forced  to  take 
the  field.  Marcus  also  asked  the  senate  for  money 
from  the  public  treasury,  not  because  it  had  not  been  („'  J'  931) 

1  The  reference  here  made  by  Dio  ma^  very  possibly  be  to  a  passage 
reproduced  by  Zonaras  ( XII,  1 ) ,  regarding  the  authenticity  of  which 
Boissevain  is  nevertheless  somewhat  doubtful.  For  the  sake  of  com- 
pleteness a  translation  is  here  given   (  oufj.7jv ificda-aro  )  ; 

"  Yet  he  was  not  thereby  induced  to  secure  money  from  the  subject 
nations.  On  one  occasion,  indeed,  with  wars  impending,  he  had  come 
short  for  funds  and  still  did  not  devise  any  new  tax  nor  endure  to 
ask  money  from  any  one.  Instead,  he  exposed  in  the  Forum  all  the 
heirlooms  of  the  palace,  even  down  to  this  or  that  piece  of  finery 
belonging  to  his  wife,  and  solicited  their  purchase  by  any  person  so 
disposed.  This  brought  him  a  store  of  coin,  which  he  distributed  to 
the  soldiers.  By  success  in  the  war  he  gained  many  times  the  amount 
in  question,  and  he  issued  a  proclamation  to  the  effect  than  any  one 
so  disposed  among  the  purchasers  of  the  imperial  property  might  return 
the  article  purchased  and  receive  its  value.  Some  did  so,  but  the 
majority  declined.  And  nobody  was  compelled  to  restore  any  object 
thus  acquired." 

271 


DTO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  178  placed  in  the  sovereign's  authority,  but  because  Mar- 
cus was  wont  to  declare  that  this  and  everything  else 
belonged  to  the  senate  and  the  people.  ''  We,"  said 
he  (speaking  to  the  senate),  **  are  so  far  from  having 
anything  of  our  own  that  we  even  live  in  a  house  of 
yours."  He  set  out,  therefore,  after  these  remarks, 
and  after  hurling  the  bloody  spear,  that  lay  in  the 
temple  of  Bellona,  into  hostile  territory.     (I  heard  this 

A.  D.  179  from  men  who  accompanied  him.)  Patemus  was 
given  a  large  detachment  and  sent  to  the  scene  of  fight- 
ing. The  barbarians  held  out  the  entire  day,  but  were 
all  cut  down  by  the  Eomans.  And  Marcus  was  for  the 
tenth  time  saluted  as  imperator. 

—  18—         [The  lazyges  sent  an  embassy  and  asked  to  be  re- 

A.D.  179-180        L  •'  o  ^ 

leased  from  some  of  the  agreements  they  had  made, 
and  a  certain  leniency  was  shown  them,  to  prevent 
their  being  entirely  alienated.  Yet  neither  they  nor 
the  Buri  were  willing  to  join  the  Roman  alliance  until 
they  received  pledges  from  Marcus  that  he  would  with- 
out fail  prosecute  the  war  to  the  uttermost.  They 
were  afraid  that  he  might  make  a  treaty  with  the 
Quadi,  as  before,  and  leave  enemies  dwelling  at  their 
doors.] 
— 19  —  [Marcus  gave  audience  to  such  persons  as  came  in  the 
capacity  of  envoys  from  outside  nations,  but  all  were 
not  received  on  the  same  footing.  This  varied  according 
as  the  individual  states  were  worthy  to  receive  citizen- 
ship, or  freedom  from  taxes,  or  perpetual  or  tempor- 
ary exemption  from  tribute,  or  to  enjoy  permanent  sup- 
port. And  when  the  lazyges  proved  themselves  most 
useful  to  him,  he  released  them  from  many  of  the  re- 
strictions imposed  upon  them,—  indeed,  from  all,  save 

272 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

from  the  arrangements  made  in  regard  to  their  gather-  A.D.179-I8O 

ings  and  mutual  intercourse,  and  the  provisions  that 

they  should  not  use  boats  of  their  own  and  should  keep 

away  from  the  islands  in  the  Ister.    And  he  permitted 

them  to  go  through  Dacia  and  have  dealings  with  the 

Ehoxolani  as  often  as  the  governor  of  Dacia  would  give 

them  permission.] 

[The  Quadi  and  the  Marcomani  sent  envoys  to  Mar-  —20  — 
cus,  saying  that  the  two  myriads  of  soldiers  that  were 
in  the  forts  would  not  allow^  them  to  pasture  or  till  the 
soil  or  do  anything  else  with  freedom,  but  kept  receiv- 
ing many  deserters  from  them  and  captives  of  theirs ; 
yet  the  soldiers  themselves  were  enduring  no  great 
hardships,  inasmuch  as  they  had  bath-houses  and  all 
necessary  provisions  in  abundance.  The  Quadi,  conse- 
quently, would  not  endure  the  watch  kept  on  them  from 
fortifications  and  undertook  to  withdraw  en  masse  to 
the  territory  of  the  Semnones.  But  Antoninus  learned 
beforehand  of  their  intention  and  by  barring  the  roads 
thither  prevented  them.  This  showed  that  he  desired 
not  to  acquire  their  territory,  but  to  punish  the  mem- 
bers of  the  tribe.] 

[And  the  Naristi,  having  encountered  hardships,  de-    —21  — 
serted  to  the  number  of  three  thousand  at  once  and 
received  land  in  our  territory.] 

Had  he  lived  longer,  he  would  have  subdued  the    (—33--) 
whole  region:  as  it  was,  he  passed  away  on  the  seven-  (o.  u.  9J3) 
teenth  of  March,  not  from  the  effects  of  the  sickness 
that  he  had  at  the  time,  but  by  the  connivance  of  his 
physicians,  as  I  have  heard  on  good  evidence,  who 
wanted  to  do  a  favor  to  Commodus.    When  at  the     —34— 

1  Supplying,  with  Reiske,   inirpenov. 

VOL.  5  —  18.  273 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

it'  u'  933)  P°^^  ^^  death  he  conimended  his  son  to  the  protection 
of  the  soldiers  (for  he  did  not  wish  his  death  to  appear 
to  be  his  fault) ;  and  to  the  military  tribunes,  who  asked 
him  for  the' watchword,  he  said :  "  Go  to  the  rising  sun : 
I  am  already  setting. ' '  After  he  was  dead  he  obtained 
many  marks  of  honor  and  was  set  up  in  gold  within 
the  senate-house  itself. 

So  this  was  the  manner  of  Marcus's  demise,  [who 
besides  all  other  virtues  was  so  godfearing  that  even 
on  the  dies  nefasti  he  sacrificed  at  home;  and  he  ruled 
better  than  any  that  had  ever  been  in  power.  To  be 
sure,  he  could  not  display  many  feats  of  physical  prow- 
ess ;  yet  in  his  own  person  he  made  a  very  strong  body 
out  of  a  very  weak  one.]  Most  of  his  life  he  passed  in 
the  service  of  beneficence,  and  therefore  he  erected  on 
the  Capitol  a  temple  to  that  goddess  and  called  her  by 
a  most  peculiar  name,  which  had  never  before  been  cur- 
rent.^ He  himself  refrained  from  all  offences,  [and 
committed  no  faults  voluntarily:]  but  the  offences  of 
others,  particularly  those  of  his  wife,  he  endured,  and 
neither  investigated  them  nor  punished  them.  In  case 
any  person  did  anything  good,  he  would  praise  him  and 
use  him  for  the  service  in  which  he  excelled,  but  about 
others  he  did  not  trouble  himself,  [saying:  ''  It  is  im- 
possible for  one  to  create  such  men  as  one  wishes  to 
have,  but  it  is  proper  to  employ  those  in  existence  for 
that  in  which  each  of  them  may  be  useful  to  the  com- 
monwealth. ' ']  That  all  his  actions  were  prompted  not 
by  pretence  but  by  real  virtue  is  strikingly  clear.  He 
lived  fifty-eight  years,  ten  months,  and  twenty-two 
days,  and  of  this  time  he  had  spent  considerable  as 

1  What  tills  name  was  no  one  knows.     Sylburgiua  conjectured  that  it 
might  be  ^quanimitas. 

274 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

assistant  to  tlie  previous  Antoninus  and  had  himself  ,^-  ^-  i^2v 

•^  (a.  u.   933) 

been  emperor  nineteen  years  and  eleven  days,  yet  from 
first  to  last  he  remained  the  same  and  changed  not  a 
particle.  So  truly  was  he  a  good  man,  without  any  pre- 
tence about  him.  He  was  vastly  helped  by  his  educa-  —35  — 
tion,  being  an  expert  in  rhetoric  and  in  philosophical 
argument.  In  the  one  he  had  Cornelius  Fronto  and 
Claudius  Herodes  for  teachers,  and  in  the  other,  Junius 
Eusticus  and  Apollonius  of  Nicomedea,^  both  of  whom 
followed  Zeno's  school.  As  a  result,  great  numbers 
pretended  to  engage  in  philosophy,  in  order  that  they 
might  be  enriched  by  the  emperor. 

After  all,  however,  he  owed  his  great  attainments 
chiefly  to  his  natural  disposition;  for  even  before  he 
enjoyed  the  society  of  those  men  he  was  unflinchingly 
set  upon  virtue.  While  still  a  boy  he  delighted  all  his 
relations,  who  were  numerous  and  influential  and 
wealthy,  and  was  loved  by  all  of  them.  This,  most  of 
all,  led  Hadrian  to  adopt  him  into  his  family,  and  Mar- 
cus, for  his  part,  did  not  grow  haughty  [but,  though 
young  and  a  Caesar  he  dutifully  played  the  part  of 
servant  to  Antoninus  through  all  the  latter 's  reign  and 
ungrudgingly  did  honor  to  the  other  men  of  eminence. 
Before  going  to  see  his  father  he  used  to  greet  the  most 
worthy  men  in  the  house  near  the  Tiber  where  he  lived, 
and  in  the  very  apartment  where  he  slept ;  and  all  this 
time,  instead  of  wearing  the  attire  allowed  by  his  rank, 
he  went  dressed  as  a  private  citizen.  He  visited  many 
who  were  sick  and  invariably  met  his  teachers  at  the 
proper  time.  Dark  garments  were  what  he  wore  on 
going  out  when  not  in  his  father's  company,  and  he 

1  Since  Apollonius  was   really  from   Chalcedon,  an  error  may  here 
be  charged  to  Dio's  or  some  one  else's  account. 

275 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  180  i^QYQY  used  the  attendant  for  himself  alone.     Upon 

(a.   u,   933)  ^  ^  ^ 

being  appointed  leader  of  the  knights  he  entered  the 
Fornm  with  the  rest,  although  he  was  Caesar.  This 
shows  how  excellent  was  his  own  natural  disposition, 
though  it  was  aided  to  the  greatest  degree  by  educa- 
tion.] He  was  always  steeped  in  Greek  and  Latin 
rhetorical  and  philosophical  learning  [though  he  had 
reached  man's  estate  and  had  hopes  of  becoming 
emperor]. 
—  36  _  Before  he  was  made  Caesar  he  had  a  dream  in  which 
he  seemed  to  have  shoulders  and  hands  of  ivory  and  to 
use  them  in  all  respects  as  he  did  his  real  limbs. 

As  a  result  of  his  great  labors  and  studies  he  was 
extremely  frail  in  body,  yet  from  the  very  start  he  en- 
joyed such  good  health  that  he  used  to  fight  in  armor 
and  on  a  hunt  struck  down  wild  boars  while  on  horse- 
back. [And  not  only  in  his  early  youth  but  even  later 
he  wrote  most  of  his  letters  to  his  intimate  friends  with 
his  own  hand.]  However,  he  did  not  meet  the  good 
fortune  that  he  deserved,  for  he  was  not  strong  [in 
body]  and  was  involved  in  the  greatest  variety  of 
troubles  throughout  practically  the  whole  period  that 
he  was  ruler.  But  I  am  sure  I  admire  him  all  the  more 
for  this  very  reason,  that  amid  unusual  and  extraordi- 
nary happenings  he  both  himself  survived  and  pre- 
served the  empire.  One  thing  in  particular  contributed 
to  his  lack  of  happiness,—  the  fact  that  after  rearing 
and  educating  his  son  in  the  best  possible  way  he  was 
monstrously  disappointed  in  him.  This  matter  must 
now  form  the  subject  of  our  discourse,  for  our  history 
now  descends  from  a  kingdom  of  gold  to  one  of  iron 
and  rust,^  as  affairs  did  for  the  Romans  of  that  day. 

1  Reading  xartwfiivrjv  (Dindorf,  following  Eeiske). 

276 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

73 


277 


About  Commodus  Augustus  (chapter  1). 

How  Commodus  made  terms  of  peace  with  the  Marcomani, 
the  Quadi,  and  the  Buri  (chapters  2,  3). 

Intrigues  of  Pompeianus  against  Commodus  (chapter  4). 

About  the  killing  of  the  Quintilii  (chapters  5-7). 

About  the  war  in  Britain,  and  the  captain,  Ulpius  Marcellus 
(chapter  8). 

How  Perennis,  pretorian  prefect,  was  slain  (chapters  9,  10). 

Statue  erected  to  Victorinus  (chapter  11). 

Crimes  and  death  of  Cleander,  a  Caesarian  (chapters  12,  13). 

Presh  assassinations  occur  (chapter  15). 

Commodus's  titles  (chapter  15). 

About  the  spectacles  presented  by  Commodus,  and  his  insolent 
behavior  (chapters  16-21). 

Commodus  is  killed  as  the  result  of  a  conspiracy  (chapter 
22). 

Dio  begins  to  lay  the  foundations  of  his  history  (chapter 
23). 

Portents  indicating  the  death  of  Commodus  (chapter  24). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

L.  Fulvius  Bruttius  Prsesens  (II),  Sextus  ftuintilius  Con- 
dianus.  (A.  D.  180  =  a.  u.  933  =  First  of  Commodus,  from 
March  17th.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (Ill),  Antistius  Burrus.  (A.  D.  181  =  a.  n. 
934  =^  Second  of  Commodus.) 

C.  Petronius  Mamertinus,  Cornelius  Rufus.  (A.  D.  182  = 
a.  u.  935  =  Third  of  Commodus.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (IV),  Aufidius  Victorinus  (II).  (A.  D.  183 
=;  a.  u.  936  =  Fourth  of  Commodus.) 

L.  Eggius  MaruUus,  Cn.  Papirius  ^lianus.  (A.  D.  184  = 
a.  u.  937  =  Fifth  of  Commodus.) 

Matemus,  Bradua.  (A.  D.  185  =  a.  u.  938  =  Sixth  of  Com- 
modus.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (V),  Acilius  Glabrio  (11).  (A.  D.  186  = 
a.  u.  939  =  Seventh  of  Commodus.) 


Crispinns,  ^lianus.  (A.  D.  187  =  a.  u.  940  =  Eighth  of 
Commodus.) 

C.  Allius  Fuscianus  (II),  Duillius  Silanus  (II).  (A.  D.  188 
=:a.  u.  941  =  Ninth  of  Commodus.) 

lunius  Silanus,  Servilius  Silanus.  (A.  D.  189  =  a.  u.  942  = 
Tenth  of  Commodus.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (VI),  M.  Petronius  Septimianus.  (A.  D. 
190  =:  a.  u.  943  =:  Eleventh  of  Commodus.) 

Apronianus,  Bradua.  (A.  D.  191=:  a.  u.  944=:  Twelfth  of 
Commodus.) 

Commodus  Aug.  (VII),  P.  Helvius  Pertinax  (II).  (A.  D.  192 
=  a.  u.  945  =  Thirteenth  of  Commodus,  to  Dec.  31st.) 


(BOOK  73,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

This  [Commodus]  was  not  naturally  wicked,  but  was  —  i  — 
originally  as  free  from  taint  as  any  man  ever  was.  (^j'  ^"  933 ^ 
His  great  simplicity,  however,  and  likewise  his  cow- 
ardice made  him  a  slave  of  his  companions  and  it  was 
through  them  that  he  first,  out  of  ignorance,  missed 
the  better  life  and  then  was  attracted  into  licentious- 
ness and  bloodthirsty  habits,  which  soon  became  second 
nature.  [And  this,  I  think,  Marcus  clearly  perceived 
beforehand.]  He  was  nineteen  years  old  when  his 
father  died,  leaving  him  many  guardians,  among  whom 
were  numbered  the  best  men  of  the  senate.  But  to 
their  suggestions  and  counsels  Commodus  bade  fare- 
well, and,  after  making  a  truce  with  the  barbarians,  he 
hastened  to  Rome. 

[For  the  Ixlarcomani  by  reason  of  the  number  of 
their  people  that  were  perishing  and  the  damage  con- 
stantly being  done  to  their  farms  no  longer  had  either 
food  or  men  in  any  numbers.  Thus  they  sent  only  two 
of  their  foremost  representatives  and  two  others  that 
were  of  inferior  rank  as  envoys  in  regard  to  peace. 
And  whereas  he  might  easily  have  put  an  end  to  their 
resistance,  he  so  detested  exertion  and  was  so  eager 
for  the  comforts  of  city  life  that  he  made  terms  with 
them.  Besides  the  conditions  which  his  father  had 
settled  upon  with  them  new  ones  were  now  imposed  re- 
quiring them  to  restore  to  him  the  deserters  and  the 
captives  that  they  took  after  this  time  and  to  contribute 
annually  a  stipulated  amount  of  grain,—  a  demand 
from  which  he  subsequently  released  them.  He  ob- 
tained some  weapons  from  them  and  also  soldiers,— 

281 


—  2  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  180   thirteen  thousand  from  the  Quadi  and  a  smaller  num- 

(a.  u.  933) 

ber  from  the  Marcomani.  In  return  for  this  contin- 
gent he  relieved  them  of  the  requirement  of  an  annual 
levy.  However,  he  issued  further  orders  that  they 
should  not  assemble  often  nor  in  many  parts  of  the 
country,  but  once  each  month,  in  one  place,  in  the  pres- 
ence of  a  Roman  centurion ;  and  again,  that  they  should 
not  make  war  upon  the  lazyges,  the  Buri,  or  the  Van- 
dili.  On  these  terms  a  reconciliation  was  effected  and 
all  the  garrisons  in  their  country  beyond  the  detached 
border  territory  were  abandoned 

—'3—  [Commodus  also  granted  peace  to  an  embassy  from 

the  Buri.  Previously  he  would  not  have  it,  though 
often  asked,  because  they  were  strong  and  because 
it  was  not  peace  they  wanted,  but  the  securing  of  a 
respite  for  further  preparations.  Now,  however,  since 
they  were  exhausted,  he  made  terms  with  them  and 
accepted  hostages.  From  the  Buri  he  received  back 
many  captives  and  from  the  others^  fifteen  thousand, 
and  he  compelled  the  others^  to  take  oath  that  they 
would  never  dwell  in  nor  use  as  pasture  forty  stadia 
of  their  territory,  nearest  to  Dacia.  The  same  ( ?)  Sabi- 
nianus  also  reduced  twelve  thousand  of  the  neighbor- 
ing Dacians  who  had  been  driven  out  of  their  own 
country  and  were  on  the  point  of  aiding  the  rest.^  He 
promised  these  that  some  land  in  our  Dacia  should  be 
given  them.] 

_-4_  Frequent  plots  were  formed  by  various  persons 
against  Commodus  [for  he  did  many  reprehensible 
deeds]  and  he  murdered  great  numbers  both  of  men 
and  of  women,  some  openly  and  some  by  secret  poison, 

1  The  MS.  is  here  very  possibly  corrupt. 

282 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

— in  a  word,  practically  all  those  who  had  attained  emi-  A.  D.  i8i(?) 
nence  during  his  father's  lifetime  and  his  own.  Ex- 
ceptions were  Pompeianns  and  Pertinax  and  Victori- 
nus :  these  for  some  reason  unknown  to  me  he  did  not 
kill.  THIS  AND  WHAT  FOLLOWS  I  STATE  NOT 
ON  THE  AUTHOEITY  OF  ANOTHER'S  TRADI- 
TION, BUT  FROM  MY  OWN  OBSERVATION.  On 
coming  to  Rome  he  had  a  conference  with  the  senate, 
at  which  he  talked  a  great  deal  of  nonsense,  one  thing 
that  he  said  in  praise  of  himself  being  that  he  had  once 
on  horseback  saved  the  life  of  his  father,  who  had 
fallen  into  a  deep  mire.  Of  such  a  nature  were  his 
lofty  pratings.  As  he  was  entering  the  hunting  a.  d.  182 
theatre,  Claudius  Pompeianus  laid  a  snare  for  him.  ^"-  "•  ' 
He  held  up  a  sword  in  the  narrow  passage  which 
served  as  an  entrance  and  said :  *  *  See,  this  is  what  the 
senate  has  sent  you." 

This  man  had  taken  as  his  spouse  the  daughter  of 
Lucilla,  but  had  intimate  relations  both  with  the 
daughter  herself  and  with  the  girl's  mother;  in  this 
way  he  had  become  friendly  with  Commodus,  so  that 
he  was  his  companion  at  banquets  and  in  the  diversions 
of  youth.  Lucilla,  who  was  neither  more  respectable 
nor  more  continent  than  her  brother  Commodus,  de- 
tested the  girl's  husband,  Pompeianus.  It  was  for  this 
reason  that  she  persuaded  the  aforementioned  to 
undertake  the  attack  upon  Commodus,  and  she  not  only 
caused  his  destruction,  but  was  herself  detected  and 
put  out  of  the  way.  Commodus  killed  also  Crispina, 
because  he  was  angry  with  her  for  some  act  of  adul- 
tery. Previous  to  their  execution  both  women  had 
been  banished  to  the  island  of  Capreae. 

There  was  a  certain  Marcia,  mistress  of  Quadratus 

283 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

(a  u935)  (^^®  ^^  ^^®  ^®^  murdered  at  this  time)  and  Eclectus, 
his  cubicularius :  the  latter  became  also  the  cubicu- 
larius  of  Commodus,  and  the  former,  first,  the  emper- 
or's mistress  and  later  the  wife  of  Eclectus;  and  she 
beheld  them  also  perish  by  violence.  The  tradition  is 
that  she  very  much  favored  the  Christians  and  did 
them  many  kindnesses,  as  she  was  enabled  to  do 
through  possessing  all  influence  with  Commodus. 
—•5—  Commodus  killed  also  Julianus  [Salvius,^  and  Tar- 
rutenius  Patemus,  who  was  numbered  among  the  ex- 
consuls,  and  others  with  them ;  he  furthermore  put  to 
death  some  woman  of  the  nobility.^  Yet  Julianus 
after  the  death  of  Marcus  could  at  once  have  done  any- 
thing at  all  that  he  pleased  against  him,  since  he  pos- 
sessed great  renown,  was  in  charge  of  a  large  army, 
and  enjoyed  the  devotion  of  his  soldiers :  and  he  re- 
fused to  make  any  rebellious  move,  both  because  of  his 
own  uprightness  and  because  of  the  good  will  that  he 
bore  to  Marcus,  though  dead.  And  Patemus,  if  he  had 
plotted  against  Commodus,  as  he  was  accused  of  doing, 
could  easily  have  murdered  him  while  he  himself  still 
commanded  the  Pretorians ;  but  he  had  not  done  it.] 

The  emperor  murdered  likewise  Condianus  and  Max- 
imus  Quintilius;  for  they  had  a  great  reputation  on 
account  of  education  and  military  ability  and  fraternal 
harmony  and  wealth.  Their  notable  talents  led  to  the 
suspicion  that,  even  if  they  were  not  planning  any  hos- 
tile movement,  still  they  were  not  pleased  with  the 
state  of  affairs.  Thus,  even  as  they  had  lived  together, 
so  they  died  together,  and  one  child  as  well.  They  had 
exhibited  the  most  striking  example  ever  seen  of  affec- 
tion for  each  other,  and  at  no  time  had  they  been 

1  p.  SahAua  Julianua. 
syitrasia  Faustina  by  name. 

284 


DIO'S  ROMAN    HISTORY 

divided,  even  in  their  political  offices.    They  had  srown  ^-  ^-  i82 

^  ..       ,  •'  *  (a.  «.  935) 

prosperous  and  exceedingly  wealthy  and  were  wont  to 
govern  together  and  to  assist  each  other  in  trying  cases 
at  law. 

Sextus  Condianus,  son  of  Maximus,  who  surpassed  —  6  — 
the  generality  of  men  in  character  and  education,  when 
he  heard  that  sentence  of  death  had  been  passed  upon 
him,  too,  drank  hare's  blood  (he  was  at  that  time  lo- 
cated in  Syria) ;  and  after  this  he  mounted  a  horse  and 
purposely  fell  from  it.  Then,  as  he  vomited  the  blood 
(which  was  supposed  to  be  his  own),  he  was  taken  up 
in  the  expectation  of  his  immediate  demise  and  con- 
veyed into  a  dwelling.  The  man  himself  now  disap- 
peared from  view,  but  a  ram's  body  was  placed  in  a 
coffin  in  his  place  and  burned.  Thereafter,  by  con- 
stantly changing  his  appearance  and  clothing,  he  wan- 
dered about,  now  here,  now  there.  And  when  this 
story  was  reported  (for  it  is  impossible  to  conceal  for 
a  long  time  so  weighty  a  matter),  there  was  hue  and 
cry  after  him  in  every  place,  bar  none.  Many  were 
punished  in  his  stead  on  account  of  their  resemblance, 
and  many,  too,  who  were  alleged  to  have  shared  his 
confidences  or  to  have  received  and  hidden  him.  Sev- 
eral, moreover,  who  had  perhaps  never  even  seen  him, 
were  deprived  of  their  property.  But  no  one  knows 
whether  he  was  really  killed  (though  a  great  number 
of  heads  purporting  to  be  his  were  carried  to  Rome) 
or  whether  he  made  good  his  escape. 

Some  other  person,  after  the  death  of  Commodus, 
dared  to  assert  that  he  was  Sextus  and  to  undertake 
the  recovery  of  his  wealth  and  dignities.    And  he 

285  '      - 


—  7  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

1^'  ^' a^^\  playGd  the  part  well  while  many  persons  asked  him 
numbers  of  questions:  when,  however,  Pertinax  en- 
quired of  him  something  about  Grecian  affairs,  with 
which  the  real  Sextus  had  been  well  acquainted,  he  suf- 
fered the  greatest  embarrassment,  not  being  able  even 
to  understand  what  was  said.  [So  it  was  that  nature 
had  made  him  like  Condianus  in  form  and  practice  like 
him  in  other  ways,  but  he  did  not  share  in  his  edu- 
cation.] 

This  matter  came  to  my  own  ears,  and  another  thing 
that  I  saw  I  shall  now  describe.  There  is  in  the  city  of 
Mallus,  in  Cilicia,  an  oracle  of  Amphilochus,  that  gives 
responses  by  means  of  dreams.  It  had  given  warning 
also  to  Sextus,  in  a  way  that  he  indicated  by  a  drawing. 
The  picture  that  he  put  on  a  board  represented  a  boy 
strangling  two  serpents  and  a  lion  pursuing  a  fawn.  I 
was  with  my  father,  then  governor  of  Cilicia,  and  could 
not  comprehend  what  they  meant  until  I  learned  that 
Sextus 's  brothers  had  been,  as  it  were,  strangled  by 
Commodus  (who  later  emulated  Hercules),  just  as 
Hercules,  when  an  infant,  is  related  to  have  strangled 
the  serpents  sent  against  him  by  Juno :  similarly,  the 
Quintilii  were  hanged ;  I  learned  also  that  Sextus  was 
a  fugitive  and  was  being  pursued  by  a  more  powerful 
adversary. 

I  should  render  my  narrative  unduly  irksome,  were 
I  to  set  down  carefully  every  single  man  put  to  death 
by  this  ruler,—  all  that  he  despatched  because  of  false 
information,  because  of  unjustified  suspicions,  because 
of  notable  wealth,  because  of  distinguished  family,  be- 
cause of  unusual  education,  or  for  any  other  excellence. 

286 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

[Commodus  displayed  in  Rome  itself  many  marks  of  ^'  ^'q^?. 
wealth,  and  very  many  more,  even,  of  love  for  the 
beautiful.  Indeed,  he  performed  one  or  two  acts  of 
public  benefit.  Manilius,  a  kinsman  of  Cassius,  who 
had  been  secretary  of  his  Latin  letters  and  had  pos- 
sessed the  greatest  influence  with  him,  was  caught  after 
a  flight,  but  the  emperor  would  not  listen  to  a  word  of 
his,  though  he  promised  to  lay  a  great  deal  of  informa- 
tion, and  burned  all  the  conspirator's  documents  with- 
out reading  them.] 

He  had  also  some  wars  with  the  barbarians  beyond  —s  — 
Dacia,  in  which  Albinus  and  Niger,  who  later  fought  (a.  u.  937) 
the  emperor  Severus,  won  fame,  but  the  greatest  con- 
flict was  the  one  in  Britain.  When  the  tribes  in  the 
island,  passing  beyond  the  wall  that  separated  them 
from  the  Roman  legions,  proceeded  to  commit  many 
outrages  and  cut  down  a  general,  together  with  the 
soldiers  that  he  had,  Commodus  was  seized  with  fear 
and  sent  Marcellus  Ulpius  against  them.  This  man, 
who  was  temperate  and  frugal  and  always  followed 
strict  military  rules  in  regard  to  food  and  all  other 
details  when  he  was  at  war,  became  in  course  of  time 
haughty  and  arrogant.  He  was  conspicuously  incor- 
ruptible in  the  matter  of  bribes,  but  was  not  of  a  pleas- 
ant or  kindly  nature.  He  showed  himself  more  wake- 
ful than  any  other  general,  and,  as  he  desired  his  asso- 
ciates also  to  be  alert,  he  wrote  orders  on  twelve  tablets 
(such  as  are  made  out  of  linden  wood)  [almost]  every 
evening,  and  bade  a  man  carry  them  to  various  per- 
sons at  various  hours,  that  they,  believing  the  general 

287 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  1S4    Iq  \yQ  always  awake,  miglit  not  themselves  take  their  fill 

(o.  u.  93/ )  "  /         c-> 

of  sleep.  Nature  had  made  him  able  in  the  first  place 
to  go  without  sleep  and  he  had  developed  this  faculty  a 
great  deal  more  by  abstinence  from  food.  [Of  scarcely 
anything  did  he  eat  his  fill  and]  in  order  to  avoid  satis- 
fying his  hunger  even  with  bread  he  sent  to  Rome  for 
the  loaves :  [this  was  not  because  he  could  not  eat  what 
was  prepared  in  that  region,  but]  it  was  done  with  th© 
purpose  that  the  age  of  the  article  might  prevent  him 
eating  ever  so  little  more  than  what  was  absolutely 
necessary.  [His  gums,  which  were  sore,  were  easily 
made  to  bleed  by  the  dryness  of  the  bread.  And  he 
made  it  his  practice  to  afiFect  sleeplessness  even  more 
than  was  the  case,  that  he  might  have  a  reputation  for 
being  always  awake.]  This  was  the  kind  of  man  Mar- 
cellus  was,  who  inflicted  great  damage  upon  the  barba- 
rians in  Britain.  Later  he  narrowly  escaped  being 
destroyed  by  Commodus  on  account  of  his  peculiar  ex- 
cellence, but  was,  nevertheless,  released. 
—9—  Perennis,  commander  of  the  Pretorians  after  Pater- 
(o.  tt.  938)  ^^S)  ^®^  destruction  on  account  of  a  rebellion  of  the 
soldiers.  For,  since  Commodus  had  devoted  himself 
to  chariot-racing  and  licentiousness  and  paid  scarcely 
any  attention  to  matters  pertaining  to  the  empire, 
Perennis  was  compelled  to  manage  not  only  military 
affairs,  but  everything  else,  and  to  preside  over  the 
government.  The  soldiers,  accordingly,  when  anything 
did  not  go  to  suit  them,  laid  the  blame  upon  Perennis 
and  cherished  anger  against  him. 

TThe  soldiers  in  Britian  chose  Priscus,  a  lieutenant,  emperor.  But 
he  deprecated  their  action,  saying :  "  I  am  as  little  suited  for  emperor 
as  you  are  for  soldiers." 

288 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

The  lieutenants  in  Britain  had  been  rebuked  for  their   a.  d  iss 

(a.  u.  voo) 

turbulence  (indeed,  they  had  not  become  quiet  until 
Pertinax  put  a  stop  to  their  discord),  and  now  they 
chose  of  their  number  fifteen  hundred  javelin-slingers, 
whom  they  sent  into  Italy.  They  had  approached 
Eome  without  meeting  any  hindrance,  when  Commo- 
dus  met  them  and  enquired :  * '  Why  is  this,  fellow- 
soldiers?  What  does  your  presence  signify?"  Their 
answer  was :  ' '  We  are  here  because  Perennis  is  plot- 
ting against  you,  and  intends  to  make  his  son  em- 
peror." Commodus  believed  them,  especially  since 
Oleander  dwelt  at  length  upon  the  point.  (The  latter 
was  often  prevented  by  Perennis  from  doing  all  that 
ho  desired,  and  consequently  entertained  a  bitter 
hatred  for  him.)  Therefore  he  delivered  the  prefect 
to  the  soldiers  of  whom  he  was  commander,  and  did  not 
venture  to  despise  fifteen  hundred  men,  though  he  had 
many  times  that  number  of  Pretorians.  So  Perennis 
was  abused  and  struck  down,  and  his  wife  and  sister 
and  two  sons  were  also  killed. 

Thus  was  he  slain  though  he  deserved  a  far  different    _  lo 

fate  both  on  his  own  account  and  for  the  interest  of  the 
entire  Koman  domain.  Only,  it  may  be  remarked  that 
his  fondness  for  oflSce  had  been  the  chief  cause  of  the 
ruin  of  his  colleague  Paternus.  Privately  he  was 
never  remotely  concerned  about  either  fame  or  wealth, 
but  lived  a  most  incorruptible  and  temperate  life,  and 
for  Oommodus  he  preserved  his  empire  in  entire 
safety.  [For  the  emperor  wholly  followed  his  amuse- 
ments and  gave  himself  over  to  chariot-driving  and 

cared  not  a  whit  for  any  political  interests;  nor,  in- 
voL.  5  —  19.  289 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  185    deed,  had  he  given  his  mind  to  the  matter  ever  so  zeal- 
fa.  u.  938) 

ously,  could  he  have  accomplished  aught  by  reason  of 
his  luxurious  living  and  inexperience.] 

And  the  Csesarians,  having  got  rid  of  this  man,  with 
Oleander  at  their  head  entered  upon  every  form  of  out- 
rage, selling  all  privileges,  doing  violence,  plunging 
into  licentiousness. 

Commodus  during  most  of  his  life  was  given  to  idle- 
ness and  horses  and  battles  of  beasts  and  of  men. 
Aside  from  his  performances  at  home  he  despatched 
many  beasts  in  public  and  many  men  on  many  occa- 
sions. With  his  own  hands  and  without  assistance  he 
gave  the  finishing  stroke  to  five  hippopotami  at  one  time 
and  to  two  elephants  on  separate  days.  Moreover,  he 
killed  rhinoceroses  and  a  camelopard.  This  is  what 
I  have  to  say  in  general  with  reference  to  his  whole 
career. 
—  11—  To  Victorinus,  prefect  of  the  city,  a  statue  was 
granted  [He  died  not  as  the  victim  of  a  plot.  At 
one  time  what  might  be  called  a  loud  rumor  and  many 
reports  were  circulating  in  regard  to  his  destruction] 
and,  though  Commodus  frequently  wished  to  get  him 
out  of  the  way,  he  still  kept  putting  it  off  and  shrinking 
from  the  deed  until  the  man  grew  very  bold,  and  one 
day  approaching  Perennis  said:  "I  hear  that  you  wish 
to  kill  me.  Why  then  do  you  delay?  Why  do  you  put 
it  off,  when  you  might  do  it  this  very  day?  "  [But  not 
even  this  caused  him  to  suffer  any  harm  at  the  hands 
of  any  one  else;  it  was  a  self-sought  death  that  he 
suffered,  and  the  fact  seems  strange,  inasmuch  as  he 
had  been  honored  among  the  foremost  men  by  Marcus 

290 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  in  mental  excellence  and  forensic  eloquence  stood  ,^-  ^-  i^s 

^  (o.  «.  938) 

second  to  none  of  his  contemporaries.  Indeed,  by 
mentioning  two  incidents  in  his  history  I  shall  reveal 
his  whole  character.] 

Once,  when  he  was  governor  of  Germany,  he  at  first 
attempted  by  private  persuasion  indoors  to  induce 
his  lieutenant  not  to  accept  bribes.  As  the  latter 
would  not  listen  to  him,  he  mounted  the  tribunal  and 
[after  bidding  the  herald  proclaim  him]  took  oath  that 
he  had  never  received  bribes  and  never  would  receive 
any.  Next  he  bade  his  under-officer  also  take  oath; 
and  when  this  person  refused  to  perjure  himself,  he 
ordered  him  to  be  dismissed  from  office.  [And  later 
as  commandant  of  Africa  he  had  an  associate  of  sim- 
ilar character  to  the  man  just  mentioned.  He  did  not, 
to  be  sure,  treat  him  in  the  same  way,  but  put  him 
aboard  a  boat  and  sent  him  back  to  Rome.]  This  is 
the  kind  of  man  Victorinus  was. 

As  for  Cleander,  who  after  Perennis  possessed  —12  — 
greatest  influence,  he  had  been  sold  along  with  his 
fellow-slaves  and  had  been  brought  to  Rome  along 
with  them  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  burdens.  As 
time  went  on  he  attained  such  prominence  that  he  slept 
before  the  chamber  of  Commodus,  married  the  em- 
peror's concubine  Damostratia,  and  put  to  death 
Saoterus  of  Nicomedea  (who  had  held  the  position  be- 
fore him)  besides  many  others.  Yet  this  victim  had 
also  possessed  very  great  influence,  so  that  the  Nico- 
medeans  obtained  from  the  senate  the  right  of  holding 
a  series  of  games  and  of  building  a  temple  to  Corn- 
modus.    At  any  rate,  Cleander,  raised  to  greatness  by; 

291 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

1^'  ^'q^q\  ^^^  power  of  Fortune,  granted  and  sold  senatorships, 
praetorships,  procuratorships,  leaderships,— in  a  word, 
everything.  _  Some  by  expending  all  that  they  possessed 
had  finally  become  senators.  It  came  to  be  said  of 
Julius  Solon  (an  exceedingly  obscure  man)  that  he  had 
been  deprived  of  his  property  and  banished  to  the 

A.  D.  189    senate.     Not  only  did  Oleander  do  this,  but  he  ap- 

(a.  tt.  942)  ,  -^  . 

pointed  twenty-five  consuls  for  one  year,—  something 
which  never  occurred  before  or  after.  One  of  those 
consuls  was  Severus,  who  later  became  emperor.  The 
man  obtained  money,  therefore,  from  every  quarter 
and  amassed  more  wealth  than  had  ever  yet  belonged 
to  those  nominated  cubicularii.  A  great  deal  of  it  he 
gave  to  Commodus  and  his  concubines  and  a  great  deal 
of  it  he  spent  on  houses,  baths,  and  other  works  useful 
to  individuals  and  to  cities. 

This  Oleander,  who  had  soared  to  so  exalted,  a 
height,  himself  fell  suddenly  and  perished  in  dishonor. 
It  was  not  the  soldiers  that  killed  him,  as  they  had 
Perennis,  but  the  popula<ie.  There  occurred  a  real 
and  pressing  famine,  which  was  increased  to  the  ut- 
most severity  by  Papirius  Dionysius,  the  grain  com- 
missioner, in  order  that  Oleander,  whose  thefts  would 
seem  as  much  responsible  for  it  as  any  cause,  might 
both  incur  hatred  and  suffer  destruction  at  the  hands 
of  the  Romans.  So  it  fell  out.  There  was  a  horse-race 
on,  and  as  the  horses  were  about  to  contend  for  the 
seventh  time  a  crowd  of  children  ran  into  the  race 
course,  at  their  head  a  tall  and  sturdy  maiden.  As  a 
result  of  what  subsequently  happened  she  was  deemed 

292 


—  13  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

by  people  to  have  been  a  divinity.  The  children  shouted  ^-  '^-  ^^^ 
many  wild  words  of  complaint,  which  the  people  took 
np  again  and  began  to  bawl  anything  that  came  into 
their  heads.  Finally,  the  throng  jumped  down  and 
started  to  find  Commodus  (who  was  then  in  the  Quin- 
tilian  suburb),  invoking  many  blessings  on  his  head 
but  many  curses  upon  Oleander.  The  latter  sent 
some  soldiers  against  them,  who  wounded  and  killed  a 
few,  but  encouraged  by  their  numbers  and  the  strength 
of  the  Pretorians  they  became  still  more  urgent.  They 
drew  near  to  Commodus  before  information  reached 
him  from  any  source  of  what  was  going  on.  Then  the 
famous  Marcia,  wife  of  Quadratus,  brought  him  the 
news.  And  Commodus  was  so  terrified,—  he  was 
always  the  veriest  coward,—  that  he  at  once  ordered 
Cleander  to  be  slain  and  also  his  child,  who  was  in 
Commodus 's  hands  to  be  reared.  The  child  was  dashed 
to  the  earth  and  perished,  and  the  Romans,  taking  the 
body  of  Cleander,  dragged  it  away  and  abused  it  and 
carried  his  head  all  about  the  city  on  a  pole.  They  also 
wounded  some  other  men  who  had  possessed  great 
power  during  his  ascendancy. 

Commodus,  taking  a  respite  from  his  lusts  and 
sports,  developed  a  taste  for  blood  and  proceeded  to 
compass  the  death  of  distinguished  men.  Among  these 
was  Julianus  the  prefect,  whom  he  used  to  embrace  and 
caress  in  public  and  saluted  as  * '  father. ' '  Another 
was  Julius  Alexander,  who  was  executed  for  having 
brought  down  a  lion  by  a  lucky  cast  of  his  javelin  while 
on  horseback.^     This  victim,  on  becoming  aware  of  the 

1  Boissevain   suggests  that  the   "  Roman  Hercules "   perhaps  feared 
that  Alexander  might  diminish  his  glory, 

293 


—  14  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  189    presence  of  his  assassins,  murdered  them  by  night  and 

(a.  u.  942)     ^  ,  '  .  . 

likewise  put  out  of  the  way  all  his  own  enemies  at 
Emesa,  his  native  town.  After  doing  this  he  mounted 
a  horse  and  started  toward  the  barbarians;  and  he 
would  have  escaped,  had  he  not  carried  a  favorite 
along  with  him.  He  was  himself  a  most  excellent 
horseman,  but  he  would  not  think  of  abandoning  the 
lad,  who  was  tired  out,  and  so  when  he  was  being  over- 
taken he  killed  both  the  boy  and  himself.  Dionysius, 
too,  the  grain  commissioner,  met  his  death  by  the 
orders  of  Commodus. 

Moreover,  a  pestilence,  as  great  as  any  I  know,  took 
place,  for  it  should  be  noted  that  two  thousand  persons 
several  times  died  in  Rome  on  a  single  day.  Many 
more,  not  merely  in  the  capital  but  throughout  almost 
the  entire  empire,  perished  by  the  hands  of  scoundrels, 
who  smeared  some  deadly  drugs  on  tiny  needles,  and, 
for  pay,  infected  men  with  the  poison  by  means  of  these 
instruments.  The  same  thing  had  happened  before  in 
the  reign  of  Domitian.^  '  But  the  death  of  these  unfor- 
tunates was  not  regarded  as  of  any  importance. 
—  15—         Still,  the  effect  of  Commodus  upon  the  Romans  was 

A.  D.  190  . 

(o.  u.  943)  worse  than  that  of  all  pestilences  and  all  villanies. 
One  feature  was  that  whatever  honors  they  were  wont 
to  vote  to  his  father  out  of  pure  regard  they  were  com- 
pelled by  fear  and  by  strict  injunction  to  assign  also 
to  the  son.  He  gave  orders  that  Rome  itself  be  called 
Commodiana,  the  legions  ' '  Commodian, ' '  and  the  day 
on  which  this  measure  was  voted  *'  Commodiana," 

1  See  Book  Sixty-seven,  chapter  11. 

294 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

Upon  himself  he  bestowed,  in  addition  to  very  many   -'^-  ^-  }f2. 

^  '  *^  *^    (a.  M.  943) 

other  titles,  that  of  Hercules.  Kome  he  termed  '^  the 
Immortal, "  ' '  the  Fortunate, "  ' '  the  Universal  Colony 
of  the  Earth  "  (for  he  wished  it  to  seem  a  settlement 
of  his  own).  In  his  honor  a  gold  statue  was  erected 
of  a  thousand  pounds'  weight,  together  with  a  bull  and 
a  cow.  Finally,  all  the  months  were  likewise  called 
after  him,  so  that  they  were  enumerated  as  follows: 
Amazonian,  Invincible,  Fortunate,  Pious,  Lucius, 
^lius,  Aurelius,  Commodus,  August,  Herculean, 
Roman,  Transcendent.  For  he  had  assumed  these 
different  names  at  different  times.  ''Amazonian'* 
and  ' '  Transcendent, ' '  however,  he  applied  exclusively 
to  himself,  to  indicate  that  in  absolutely  every  respect 
he  unapproachably  surpassed  all  mankind.  So  ex- 
travagantly did  the  wretch  rave.  And  fo  the  senate  he 
would  send  a  despatch  couched  in  these  terms: 
'*  Caesar  Imperator,  Lucius  ^lius  Aurelius  Commo- 
dus, Augustus,  Pius,  Beatus,  Sarmaticus,  Germanicus, 
Maximus,  Britannicus,  Peacemaker  of  the  World, 
Invincible,  Roman  Hercules,  High  Priest,  Holder  of 
Tribunician  Authority  for  the  eighteenth  term,  Impera- 
tor for  the  eighth  time.  Consul  for  the  seventh  time, 
Father  of  the  Fatherland,  to  consuls,  praetors, 

tribunes  and  the  Commodian  Fortunate  Senate,  Greet- 
ing." Great  numbers  of  statues  were  erected  display- 
ing him  in  the  garb  of  Hercules.  And  it  was  voted 
that  his  age  should  be  called  the  ' '  Golden  Age  ' '  and 
that  entries  to  correspond  with  this  should  in  every 
case  be  made  in  the  records. 

295 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

— ^6~  Now  this  Golden  One,  this  Hercules,  this  God  (such 
(a.  «.  943)  was  another  designation  of  his)  one  day  in  the  after- 
noon rode  suddenly  from  the  suburbs  with  haste  into 
Rome  and  conducted  thirty  horse-races  in  two  hours. 
These  proceedings  had  much  to  do  with  his  running 
short  of  money.  He  was  also  fond  of  bestowing  gifts 
and  frequently  presented  the  populace  with  one  hun- 
dred and  forty  denarii  apiece.  But  most  of  his  expendi- 
tures were  for  the  objects  that  I  have  mentioned.  [So  it 
was  that  neither  his  general  income  nor  what  was  pro- 
vided by  Oleander  (though  incalculable  in  amount) 
sufficed  him,  and  he  was  compelled  to  bring  charges 
against  both  women  and  men,—  charges  not  serious 
enough  for  capital  punishment  but  prolific  in  threats 
and  terror.]  Some  of  these  persons  he  murdered,  to 
others  he  sold  preservation  in  return  for  their  prop- 
erty [and  got  something  from  them  by  constraint  under 
the  pretence  that  it  was  a  voluntary  offering].  And 
finally  on  his  birthday  he  ordered  us,  our  wives,  and 
our  children  each  to  contribute  two  aurei  [a  year  as] 
a  kind  of  first-fruits,  and  the  senators  in  all  the  other 
cities  five  denarii  per  head.  [Of  this,  too,  he  saved  not 
the  smallest  part,  but  spent  it  all  disgracefully  on 
—  ^'^—  beasts  and  gladiators.]  In  public  he  nowhere  drove 
(a.  u.  945)  chariots  except  sometimes  on  a  moonless  night.  He 
became  very  desirous  to  play  the  character  also  in  pub- 
lic, but,  being  ashamed  to  be  seen  doing  this,  he  kept  it 
up  constantly  at  home,  wearing  the  Green  uniform. 
Beasts,  moreover,  in  large  numbers  were  slaughtered 
at  his  house  and  many  also  in  public.  Again,  he  would 

296 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

contend  as  srladiator:  (at  home  he  killed  a  man  in  this  ,A-  ^- }f^, 

.  »(«••«•  945) 

way,  and,  in  pretending  to  shave  others,  mstead  of 
taking  off  the  hairs  he  sliced  oif  one  man's  nose,  an- 
other's ears,  and  some  other  feature  of  a  third;)  but 
in  public  his  contests  were^  minus  the  steel  and  human 
blood.  Before  entering  the  theatre  he  would  put  on 
a  cleeved  tonic  of  silk,  white  interwoven  with  gold,  and 
we  greeted  him  standing  there  in  this  attire.  When  he 
actually  went  in  he  donned  a  pure  purple  dress 
sprinkled  with  gold,  assuming  also  a  similar  chlamys 
of  Greek  pattern  and  a  crown  made  of  Indic  gems  and 
gold,  and  carried  such  a  herald's  staff  as  Mercury  does. 
The  lion  skin  and  club  were  carried  before  him  along 
the  streets,  and  at  the  theatres  were  invariably  placed 
on  a  gilded  chair,  whether  he  was  present  or  absent. 
He  himself  would  enter  the  theatre  in  the  garb  of 
Mercury,  and  casting  off  everything  else  begin  his  per- 
formance in  simple  tunic  and  unshod.  On  the  first  day 
he  individually  killed  a  hundred  bears  by  shooting 
down  at  them  from  the  top  of  the  elevated  circle.  The 
whole  theatre  had  been  divided  up  by  some  diameters 
built  in,  which  supported  a  circular  roof  and  intersected 
each  other,  the  object  being  that  the  beasts,  divided! 
into  four  herds,  might  be  more  easily  speared  at  short 
range  from  any  point.  In  the  midst  of  the  struggle  he 
grew  weary,  and  taking  from  a  woman  some  sweet 
wine  cooled  in  a  club-shaped  cup  drank  it  down  at  a 
gulp.  At  this  both  the  populace  and  we  on  the  instant 
all  shouted  this  phrase,  common  at  drinking  bouts: 
* '  Long  life  to  you ! " 

Let  no  one  think  that  I  sully  the  dignity  of  history 

1  It  is  just  barely  possible  that  the  original  gave  some  different  idea 
from  "his  contests  were"   (cp.  the  text  of  BoissSe). 

297 


—  18  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

A.  D.  192    in  noting  down  such  liappeninffs-.    In  general  I  should 

(a.  M.  945)  X  X  o  o 

have  preferred  not  to  mention  it,  but  since  it  was  one 
of  the  emperor 's  acts  and  I  was  mj^self  present,  taking 
part  in  everything  seen  and  heard  and  spoken,  I  have 
judged  it  proper  to  suppress  none  of  the  details,  hut 
to  hand  them  down  to  the  attention  of  those  who  shall 
live  hereafter,  just  as  I  should  do  in  the  case  of  any- 
thing else  especially  great  and  important.  And,  in- 
deed, all  the  remaining  events  that  took  place  in  my 
lifetime  I  shall  polish  and  elaborate  more  than  earlier 
occurrences  for  the  reason  that  my  evidence  is  that  of 
a  contemporary  and  I  know  no  one  else  who  has  my 
ability  at  reducing  notable  things  to  writing  that  has 
studied  them  so  exhaustively  as  I. 
— 19  —  It  was  on  the  first  day,  then,  that  this  took  place.  On 
the  others  he  frequently  went  down  from  the  raised 
section  to  the  bottom  of  the  circle  and  slaughtered  all 
the  tame  animals  that  he  approached,  some  of  them 
also  being  led  to  him  or  brought  before  him  in  nets. 
He  also  killed  a  tiger,  a  hippopotamus,  and  an  ele- 
phant. After  accomplishing  this,  he  retired,  but  at  the 
conclusion  of  breakfast  fought  again  as  a  gladiator. 
The  form  of  fighting  which  he  practiced  and  the  armor 
which  he  used  was  that  pertaining  to  the  so-called 
secutor:  in  his  right  hand  he  held  the  shield  and  in  his 
left  the  wooden  sword.  He  prided  himself  very 
greatly  upon  being  left-handed.  His  antagonist  ^ould 
be  some  professional  athlete,  or,  perhaps,  gladiator, 
with  a  cane;  this  was  sometimes  a  man  that  the  em- 
peror himself  challenged  and  sometimes  one  that  the 
people  chose.  In  this  and  other  matters  he  acted  the 
same  way  as  the  other  gladiators,  except  that  they  go 

298 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

in  for  a  very  small  sum,  whereas  Commodus  had  ,-^-  ^-^^^ 

.  t.  .  .  (a.  «.  945) 

twenty-five  myriads  from  the  gladiatorial  fund  given 
him  each  day.  There  stood  beside  him  during  the  con- 
test ^milius  Lastus,  the  prefect,  and  Eclectus,  his 
cubicularius.  He  went  through  a  skirmish,  and,  of 
course,  conquered,  and  then,  just  as  he  was,  he  kissed 
them^  with  his  helmet  on.  After  this  the  rest  did  some 
fighting.—  The  first  day  he  personally  paired  all  the 
combatants,  either  down  below,  where  he  wore  all  the 
attire  of  Mercury,  including  a  gilded  wand,  or  else 
from  his  place  on  the  elevated  platform ;  and  we  took 
his  proceeding  as  an  omen.  Later  he  ascended  his  cus- 
tomary seat  and  from  that  point  viewed  the  remainder 
of  the  spectacle  with  us.  Nothing  more  was  done  that 
resembled  child's  play,  but  great  numbers  of  men  were 
killed.  At  one  place  somebody  delayed  about  slaying 
and  he  fastened  the  various  opponents  together  and 
bade  them  all  fight  at  once.  At  that  the  men  so  bound 
struggled  one  against  another  and  some  killed  those 
who  did  not  belong  to  their  group,  since  the  numbers 
and  the  limited  space  had  brought  them  into  proximity. 

That  spectacle  as  here  described  lasted  fourteen  —20  — 
days.  While  the  contests  were  going  on  we  senators 
invariably  attended,  along  with  the  knights,  save  that 
Claudius  Pompeianus  the  elder  never  appeared,  but 
sent  his  sons,  remaining  away  himself.  He  chose 
rather  to  be  put  to  death  for  this  than  to  behold  the 
child  of  Marcus  as  emperor  conducting  himself  so.— 
Besides  all  the  rest  that  we  did,  we  shouted  whatever 
we  were  bidden  and  this  sentence  continuously : '  *  Thou 
art  lord,  and  thou  art  foremost,  of  all  most  fortunate : 

1  Supplying  oyy  (after  Keimar). 

299 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  192    thou  dost  conquer,  thou  shalt  conquer ;  from  everlast- 

(o.  u.  945)     .  . 

ing,  Amazonian,  thou  dost  conquer!  " 

Of  the  rest  of  the  people  many  did  not  even  enter  the 
theatre  and  some  managed  to  steal  out  quietly,  for  they 
were  partly  ashamed  of  what  was  being  done  and 
partly  afraid.  A  story  was  current  that  he  would  like 
to  shoot  a  few  of  them  as  Hercules  had  the  Stympha- 
lian  birds.  This  story  was  believed,  too,  because  once 
he  had  gathered  all  the  men  in  the  city  who  by  disease 
or  some  other  calamity  had  lost  their  feet,  had  fastened 
some  dragon's  extremities  about  their  knees,  and  after 
giving  them  sponges  to  throw  instead  of  stones  had 
killed  them  with  blows  of  a  club,  on  the  pretence  that 
they  were  giants. 
—21—  This  fear  was  shared  by  all,  both  us  and  the  rest. 
Here  is  another  way  in  which  he  menaced  us  sena- 
tors,— an  act  which  he  certainly  expected  would  be 
the  death  of  us.  He  had  killed  an  ostrich,  and  cutting 
off  its  head  he  came  toward  where  we  were  sitting.  In 
his  left  hand  he  held  the  spoils  and  in  the  right 
stretched  aloft  his  bloody  sword.  He  spoke  not  a 
word,  but  with  a  grin  wagged  his  head  to  and  fro,  in- 
timating that  he  would  subject  us  to  this  same  treat- 
ment. And  many  on  the  spot  would  have  perished  by 
the  sword  for  laughing  at  him  (for  it  was  laughter  and 
not  grief  that  overcame  us),  had  I  not  myself  chewed 
a  laurel  leaf,  which  I  got  from  my  garland,  and  brought 
the  rest  who  were  sitting  near  me  to  munch  similar 
sprigs,  so  that  in  the  constant  motion  of  our  jaws  we 
might  conceal  the  fact  that  we  were  laughing.  After 
this  occurrence  he  raised  our  spirits,  since  before  fight- 
ing again  as  a  gladiator  he  bade  us  enter  the  theatre 

300 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

in  the  equestrian  garb  and  with  woolen  cloaks.  (This  ^-  ^'  192 
was  something  we  never  do  when  going  into  the  theatre 
unless  some  emperor  has  passed  away.)  And  on  the 
last  day  his  helmet  was  carried  out  by  the  gates 
through  which  the  dead  are  taken  out.  That  made  us 
all  without  exception  think  that  he  was  surely  about  to 
meet  his  end  in  some  way. 

And  he  did  die  (or  rather  was  despatched)  before  a  —22  — 
great  while,  Laetus  and  Eclectus,  displeased  at  the 
way  he  acted,  and  moreover  filled  with  fear  at  the 
threats  he  uttered  against  them  when  he  was  checked 
in  any  of  his  whims,  formed  a  plot  against  him.  Com- 
modus  was  anxious  to  slay  both  the  consuls  (Erucius 
Clarus  and  Sosius  Falco)  and  on  the  first  of  the  month 
to  issue  as  consul  and  secutor  at  once  from  the  place 
where  the  gladiators  are  kept.  He  had  the  first  cell  in 
their  quarters,  as  if  he  were  one  of  them.  Let  no  one 
be  incredulous  about  this,  for  he  even  cut  off  the  head 
of  the  Colossus  and  put  one  of  his  own  there  instead ; 
and  then,  having  given  it  a  club  and  placed  a  bronze 
lion  at  its  feet  so  as  to  make  it  look  like  Hercules,  he 
inscribed,  besides  the  titles  that  belonged  to  him,  also 
this  sentence:  *'  First  of  secutors  to  engage;  the  only 
left-handed  fighter  that  has  conquered  twelve  times  "— 
I  think  it  is  — '^a  thousand.'* 

was  written  by  Lucius  Commodus  Hercules, 

and  upon  it  was  inscribed  the  well-known  couplet,  viz. : 

"  Hercules  I,  Jove's  son.  Lord  of  Fair  Fame^ 
Not  Lucius,  howsoe'er  constrained  thereto." 

For  these  reasons  Laetus  and  Eclectus,  making  Mar- 
cia  their  confidante,  attacked  him.  At  night  on  the  last 
day  of  the  year,  when  people  were  busy  with  merry- 

301 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  192    making,  they  had  Marcia  administer  poison  to  him  in 

(o.  u.  945)  o7  ^  ^ 

cooked  beef.     The  wine  he  had  consumed  and  his 
always  immoderate  use  of  the  baths  kept  him  from 
succumbing   at   once,    and  instead  he  vomited;   this 
caused  him  to  suspect  the  attempt  and  he  uttered  some 
threats.    Then  they  sent  Narcissus,  an  athlete,  to  him 
and  had  this  man  strangle  him  in  the  midst  of  a  bath. 
This  was  the  end  that  Commodus  met  after  ruling 
twelve  years,  nine  months,  and  fourteen  days.    He  had 
lived  thirty-one  years  and  four  months,  and  with  him 
the  imperial  house  of  the  true  Aurelii  ceased. 
—  23  —         After  this  there  occurred  most  violent  wars  and  fac- 
tional disturbances.     The  compilation  of  facts  in  this 
work  of  mine  has  been  due  to  the  following  chance.    I 
had  written  and  published  a  book  about  the  dreams  and 
signs  which  caused  Severus  to  expect  the  imperial 
power;  and  he,  happening  to  look  at  a  copy  that  was 
sent  him  by  me,  wrote  me  a  long  and  complimentary 
acknowledgment.    This  letter  I  received  about  night- 
fall and  soon  after  went  to  sleep.    And  in  my  slumbers 
Heaven  commanded  me  that  a  history  be  written.     So 
it  came  about  that  I  wrote  the  narrative  with  which  I 
am  at  this  moment  concerned.    And  because  it  pleased 
Severus  himself  and  other  people  very  much,  I  then 
conceived  a  desire  to  compile  a  record  of  all  other  mat- 
ters of  Eoman  interest.    Therefore  I  decided  no  longer 
to  leave  that  treatise  as  a  separate  composition,  but  to 
incorporate  it  in  this  present  history,  in  order  that  in 
one  undertaking  I  might  write  positively  everything 
from  the  beginning  as  far  as  Fortune  sees  j5t  to  permit. 

302 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

I  have  obtained  this  goddess,  it  appears,  as  the  guide  A-  J-  g^^v 
of  the  conduct  of  my  life,  and  therefore  I  am  depend- 
ent on  her  entirely :  she  gives  me  strength  for  my  his- 
torical research  when  I  am  respectful  and  subdued 
before  her,  and  wins  me  back  to  work  by  means  of 
dreams  when  I  am  discouraged  and  give  up  the  task: 
she  grants  me  delightful  hopes  in  regard  to  the  future, 
that  time  will  allow  this  history  to  survive  and  never 
let  its  brightness  be  dimmed.  To  gather  an  account  of 
everything  done  by  the  Romans  from  the  beginning 
until  the  death  of  Severus  has  taken  me  ten  years,  and 
to  arrange  it  in  literary  form  twelve  years  more.  The 
rest  will  be  written  as  opportunity  offers. 

Prior  to  the  death  of  Commodus  there  were  the  f ol-  —al- 
lowing signs.  Many  ill-boding  eagles  wandered  about 
the  Capitol  uttering  cries  that  portended  naught  of 
peace,  and  an  owl  hooted  there.  A  fire,  starting  by  («.'  «.'  944) 
night  in  some  dwelling,  laid  hold  of  the  temple  of 
Peace  and  spread  to  the  stores  of  Egyptian  and 
Arabian  wares :  then,  leaping  to  a  great  height,  it  en- 
tered the  palace  and  burned  a  very  large  portion  of  it, 
so  that  the  documents  belonging  to  the  empire  almost 
all  perished.  This  as  much  as  anything  made  it  clear 
that  the  injury  would  not  stop  in  the  City  but  extend 
over  the  entire  civilized  world.  The  conflagration 
could  not  be  extinguished  by  human  hands,  although 
great  numbers  of  civilians  and  great  numbers  &f  sol- 
diers were  carrying  water  and  Commodus  himself  came 
from  the  suburbs  to  cheer  them  on.  Only  after  it  had 
destroyed  everything  on  which  it  had  fastened  did  it 
spend  its  force  and  reach  a  limit. 


303 


DIO'S 

ROMAN  HISTORY 

74 


TOL.  5  —  20  305 


P«rtinax,  through  the  agency  of  Eclectiifl  and  Iatu«,  is  cre- 
ated emperor  by  the  soldiers  and  by  the  senate  (chapter  1). 

Commodus  is  declared  an  enemy  and  is  made  a  subject  for 
jest  (chapter  2). 

Kindness  of  Fertinax  toward  Fompeianus,  Glabrio,  and  the 
senators  (chapter  3). 

Omens  portending  supreme  power  for  him  (chapter  4) . 

Fertinax  reforms  pernicious  practices:  he  sells  Gommodus's 
apparatus  of  licentiousness  (chapter  5,  6). 

His  moderation  with  regard  to  his  own  family  (chapter  7) . 

At  the  instigation  of  Lsetus  Falco  the  consul  is  slated  for 
emperor  (chapter  8). 

Death  of  Fertinax  Augustus  (chapter  9,  10). 

Flavins  Sulpicianus  and  Julianus  strive  in  outbidding  each 
other  for  the  sovereignty  (chapter  11). 

Julianus  is  made  emperor  contrary  to  the  wishes  of  the  senate 
and  the  Roman  people  (chapters  12,  13). 

About  the  three  leaders,  Severus,  Niger,  Albinus  (chapter  14) . 

Severus  forms  an  alliance  with  Albinus  and  proceeds  against 
Julianus  (chapter  16). 

Julianus,  in  the  midst  of  laughable  preparations,  is  killed  by 
order  of  the  senate  (chapters  16,  17). 

DURATION  OF  TIME,  five  months  (from  the  Calends  of  Janu- 
ary to  the  Calends  of  June),  in  which  the  following;  were 
consuls: 

1.  Quintus  Sosius  Falco,  C.  Erucius  Clams. 

2.  Flavins  Sulpicianus,  Fabius  Gilo  Septiminus  (from  the 
Calends  of  March) . 

3.  Silius  Kessala  (from  the  Calends  of  May).  (A.  D.  193 
=3  a.  u.  946.) 


(BOOK  7 J^.  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Pertinax  was  one  of  those  men  to  whom  no  exception  ~^  "qj 
can  be  taken,  but  he  ruled  only  for  an  exceedingly  brief  (»•  «•  9*6) 
space  of  time  and  was  then  put  out  of  the  way  by  the 
soldiers.  While  the  fate  of  Commodus  was  still  a 
secret  the  party  of  Eclectus  and  Lsetus  came  to  him  and 
acknowledged^  what  had  been  done.  On  account  of  his 
excellence  and  reputation  they  were  glad  to  select  him. 
He,  after  seeing  them  and  hearing  their  story,  sent  his 
most  trustworthy  comrade  to  view  the  body  of  Com- 
modus. When  the  man  confirmed  the  report  of  the 
act,  he  was  then  conveyed  secretly  into  the  camp  and 
caused  the  soldiers  consternation;  but  through  the 
presence  of  the  adherents  of  Lastus  and  by  means  of 
promises^  to  give  them  three  thousand  denarii  per  man, 
he  won  them  over.  They  would  certainly  have  re- 
mained content,  had  he  not  phrased  the  conclusion  of 
his  speech  somewhat  as  follows : '  ^  There  are  many  un- 
pleasant features,  fellow-soldiers,  in  the  present  sit- 
uation, but  the  rest  with  your  help  shall  be  set  right 
again.'*  On  hearing  this  they  took  occasion  to  suspect 
that  all  the  irregular  privileges  granted  them  by  Com- 
modus would  be  abolished.  Though  irritated,  they 
nevertheless  remained  quiet,  concealing  their  anger. 

On  leaving  the  fortifications  he  came  to  the  senate- 
house  while  it  was  still  night,  and  after  greeting  us  (so 
far  as  a  man  might  approach  him  in  the  midst  of  such 
a  jostling  throng)  he  said  in  an  impromptu  way:  *'  I 

1  Reading  iiii^voaav     (Dindorf,  after  H.  Stephanus). 
a  Reading  km^yytikaTo  (Dindorf,  after  Bekker). 

307 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  193  liave  been  named  emperor  by  the  soldiers;  however,  I 
don't  desire  the  office  and  am  going  to  resign  it  this 
very  day  because  of  my  age  and  health  and  the  unpleas- 
ant condition  of  affairs."  This  was  no  sooner  said 
than  we  gave  the  selection  our  genuine  approbation 
and  chose  him  in  very  truth ;  for  he  was  noble  in  spirit 
and  strong  in  body,  except  that  he  walked  a  little  lame. 
—  2—  In  this  way  was  Pertinax  declared  emperor  and 
Commodus  an  enemy,  while  both  senate  and  people  de- 
nounced the  latter  long  and  savagely.  They  desired  to 
hale  away  his  body  and  tear  it  limb  from  limb,  as  they 
did  his  images ;  but,  when  Pertinax  told  them  that  the 
corpse  had  already  been  interred,  they  spared  his  re- 
mains but  glutted  their  rage  on  his  representations, 
calling  him  all  sorts  of  names.  But ''  Commodus  "  or 
*  *  emperor  ' '  were  two  that  no  one  applied  to  him.  In 
stead,  they  termed  him  * '  wretch  ' '  and  ' '  tyrant, ' '  add- 
ing in  jest  titles  like  **  the  gladiator,"  "the  char- 
ioteer, "  '  *  the  left-handed, "  "  the  ruptured  man. ' '  To 
the  senators,  who  had  been  excited  most  by  fear  of 
Commodus,  the  crowd  called  out :  '  *  Huzza,  huzza,  you 
are  saved,  you  have  conquered !  ' '  All  the  shouts  that 
Ihey  had  been  accustomed  to  raise  with  a  kind  of 
rhythmic  swing  to  pay  court  to  Commodus  in  the 
theatres  they  now  chanted  metamorphosed  into  the 
most  ridiculous  nonsense.  Since  they  had  got  rid  of  one 
ruler,  and  as  yet  had  nothing  to  fear  from  his  suc- 
cessor, they  made  the  most  of  their  freedom  in  the 
intervening  time  and  secured  a  reputation  for  frank- 
ness by  their  fearlessness.  They  were  not  satisfied 
merely  to  be  relieved  of  further  terror,  but  desired  to 
jshow  their  courage  by  wanton  insolence. 

308 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Pertmax  was  a  Ligurian  from  Alba  Pompeia;  his  ^~p  "^3 
father  was  not  of  noble  birth  and  he  himself  had  just  {a-  «•  946) 
enough  literary  training  for  ordinary  needs.  Under 
these  conditions  he  had  become  an  associate  of  Claudius 
Pompeianus,  through  whose  influence  he  had  become  a 
commander  in  the  cavalry,  and  had  reached  such  a 
height  that  he  now  came  to  be  emperor  over  his  former 
friend.  And  I  at  that  time,  during  the  reign  of  Per- 
tinax,  saw  Pompeianus  for  the  first  and  last  occasion. 
He  was  wont  to  live  mostly  in  the  country  on  account 
of  Commodus  [and  very  seldom  came  down  to  the 
city],  making  his  age  and  a  disease  of  the  eyes  his 
excuse  [and  he  had  never  before,  when  I  was  present, 
entered  the  senate] .  Moreover,  after  Pertinax  he  was 
always  ill.  [During  his  reign  he  saw  and  was  well* 
and  advised.]  Pertinax  honored  him  mightily  in  every 
way  and  in  the  senate  made  him  take  the  seat  beside 
him.  [The  same  privilege  he  accorded  also  to  Acilius 
Glabrio.  This  man,  too,  at  that  period  both  heard  and 
saw.  It  was  to  these,  then,  that  he  granted  such  sur- 
passing honor.]  Toward  us  also  he  behaved  in  a  very 
sociable  way.  He  was  easy  of  access,  listened  read- 
ily to  any  one's  request,  and  cordially  answered  as  he 
thought  right.  Again,  he  gave  us  banquets  marked  by 
moderation.  Whenever  he  failed  to  invite  us,  he  would 
send  to  various  persons  various  foods,  even  the  least 
costly.  For  this  the  wealthy  and  vainglorious  made 
great  sport  of  him,  but  the  rest  of  us,  who  valued  ex- 
cellence above  debauchery,  approved  his  course. 

[Public  opinion  regarding  Pertinax  was  so  different     (—2—) 

1  Reading  e^^o)  TO   (Dindorf). 

309 


—  4  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  193    from  that  in  the  case  of  Commodus  that  those  who 
{a.  u.  946) 

heard  what  had  happened,  suspecting  that  this  story 

had  been  spread  by  Commodus  to  test  them,  in  several 
instances  (governors  of  provinces  being  particularly 
involved)  imprisoned  the  men  who  brought  the  news. 
It  was  not  that  they  did  not  wish  it  to  be  true,  but  they 
were  more  afraid  of  seeming  to  have  helped  destroy 
Commodus  than  of  not  attaching  themselves  to  Perti- 
nax.  For  under  the  latter  one  who  even  committed  an 
error  of  this  kind  might  still  breathe  freely,  but  under 
the  former  not  even  a  faultless  person  could  feel  safe.] 
While  he  was  still  in  Britain,  after  that  great  revolt 
which  he  quelled,  and  was  being  accorded  praise  on  all 
sides,  a  horse  named  Pertinax  won  a  race  at  Eome.  It 
belonged  to  the  Greens  and  was  picked  as  a  winner  by 
Commodus.  So,  when  its  partisans  raised  a  great 
shout,  proclaiming  "  It  is  Pertinax, ' '  the  others,  their 
opponents,  in  disgust  at  Commodus  likewise  prayed 
(speaking  with  reference  to  the  man,  not  the  horse) : 
' '  Would  that  it  might  be  so ! "  Later,  when  this  same 
horse  by  reason  of  age  had  given  up  racing  and  was 
in  the  country,  it  was  sent  for  by  Commodus,  who 
brought  it  into  the  hippodrome,  gilded  its  hoofs,  and 
adorned  its  back  with  a  gilded  skin.  And  people  sud- 
denly seeing  it  cried  out  again:  ''It  is  Pertinax!" 
The  very  expression  was  itself  ominous,  since  it  oc- 
curred at  the  last  horse-race  that  year,  and  immedi- 
ately after  it  the  sovereignty  passed  to  Pertinax.  A 
similar  import  was  attached  to  the  club,  for  Commodus 
when  about  to  fight  on  the  final  day  had  given  it  to 
Pertinax. 

310 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

It  was  in  tliis  way  that  Pertinax  came  into  power.  r~^T^„ 
He  obtained  all  the  proper  titles  and  a  new  one  for  (a.  u.  946) 
wishing  to  be  democratic.  That  is,  he  was  named 
Princeps  Senatus,  according  to  ancient  custom.  He  at 
once  reduced  to  order  everything  that  was  previ- 
ously irregular  and  lacking  in  discipline.  He  showed 
in  his  capacity  of  emperor  kindliness  and  uprightness, 
unimpeachable  management,  and  a  most  careful  con- 
sideration for  the  public  welfare.  Pertinax  did  every- 
thing, in  fact,  that  a  good  emperor  should  do,  and  he 
removed  the  stigma  of  disgrace  from  the  memories  of 
those  who  had  been  unjustly  put  to  death ;  moreover,  he 
took  oath  that  he  would  never  sanction  such  a  penalty. 
Immediately  some  recalled  their  relatives  and  some 
their  friends  with  tears  and  joy  at  once ;  formerly  not 
even  these  exhibitions  of  emotion  were  allowed. 
After  this  they  exhumed  the  bodies,  some  of  which 
were  found  entire  and  some  in  fragments,  according  as 
decay  and  time  had  caused  each  of  them  to  fare,  and 
they  gave  them  decent  treatment  and  deposited  them 
in  their  ancestral  tombs. 

At  this  time  the  treasury  was  suffering  from  such 
lack  of  funds  that  only  twenty-five  myriad  denarii 
could  be  found.  Pertinax  therefore  had  difficulty  in 
raising  money  from  the  images  and  the  arms,  the 
horses  and  the  trappings,  and  the  favorites  of  Corn- 
modus,  but  gave  to  the  Pretorians  all  that  he  had 
promised  and  to  the  people  one  hundred  denarii  apiece. 
All  the  articles  that  Commodus  had  gathered  by  way 
of  luxury'-  and  for  armed  combats  and  for  chariot  driv- 
ing were  exposed  in  the  auction-room,  the  principal 

311 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  193    object  sought  being  their  sale,  though  there  was  a  fur- 

(a.  u.  946) 

ther  intention  to  show  what  were  the  late  emperor's 
deeds  and  practices  and  to  ascertain  who  would  pur- 
chase such  articles. 

—  6  —  Laetus  consistently  spoke  well  of  Pertinax  and  abused 

Conunodus  [relating  all  the  latter 's  evil  deeds]. 

He^  summoned  some  barbarians  that  had  received  a 
large  sum  of  gold  coin  from  Commodus  in  return  for 
preservation  of  peace  (the  party  was  already  on  the 
road)  and  demanded  its  return,  saying:  '^  Tell  your 
people  that  Pertinax  is  ruler. ' '  The  foreigners  knew 
his  name  very  well  as  a  result  of  the  reverses  they  had 
suffered  when  he  made  a  campaign  against  them  with 
Marcus.—  Let  me  tell  you  another  similar  act  of  his 
intended  to  cast  reflections  upon  Commodus.  He  found 
that  some  filthy  clowns  and  buffoons,  disgusting  in  ap- 
pearance, with  still  more  disgusting  names  and  habits, 
had  been  made  extremely  wealthy  by  Commodus  on 
account  of  their  wantonness  and  licentiousness;  ac- 
cordingly, he  made  public  their  titles  and  the  amounts 
they  had  acquired.  The  former  caused  laughter  and 
the  latter  wrath  and  grief,  for  there  were  some  of 
them  that  possessed  just  the  sums  for  which  the 
emperor  had  slain  numbers  of  senators.  However, 
Laetus  did  not  remain  permanently  loyal  to  Pertinax,  or 
perhaps  we  might  even  say  not  for  a  moment.  Since 
he  did  not  get  what  he  wanted,  he  proceeded  to  incite 
the  soldiers  against  him  (as  will  be  related). 

_  7  —         Pertinax  appointed  as  prefect  of  the  city  his  father- 
in-law.  Flavins  Sulpicianus,  a  man  who  in  any  case  de- 

1  Pertinax  is  meant. 

312 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

served  the  position.    Yet  he  was  unwilling  to  make  his  ,^-  ^-  }^^ 

•^  .  °  ^        (a.  u.  946) 

wife  Augusta  or  his  son  Caesar,  though  we  voted  him 
permission.  He  rejected  emphatically  each  proposi- 
tion, whether  because  he  had  not  yet  firmly  rooted  his 
own  power,  or  because  he  did  not  choose  to  let  his  un- 
chaste consort  sully  the  name  of  Augusta.  As  for  his  - 
son,  who  was  still  a  child,  he  did  not  care  to  have  him 
spoiled  by  the  dignity^  and  the  hope  implied  in  the 
name  before  he  should  be  educated.  Indeed,  he  would 
not  even  bring  him  up  in  the  palace,  but  on  the  very 
first  day  of  his  sovereignty  he  put  aside  everything 
that  had  belonged  to  him  previously  and  divided  it 
between  his  children  —  he  had  also  a  daughter  —  and 
gave  orders  that  they  should  live  at  their  grandfather  *s 
house ;  there  he  visited  them  occasionally  in  the  capac- 
ity of  father  and  not  of  emperor. 

Now,  since  the  soldiers  were  no  longer  allowed  to  —  8— 
plunder  nor  the  Caesarians  to  indulge  their  licentious- 
ness, they  hated  him  bitterly.  The  Caesarians  at- 
tempted no  revolt,  because  they  were  unarmed,  but  the 
Pretorian  soldiers  and  Laetus  formed  a  plot  against 
him.  In  the  first  place  they  selected  Falco  the  consul 
for  emperor,  because  he  was  prominent  for  both  wealth 
and  family,  and  purposed  to  bring  him  to  the  camp 
while  Pertinax  was  at  the  coast  investigating  the  corn 
supply.  The  latter,  learning  of  the  plan,  returned  in 
haste  to  the  City,  and  coming  before  the  senate  said: 
*  *  You  should  not  be  ignorant.  Conscript  Fathers,  that 
though  I  found  but  twenty-five  myriad  denarii,  I  have 
distributed  as  much  to  the  soldiers  as  did  Marcus  and 

1  Reading  oyxif)  (Reimar)   for  the  MS.  8px</). 

313 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

'■^*  ^'^^^^.    Lucius,  to  whom  were  left  sixty-seven  thousand  five 

(a.  u.  946)  ' 

hundred  myriads.  It  is  the  surprising  Caesarians  who 
have  been  responsible  for  this  deficiency  of  funds." 
Pertinax  told  a  lie  when  he  said  that  he  had  bestowed 
upon  the  soldiers  an  equal  amount  with  Lucius  and 
Marcus;  for  the  one  had  given  them  about  five  thou- 
sand and  the  other  about  three  thousand  denarii  apiece. 
The  soldiers  and  the  Caesarians,  who  were  present  in 
the  senate  in  great  numbers,  became  mightily  indignant 
and  muttered  dangerously.  But  as  we  were  about  to 
condemn  Falco  [and  were  already  declaring  him  an 
enemy]  Pertinax  rose  and  cried  out:  **  Heaven  forbid 
that  any  senator,  while  I  am  ruler,  be  put  to  death  even 
for  a  just  cause  I"  [And  in  this  way  Falco 's  life  was 
saved,  and  thenceforth  he  lived  in  the  country,  pre- 
serving a  cautious  and  respectful  demeanor.] 

But  Laetus,  using  Falco  as  a  starting  point,  de- 
stroyed many  of  the  soldiers  on  the  pretence  that  the 
emperor  ordered  it.  The  rest,  when  they  became 
aware  of  it,  were  afraid  that  they  should  perish,  too, 
and  raised  a  tumult.  Two  hundred  bolder  than  their 
mates  invaded  the  palace  with  drawn  swords.  Perti- 
nax had  no  warning  of  their  approach  until  they  had 
got  upstairs.  Then  his  wife  rushed  in  and  informed 
him  what  had  happened.  On  learning  this  he  behaved 
in  a  way  which  one  may  call  noble  or  senseless  or  how- 
ever one  pleases.  For,  whereas  he  might  probably 
have  killed  his  assailants  ( since  he  had  the  night-guard 
and  the  cavalry  by  to  protect  him  and  there  were  also 
many  other  people  in  the  palace  at  the  time),  or  might 
at  any  rate  have  concealed  himself  and  made  his  es- 

314 


—  9 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

cape  to  some  place  or  other,  and  might  have  closed  r^'^^^Q) 
the  doors  of  the  palace  and  the  other  intervening 
doors,  he,  nevertheless,  adopted  neither  alternative. 
Instead,  hoping  to  awe  them  by  his  presence  and  thus 
gain  a  hearing  and  persuade  them  to  their  duty,  he 
confronted  the  approaching  band,  which  was  already 
indoors.  No  one  of  their  fellow  soldiers  had  barred  the 
way,  and  the  porters  and  other  Caesarians  so  far  from 
making  any  door  fast  had  opened  absolutely  all  the 
entrances.  The  soldiers,  seeing  him,  at  first  were  —  lo  — 
abashed,  save  one,  and  rested  their  eyes  on  the  floor 
and  began  thrusting  their  swords  back  into  their  scab- 
bards. But  the  one  exception  leaped  forward,  exclaim- 
ing :  *  *  This  sword  the  soldiers  have  sent  you, ' '  and 
forthwith  made  a  dash  at  him,  striking  him  a  blow. 
Then  his  comrades  did  not  restrain  themselves  and 
felled  their  emperor  together  with  Eclectus.  The  lat- 
ter alone  had  not  deserted  him  and  defended  him  as 
far  as  he  was  able,  even  to  the  extent  of  wounding  sev- 
eral. Wherefore  I,  who  still  earlier  believed  that  he 
had  shown  himself  a  man  of  worth,  now  thoroughly  ad- 
mired him.  The  soldiers  cut  off  the  head  of  Pertinax 
and  stuck  it  on  a  spear,  glorying  in  the  deed.  Thus 
did  Pertinax,  who  undertook  to  restore  everything  in 
a  brief  interval,  meet  his  end.  He  did  not  comprehend, 
though  a  well  trained  man  of  affairs,  that  it  is  impos- 
sible with  safety  to  reform  everything  at  once,  but  that 
the  constitution  of  a  government  requires,  if  anything 
does,  both  time  and  wisdom.  He  had  lived  sixty-seven 
years  lacking  four  months  and  three  days.  He  had 
reigned  eighty-seven  days. 

315 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

~D^  193  When  the  fate  of  Pertinax  was  reported,  some  ran  to 
(a.  u.  946)  their  homes  and  some  to  those  of  the  soldiers,  and  paid 
heed  to  their  own  safety.  It  happened  that  Sulpi- 
cianus  had  been  despatched  by  Pertinax  to  the  camp 
to  set  in  order  matters  there,  and  he  consequently 
stayed  there  and  took  action  looking  to  the  appoint- 
ment of  an  emperor.  But  there  was  a  certain  Didius 
Julianus  [of  senatorial  rank  but  eccentric  character], 
an  insatiate  money-getter  and  reckless  spender,  always 
anxious  for  a  change  in  the  government,  who  on  ac- 
count of  the  last  named  proclivity  had  been  driven  out 
by  Commodus  to  his  own  city,  Mediolanum.  He,  accord- 
ingly, on  hearing  of  the  death  of  Pertinax,  hastily  made 
his  way  to  the  camp,  and  standing  near  the  gates  of  the 
fort  made  offers  to  the  soldiers  in  regard  to  the  Eoman 
throne.  Then  ensued  a  most  disgraceful  affair  and  one 
unworthy  of  Rome.  For  just  as  is  done  in  some  market 
and  auction-room,  both  the  city  and  her  whole  empire 
were  bid  off.  The  sellers  were  the  people  who  had 
killed  their  emperor,  and  the  would-be  buyers  were 
Sulpicianus  and  Julianus,  who  vied  to  outbid  each 
other,  one  from  within,  the  other  from  without.  By 
their  increases  they  speedily  reached  the  sum  of  five 
thousand  denarii  per  man.  Some  of  the  guard  kept  re- 
porting and  saying  to  Julianus :  *  *  Sulpicianus  is  will- 
ing to  give  so  much;  now  what  will  you  add?  "  And 
again  to  Sulpicianus :  '  *  Julianus  offers  so  much ;  how 
much  more  do  you  make  it?  "  Sulpicianus  would  have 
won  the  day,  since  he  was  inside  and  was  prefect  of 
the  city  and  was  the  first  to  say  five  thousand,  had  not 
Julianus  raised  his  bid,  and  no  longer  by  small  degrees 

316 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

but  by  twelve  hundred  and  fifty  denarii  at  once,  which  ,^-  ^}^}^ 

.  ...  (a.  u.  946) 

he  offered  with  a  great  shout,  indicating  the  amo.unt 
likewise  on  his  fingers.  Captivated  by  the  difference 
and  at  the  same  time  through  fear  that  Sulpicianus 
might  avenge  Pertinax  (an  idea  that  Julianus  put  into 
their  heads)  they  received  the  highest  bidder  inside 
and  designated  him  emperor. 

So  toward  evening  the  new  ruler  turned  his  steps  —12  — 
with  speed  toward  the  Forum  and  senate-house.  He 
was  escorted  by  a  vast  number  of  Pretorians  with 
numerous  standards  as  if  prepared  for  action,  his 
object  being  to  scare  both  us  and  the  populace  and 
thereby  secure  our  allegiance.  The  soldiers  called  him 
*  *  Commodus, ' '  and  exalted  him  in  various  other  ways. 
As  the  news  was  brought  to  us  each  individually,  and 
we  ascertained  the  truth,  we  were  possessed  with  fear 
of  Julianus  and  the  soldiers,  especially  all  of  us  who 
had  .  .  .  any  favors  for  Pertinax.^  ...  I  was 
one  of  them,  for  I  had  been  honored  by  Pertinax  in 
various  ways,  owing  to  him  my  appointment  as 
praetor,  and  when  acting  as  advocate  for  others  at 
trials  I  had  frequently  proved  Julianus  in  the 
wrong  on  many  points.  Nevertheless,  we  put  in 
an  appearance,  and  partly  for  this  very  reason, 
since  it  did  not  seem  to  us  to  be  safe  to  hide  at 
home,  for  fear  that  act  in  itself  might  arouse  sus- 
picion. So  when  bath^  and  dinner  were  both  over,  we 
pushed  our  way  through  the  soldiers,  entered  the  sen- 

1  A  slight  gap  in  the  MS.,  where  we  should  perhaps  read :  "  all  of  UB 
who  had  done  anjy  favors  for  Pertinax  or  anything  to  displease 
Julianus  "   ( Bossevain ) . 

2  Reading  XeXoufiivoc   (Reiske)   for  the  MS.  dedovXuffiivoi . 

317 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

/"^'  ^'  nl^^x   ate-house,  and  heard  tlie  potentate  deliver  a  character- 

(a.  u.  946)    ^  '        ^  ^ 

istic  speecli,  in  the  course  of  which  he  said:  "  I  see 
that  you  need  a  ruler,  and  I  myself  am  better  fitted 
than  any  one  else  to  direct  you.  And  I  should  mention 
all  the  advantages  I  can  offer,  if  you  did  not  know 
them  perfectly  and  had  not  already  had  experience 
with  me.  Consequently,  I  felt  no  need  of  being  at- 
tended by  many  soldiers,  but  have  come  to  you  alone, 
that  you  may  ratify  what  has  been  given  me  by  them. ' ' 
**  I  am  here  alone  "  is  what  he  said,  when  he  had 
surrounded  the  entire  exterior  of  the  senate-house 
with  heavily  armed  men  and  had  a  number  of  soldiers 
in  the  senate-house  itself.  Moreover,  he  mentioned 
our  being  aware  what  kind  of  person  he  was,  and  made 
us  both  hate  and  fear  him. 

In  this  way  he  got  his  imperial  power  confirmed  also 
by  decrees  of  the  senate  and  returned  to  the  palace. 
Finding  the  dinner  that  had  been  prepared  for  Per- 
tinax  he  made  great  fun  of  it,  and  sending  out  to  every 
place  from  which  by  any  means  whatever  something 
expensive  could  be  procured  at  that  time  of  day  he 
satisfied  his  hunger  (the  corpse  was  still  lying  in  the 
building)  and  then  proceeded  to  amuse  himself  by 
dicing.  Among  his  companions  was  Pylades  the  dan- 
cer. The  next  day  we  went  up  to  visit  him,  feigning 
in  looks  and  behavior  much  that  we  did  not  feel,  so 
as  not  to  let  our  grief  be  detected.  The  populace, 
however,  openly  frowned  upon  the  affair,  spoke  its 
mind  as  much  at  it  pleased,  and  was  ready  to  do  what 
it  could.  Finally,  when  he  came  to  the  senate-house 
and  was  about  to  sacrifice  to  Janus  before  the  en- 

318 


—  13  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

trance,  all  bawled  out  as  if  by  preconcerted  arrange-  ^-  ^-  1^3 
ment,  terming  him  empire-plimderer  and  parricide. 
He  affected  not  to  be  angry  and  promised  them  some 
money,  whereupon  they  grew  indignant  at  the  impli- 
cation that  they  could  be  bribed  and  all  cried  out  to- 
gether :  ' '  We  don't  want  it,  we  won't  take  it !  "  The 
surrounding  buildings  echoed  back  the  shout  in  a  way 
to  make  one  shudder.  When  Julianus  had  heard  their 
response,  he  could  endure  it  no  longer,  but  ordered 
that  those  who  stood  nearest  should  be  slain.  That 
excited  the  populace  a  great  deal  more,  and  it  did  not 
cease  expressing  its  longing  for  Pertinax  or  its  abuse 
of  Julianus,  its  invocations  of  the  gods  or  its  curses 
upon  the  soldiers.  Though  many  were  wounded  and 
killed  in  many  parts  of  the  city,  they  continued  to  re- 
sist and  finally  seized  weapons  and  made  a  rush  into 
the  hippodrome.  There  they  spent  the  night  and  the  en- 
suing day  without  food  or  drink,  calling  upon  the  re- 
mainder of  the  soldiery  (especially  Pescennius  Niger 
and  his  followers  in  Syria)  with  prayers  for  assist- 
ance. Later,  feeling  the  effects  of  their  outcries  and 
fasting  and  loss  of  sleep,  they  separated  and  kept 
quiet,  awaiting  the  hoped  for  deliverance  from  abroad. 

"  I  do  not  assist  the  populace :  for  it  has  not  called  upon  me." 

Julianus  after  seizing  the  power  in  this  way  man-  _i4_ 
aged  affairs  in  a  servile  fashion,  paying  court  to  the 
senate  as  well  as  to  men  of  any  influence.  Sometimes 
he  made  offers,  againi  he  bestowed  gifts,  and  he 
laughed  and  sported  with  anybody  and  everybody.  He 
was  constantly  going  to  the  theatre  and  kept  getting 

319 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

^'  ^'}?^.    ^P  banquets:    in  fine,  he  left  nothinsr  undone  to  win 

(o.  u.  946)  ^ 

our  favor.  However,  he  was  not  trusted;  his  servility- 
was  so  ab^'ect  that  it  made  him  an  object  of  suspicion. 
Everything  out  of  the  common,  even  if  it  seems  to  be 
a  kindness  to  somebody,  is  regarded  by  men  of  sense 
as  a  trap. 

The  senate  had  at  one  time  voted  him  a  golden  statue  and  he 
refused  to  accept  it,  saying :  "  Give  me  a  bronze  one  so  that  it  may 
last;  for  I  perceive  that  the  gold  and  silver  statues  of  the  emperors 
that  ruled  before  me  have  been  torn  down,  whereas  the  bronze  ones 
remain."  In  this  he  was  not  right:  since  'tis  excellence  that  safe- 
guards the  memory  of  potentates.  And  the  bronze  statue  that  was 
bestowed  upon  him  was  torn  down  after  he  was  overthrown. 

This  was  what  went  on  in  Rome.  Now  I  shall  speak 
about  what  happened  outside  and  the  various  revo- 
lutions. There  were  three  men  at  this  time  who  were 
commanding  each  three  legions  of  citizens  and  many 
foreigners  besides,  and  they  all  asserted  their  claims, 
—  Severus,  Niger,  and  Albinus.  The  last-named  gov- 
erned Britain,  Severus  Pannonia,  and  Niger  Syria. 
These  were  the  three  persons  darkly  indicated  by  the 
three  stars  that  suddenly  came  to  view  surrounding 
the  sun,  when  Julianus  in  our  presence  was  offering 
the  Sacrifices  of  Entrance  in  front  of  the  senate-house. 
These  heavenly  bodies  were  so  very  brilliant  that  the 
soldiers  kept  continually  looking  at  them  and  pointing 
them  out  to  one  another,  declaring  moreover  that  some 
dreadful  fate  would  befall  the  usurper.  As  for  us, 
however  much  we  hoped  and  prayed  that  it  might  so 
i  prove,  yet  the  fear  of  the  moment  would  not  permit  us 
to  gaze  at  them,  save  by  occasional  glances.  Such  are 
the  facts  that  I  know  about  the  matter. 

320 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Of  the  three  leaders  that  I  have  mentioned  Severus    —  is  — 

A.  D.   193 

[was]  the  shrewdest  [in  being  able  to  foresee  the  future  (a.  «.  946) 
with  accuracy,  to  manage  present  affairs  successfully, 
to  ascertain  everything  concealed  as  well  as  if  it  had 
been  laid  bare  and  to  work  out  every  complicated  situ- 
ation with  the  greatest  ease.]  He  understood  in  ad- 
vance that  after  deposing  Julianus  the  three  would 
fall  to  blows  with  one  another  and  oif er  combat  for  the 
possession  of  the  empire,  and  therefore  determined  to 
win  over  the  rival  who  was  nearest  him.  So  he  sent  a 
letter  by  one  of  his  trusted  managers  to  Albinus,  creat- 
ing him  Caesar.  Of  Niger,  who  was  proud  of  having 
been  invoked  by  the  people,  he  had  no  hopes.  Albinus 
on  the  supposition  that  he  was  going  to  share  the  em- 
pire with  Severus  remained  where  he  was:  Severus 
made  all  strategic  points  in  Europe,  save  Byzantium, 
his  own  and  hastened  toward  Rome.  He  did  not  ven- 
ture outside  a  protecting  circle  of  weapons,  having  se- 
lected his  six  hundred  most  valiant  men  in  whose  midst 
he  passed  his  time  day  and  night;  these  did  not  once 
put  off  their  breastplates  until  they  reached  Rome. 

[This  Fulvius*  ( ?)  too,  who  when  governor  of  Africa 
had  been  tried  and  condemned  by  Pertinax  for  ras- 
cality, avarice,  and  licentiousness,  was  later  elevated 
to  the  highest  position  by  the  same  man,  now  become 
emperor,  as  a  favor  to  Severus.] 

Julianus  on  learning  the  condition  of  affairs  had  the    — 16  — 
senate  make  Severus  an  enemy  and  proceeded  to  pre^ 
pare  against  him.     [In  the  suburbs  he  constructed  a 
rampart,  wherein  he  set  gates,  that  he  might  take  up  a 

1  The  name,  so  far  as  can  be  discerned  in  the  MS.,  may  be  Fulvius 
or  Flavius  or  Fabius.  The  position  and  import  of  the  fragment  are 
alike  doubtful. 

VOL.  5—21  321 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

it  u.'m6)  P<>sition  there  outside  and  fight  from  that  base.]  The 
City  during  these  days  became  nothing  more  nor  less 
than  a  camp,  pitched,  as  it  were,  in  hostile  territory. 
There  was  great  turmoil  from  the  various  bodies  of 
those  bivouacked  and  exercising,—  men,  horses,  ele- 
phants. The  mass  of  the  population  stood  in  great 
fear  of  the  armed  men  [because  the  latter  hated  them.] 
Occasionally  laughter  would  overcome  us.  The  Pre- 
torians  did  nothing  that  was  expected  of  their  name 
and  reputation,  for  they  had  learned  to  live  delicately. 
The  men  summoned  from  the  fleet  that  lay  at  anchor 
in  Misenum  did  not  even  know  how  to  exercise.  The 
elephants  found  the  towers  oppressive  and  so  would 
not  even  carry  their  drivers  any  longer  [but  threw 
them  off  also].  What  caused  us  most  amusement  was 
his  strengthening  the  palace  with  latticed  gates  and 
strong  doors.  For,  as  it  seemed  likely  that  the  soldiers 
would  never  have  slain  Pertinax  so  easily  if  the  build- 
ing had  been  securely  fastened,  Julianus  harbored  the 
belief  that  in  case  of  defeat  he  would  be  able  to  shut 
himself  up  there  and  survive. 

Moreover,  he  put  to  death  both  Laetus  and  Marcia, 
so  that  all  the  conspirators  against  Commodus  had 
now  perished.  Later  Severus  gave  Narcissus  also  to 
the  beasts,  making  the  proclamation  (verbatim)  ; 
*'This  is  the  man  that  strangled  Commodus."  The 
emperor  likewise  killed  many  boys  for  purposes  of  en- 
chantments, thinking  that  he  could  avert  some  future 
calamities,  if  he  should  ascertain  them  in  advance. 
And  he  kept  sending  man  after  man  to  find  Severus 
and  assassinate  him.  [Vespronius  Candidus,  a  man  of 
very  distinguished  rank  but  still  more  remarkable  for 

322 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Lis  sullenness  and  boorishness,  came  near  meeting  his   a.  d.  193 
end  at  the  hands  of  the  soldiers.] 

The  avenger  had  now  reached  Italy  and  without  —17  — 
striking  a  blow  took  possession  of  Ravenna.  The  men 
whom  his  opponent  kept  sending  to  him  to  either  per- 
suade him  to  turn  back  or  else  block  his  approaches 
were  won  over.  The  Pretorians,  in  whom  Julianus  re- 
posed most  confidence,  were  becoming  worn  out  by  con- 
stant toil  and  were  getting  terribly  alarmed  at  the 
report  of  Severus's  proximity.  At  this  juncture  Juli- 
anus called  us  together  and  bade  us  vote  for  Severus 
to  be  his  colleague  in  office. 

The  soldiers  were  led  to  believe  by  communications 
from  Severus  that,  if  they  would  surrender  the  assas- 
sins of  Pertinax  and  themselves  offer  no  hostile  de- 
monstration, they  should  receive  no  harm;  therefore 
they  arrested  the  men  who  had  killed  Pertinax  and 
announced  this  very  fact  to  Silius  Messala,  the  consul. 
The  latter  assembled  us  in  the  Athenaeum,^  so  called 
from  the  fact  that  it  was  a  seat  of  educational  activity, 
and  informed  us  of  the  news  from  the  soldiers.  We 
then  sentenced  Julianus  to  death,  named  Severus  em- 
peror, and  bestowed  heroic  honors  upon  Pertinax.  So 
it  was  that  Julianus  came  to  be  slain  as  he  was  reclin- 
ing in  the  palace  itself;  he  had  only  time  to  say: 
<<  Why,  what  harm  have  I  done?  Whom  have  I 
killed?"  He  had  lived  sixty  years,  four  months,  and 
the  same  number  of  days,  out  of  which  he  had  reigned 
sixty-six  days. 

Dio,  74th  Book :  "  Men  of  intelligence  should  neither  begin  a  war 
nor  seek  to  evade  it  when  it  is  thrust  upon  them.  They  should  rather 
grant  pardon  to  him  who  voluntarily  conducts  himself  properly,  in  spite 
of  any  previous  transgression,     .     .     . 

1    Located  on  the  Capitol,  and  established  by  Hadrian. 

323 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

75 


325 


Severus  takes  vengeance  on  the  Pretorians  who  were  the 
assassins  of  Fertinax  and  enters  the  city  (chapters  1,  2). 

Prodigies  which  portended  the  sovereigfnty  to  Severus  (chap- 
ter 3). 

Faneral  procession  which  he  superintended,  in  honor  of  Perti- 
nax  (chapters  4,  5). 

War  of  Severus  Augustus  a^inst  Pescennius  Niger  (chapters 
6-9). 

The  storming  of  Byzantium  (chapters  10-14). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

Q.  Sosius  Falco,  C.  Erucius  Clarus.  (A.  D.  193  =  a.  u.  946  = 
First  of  Severus,  from  the  Calends  of  June.) 

L.  Septimius  Severus  Aug.  (II),  D.  Clodius  Septimius  Albiniu 
CfiBS.    (A.  D.  194  =  a.  u.  947  =  Second  of  Severus.) 

Scapula  TertuUus,  Tineius  Clemens.  (A.  D.  195  =  a.  u.  948 
=?  Third  of  Severus.) 

C.  Domitius  Dexter  (II),  L.  Valerius  Hessala  Friscus.  (A.  D. 
196  =  a.  n.  949  =  Fourth  of  Severus.) 


i 


(BOOK  75,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Severus  upon  becoming  emperor  in  the  manner  —  i  — 
described  punished  with  death  the  |  Pretorians  |  who 
had  contrived  the  fate  of  Pertinax.  Before  reaching 
Rome  he  summoned  those  remaining  [Pretorians] ,  sur- 
rounded them  in  a  plain  while  they  still  did  not  know 
what  was  going  to  happen  to  them,  and  having  re- 
proached them  long  and  bitterly  for  their  transgression 
against  their  emperor  he  relieved  them  of  their  arms, 
took  away  their  horses,  and  expelled  them  from  Rome. 
The  majority  reluctantly  proceeded  to  throw  away 
their  arms  and  let  their  horses  go,  and  scattered  unin- 
jured, in  their  tunics.  One  man,  as  his  horse  refused 
to  leave  him,  but  kept  following  him  and  neighing,  slew 
both  the  beast  and  himself.  To  the  spectators  it 
seemed  that  the  horse  also  was  glad  to  die. 

When  he  had  attended  to  this  matter  Severus  entered 
Rome;  he  went  as  far  as  the  gates  on  horseback  and  in 
cavalry  costume,  but  from  that  point  on  changed  to 
citizen's  garb  and  walked.  The  entire  army,  both 
infantry  and  cavalry,  in  full  armor  accompanied  him. 
The  spectacle  proved  the  most  brilliant  of  all  that  I 
have  witnessed,  for  the  whole  city  had  been  decked  with 
wreaths  of  blossoms  and  laurel  and  besides  being 
adorned  with  richly  colored  stuffs  blazed  with  lights 
and  burning  incense.  The  population,  clad  in  white 
and  jubilant,  gave  utterance  to  many  hopeful  expres- 
sions. The  soldiers  were  present,  conspicuous  by  their 
arms,  as  if  participating^  in  some  festival  procession, 

1  Reading  TzofineuovTc^   (Dindorf,  after  Bekker). 

327 


— a  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  we,  too,  were  walking  about  in  our  best  attire. 
Tlie  crowd  chafed  in  their  eagerness  to  see  him  and  to 
hear  him  say  something,  as  if  his  voice  had  been  some- 
how changed  by  his  good  fortune,  and  some  of  them 
held  one  another  up  aloft  to  get  a  look  at  him  from  a 
higher  position. 

Having  entered  in  this  style  he  began  to  make  us  rash 
promises,  such  as  the  good  emperors  of  old  had  given, 
to  the  effect  that  he  would  not  put  any  senator  to  death. 
He  not  only  took  oath  concerning  this  matter,  but  what 
was  of  greater  import  he  also  ordered  it  ratified  by 
public  decree,  and  passed  an  ordinance  that  both  the 
emperor  and  the  person  who  helped  him  in  any  such 
deed  should  be  considered  an  enemy,—  themselves  and 
also  their  children.  Yet  he  was  himself  the  first  to 
break  the  law  and  instead  of  keeping  it  caused  the 
death  of  many  persons.  Even  Julius  Solon  himself, 
who  framed  this  decree  according  to  imperial  man- 
date, was  a  little  later  murdered.  The  emperor  did 
many  things  that  were  not  to  our  liking.  [He  was 
blamed  for  making  the  city  turbulent  by  the  multitude 
of  soldiers  and  he  oppressed  the  conunonwealth  by  ex- 
cessive expenditure  of  funds :  he  was  blamed  most  of 
all  for  placing  his  hope  of  safety  in  the  strength  of  his 
army  and  not  in  the  good-will  of  his  companions.]  But 
some  found  fault  with  him  especially  because,  whereas 
it  had  been  the  custom  for  the  body-guard  to  be  drawn 
from  Italy,  Spain,  Macedonia  and  Noricum  only,—  a 
plan  which  furnished  men  more  distinguished  in  ap- 
pearance and  of  simpler  habits, —  he  had  abolished  this 
method,  [He  ruled  that  any  vacancies  should  be  filled 

328 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

from  all  the  legions  alike ;  this  he  did  with  the  idea  that 
he  should  find  them  as  a  result  more  conversant  with 
military  practices  and  should  be  setting  up  warfare  as 
a  kind  of  prize  for  the  excellent.  As  a  matter  of  fact 
he  incidentally  ruined  all  the  most  reliable  men  of  mili- 
tary age  in  Italy,  who  turned  their  attention  to  robbery 
and  gladiatorial  fighting  in  place  of  the  service  that 
had  previously  claimed  it.]  and  filled  the  city  with  a 
throng  of  motley  soldiers,  most  savage  in  appearance, 
most  terrifying  in  their  talk,  and  most  uncultured  to 
associate  with. 

The  signs  which  led  him  to  expect  the  sovereignty  —  3  — 
were  these.  When  he  had  been  registered  in  the 
senate-house,  it  seemed  to  him  in  a  vision  that  a  she- 
wolf  suckled  him,  as  was  the  case  with  Romulus.  On 
the  occasion  of  his  marrying  Julia,  Faustina,  the  wife 
of  Marcus,  prepared  their  bedchamber  in  the  temple 
of  Venus  opposite  the  palace ;  and  once,  when  he  was 
asleep,  water  gushed  from  his  hand  as  from  a  spring; 
and  when  he  w^s  governor  of  Lugdunum,  the  whole 
Roman  domain  approached  and  greeted  him, —  all  this 
in  dreams,  I  mean.  At  another  time  he  was  taken  by 
some  one  to  a  point  affording  a  wide  view ;  and  as  he 
gazed  from  it  over  all  the  earth  and  all  the  sea  he  laid 
his  fingers  on  them  as  one  might  on  some  instrument' 
capable  of  all  harmonies,  and  they  answered  to  his 
touch.  Again,  he  thought  that  in  the  Roman  Forum 
a  horse  threw  Pertinax,  who  was  already  mounted,  but 
readily  took  him  on  its  back.  These  things  he  had 
already  learned  from  dreams,  but  in  his  waking  hours 

1  Compare  Plato,  Republic,  399  C. 

329 


—  4  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

he  had,  while  a  youth,  ignorantly  seated  himself  upon 
the  imperial  chair.  This  accident,  taken  with  the  rest, 
indicated  rulership  to  him  in  advance. 

Upon  attaining  that  condition  he  erected  a  heroum  to 
Pertinax  and  commanded  that  his  name  should  be  re- 
peated in  the  course  of  all  prayers  and  of  all  oaths.  A 
gold  image  of  him  was  ordered  brought  into  the  hippo- 
drome on  a  car  drawn  by  elephants  and  three  gilded 
thrones  for  him  conveyed  into  the  remaining  theatres. 
His  funeral,  in  spite  of  the  time  elapsed  since  his  death, 
took  place  as  follows : 

In  the  Forum  Romanum  a  wooden  platform  was  con- 
structed hard  by  the  stone  one,  upon  which  was  set  a 
building  without  walls  but  encompassed  by  columns, 
with  elaborate  ivory  and  gold  decoration.  In  it  a  couch 
of  similar  material  was  placed,  surrounded  by  heads 
of  land  and  sea  creatures,  and  adorned  with  purple 
coverlets  interwoven  with  gold.  Upon  it  had  been  laid 
a  kind  of  wax  image  of  Pertinax,  arrayed  in  triumphal 
attire.  A  well-formed  boy  was  scaring  the  flies  away 
from  it  with  peacock  feathers,  as  though  it  were  really 
a  person  sleeping.  While  it  was  lying  there  in  state, 
Severus,  we  senators,  and  our  wives  approached,  clad 
in  mourning  garb.^  The  ladies  sat  in  the  porticos, 
and  we  under  the  open  sky.  After  this  there  came  for- 
ward, first,  statues  of  all  the  famous  ancient  Romans, 
then  choruses  of  boys  and  men,  intoning  a  kind  of 
mournful  hymn  to  Pertinax.  Next  were  all  the  sub- 
ject nations,  represented  by  bronze  images,  attired  in 
native  garb.    And  the  guilds  in  the  City  itself,—  those 

1  Reading  nevOcxai^  (Sylburgius,  Boissevain  et  ah). 

330 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

of  the  lictors  and  the  scribes  and  the  heralds,  and  all 
others  of  the  sort,—  followed  on.  Then  came  images 
of  other  men  who  were  famous  for  some  deed  or  in- 
vention or  brilliant  trait.  Behind  them  were  the 
cavalry  and  infantry  in  armor,  the  race-horses,  and 
all  the  funeral  offerings  that  the  emperor  and  we  and 
our  wives,  together  with  distinguished  knights  and 
peoples  and  the  collegia  of  the  city,  had  sent.  They  were 
accompanied  by  an  altar,  entirely  gilded,  the  beauty 
of  which  was  enhanced  by  ivory  and  Indie  jewels. 
When  these  had  gone  by,  Severus  mounted  the  Plat-  —5 
form  of  the  Beaks  and  read  a  eulogy  of  Pertinax.  We 
shouted  our  approval  many  times  in  the  midst  of  his 
discourse,  partly  praising  and  partly  bewailing  Per- 
tinax, but  our  cries  were  loudest  when  he  had  ceased. 
Finally,  as  the  couch  was  about  to  be  moved,  we  all 
together  uttered  our  lamentations  and  all  shed  tears. 
Those  who  carried  the  bier  from  the  platform  were  the 
high  priests  and  the  officials  who  were  completing  their 
term  of  office,  as  well  as  any  that  had  been  appointed 
for  the  ensuing  year.  These  gave  it  to  certain  knights 
to  carry.  The  rank  and  file  of  us  went  ahead  of  the 
bier,  some  beating  our  breasts  and  others  playing  on 
the  flute  some  dirge-like  air ;  the  emperor  followed  be- 
hind all,  and  in  this  order  we  arrived  at  the  Campus 
Martins.  Here  there  had  been  built  a  pyre,  tower- 
shaped  and  triple  pointed,  adorned  with  ivory  and  gold 
together  with  certain  statues.  On  its  very  summit 
was  lodged  a  gilded  chariot  that  Pertinax  had  been 
wont  to  drive.    Into  this  the  funeral  offerings  were 

331 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

cast  and  the  bier  was  placed  in  it,  and  next  Sevenis  and 
the  relatives  of  Pertinax  kissed  the  image.  Our 
monarch  ascended  a  tribunal,  while  we  the  senate,  ex- 
cept ofl&cials,  took  our  places  on  the  benches,  that  with 
safety  and  convenience  alike  we  might  view  what  went 
on.  The  magistrates  and  the  equestrian  order,  arrayed 
in  a  manner  becoming  their  station,  besides  the  cavalry 
of  the  army  and  the  infantry,  passed  in  and  out  per- 
forming intricate  evolutions,  both  traditional  and 
newly  invented.  Then  at  length  the  consuls  applied  fire 
to  the  mound,  which  being  done  an  eagle  flew  up  from 
it.  In  this  way  was  immortality  secured  for  Pertinax 
[who  (although  bodies  of  men  engaged  in  warfare 
usually  turn  out  savage  and  those  given  to  peace  cow- 
ardly) excelled  equally  in  both  departments,  being  an 
enemy  to  dread,  yet  shrewd  in  the  arts  of  peace.  His 
boldness,  wherein  bravery  appears,  he  displayed  to- 
wards foreigners  and  rebels,  but  his  clemency,  where- 
with is  mingled  justice,  towards  friends  and  the 
orderly  elements  of  society.  When  advanced  to  pre- 
side over  the  destinies  of  the  world,  he  was  never 
ensnared  by  the  increase  of  greatness  so  as  to  show 
himself  in  some  things  more  subservient  and  in  others 
more  haughty  than  was  fitting.  He  underwent  no 
change  from  the  beginning  to  the  very  end,  but  was 
august  without  sullenness,  gentle  without  humiliating 
lowliness,  prudent,  yet  did  no  injury,  just  without  in- 
quisitorial qualities,  a  close  administrator  without 
stinginess,  high-minded,  but  devoid  of  boasts.] 
— ®"-         Now  Severus  made  a  campaign  against  Niger.    The 

332 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

latter  was  an  Italian,  one  of  the  knights,  remarkable 
for  nothing  either  very  good  or  very  bad,  so  that  one 
could  either  greatly  praise  or  greatly  censure  him. 
[Wherefore  he  had  been  assigned  to  Syria  by  Com- 
modus.]  He  had  as  a  lieutenant,  together  with  others, 
^milianus,  who  [by  remaining  neutral  and  watching 
the  course  of  events]  was  thought  to  surpass  all  the 
senators  of  that  day  in  understanding  and  in  experi- 
ence of  affairs ;  for  he  had  been  tested  in  many  prov- 
inces. [These  conditions  and  the  fact  that  he  was  a 
relative  of  Albinus  had  made  him  conceited.] 

[Niger  was  not  in  general  a  well-balanced  man  and  (—7—) 
though  he  had  very  great  abilities  still  fell  into  error. 
But  at  this  time  he  was  more  than  usually  elated,  so 
that  he  showed  how  much  he  liked  those  who  called 
him  *  *  the  new  Alexander  ' ' ;  and  when  one  man  asked, 
*  *  Who  gave  you  permission  to  do  this  ?  "he  pointed 
to  his  sword  and  rejoined,  '*  This  did."  When  the  (—6—) 
war  broke  out  Niger  had  gone  to  Byzantium  and  from 
that  point  conducted  a  campaign  against  Perinthus. 
He  was  disturbed,  however,  by  unfavorable  omens  that 
came  to  his  notice.  An  eagle  perched  upon  a  military 
shrine  and  remained  there  till  captured,  in  spite  of  at- 
tempts to  scare  it  away.  Bees  made  wax  around  the 
military  standards  and  about  his  images  most  of  all. 
For  these  reasons  he  retired  to  Byzantium. 

Now  ^milianus  while  engaged  in  conflict  with  some  a.  d.  194 
of  the  generals  of  Severus  near  Cyzicus  was  defeated 
by  them  and  slain.    After  this,  between  the  narrows 
of  NicaBa  and  Cius,  they  had  a  great  war  of  various 

333 


—7  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

forms.  Some  battled  in  close  formation  on  the  plains ; 
others  occupied  the  hill-crests  and  hurled  stones  and 
javelins  at  their  opponents  from  the  higher  ground; 
still  others  got  into  boats  and  discharged  their  bows  at 
the  enemy  from  the  lake.  At  first  the  adherents  of 
Severus,  under  the  direction  of  Candidus,  were  vic- 
torious ;  for  they  found  their  advantage  in  the  higher 
ground  from  which  they  fought.  But  the  moment 
Niger  himself  appeared  a  pursuit  in  turn  was  insti- 
tuted by  Niger's  men  and  victory  was  on  their  side. 
Then  Candidus  caught  hold  of  the  standard  bearers 
and  turned  them  to  face  the  enemy,  upbraiding  the 
soldiers  for  their  flight;  at  this  his  followers  were 
ashamed,  turned  back,  and  once  more  conquered  those 
opposed  to  them.  Indeed,  they  would  have  destroyed 
them  utterly,  had  not  the  city  been  near  and  the  night 
a  dark  one. 

The  next  event  was  a  tremendous  battle  at  Issus, 
near  the  so-called  Gates.  In  this  contest  Valerianus 
and  AnuUinus*  commanded  the  army  of  Severus, 
whereas  Niger  was  with  his  own  ranks  and  marshaled 
them  for  war.  This  pass,  the  Cilician  ''  Gates  ",^  is  so 
named  on  account  of  its  narrowness.  On  the  one  side 
rise  precipitous  mountains,  and  on  the  other  sheer 
cliffs  descend  to  the  sea.  So  Niger  had  here  made  a 
camp  on  a  strong  hill,  and  he  put  in  front  heavy-armed 
soldiers,  next  the  javelin  slingers  and  stone  throwers, 
and  behind  all  the  archers.  His  purpose  was  that  the 
foremost  might  thrust  back  such  as  assailed  them  in 

1  p.  Cornelius  Anullinus. 

3  Compare  Xenophon's  Anabasis,  1,  4,  4-5. 

334 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

hand-to-hand  conflict,  while  the  others  from  a  distance  /^"  ^'q^A 
might  be  able  to  bring  their  force  into  play  over  the 
heads  of  the  others.  The  detachment  on  the  left  and 
that  on  the  right  were  defended  by  the  sea-crags  and 
by  the  forest,  which  had  no  issue.  This  is  the  way  in 
which  he  arranged  his  army,  and  he  stationed  the 
beasts  of  burden  close  to  it,  in  order  that  none  of  them 
should  be  able  to  flee  in  case  they  should  wish  it. 
Anullinus  after  making  all  this  out  placed  in  advance 
the  heavier  part  of  his  force  and  behind  it  his  entire 
light-armed  contingent,  to  the  end  that  the  latter, 
though  discharging  their  weapons  from  a  distance 
might  still  retard  the  progress  of  the  enemy,  while  the 
solidity  of  the  advance  guard  rendered  the  upward 
passage  safe  for  them.  The  cavalry  he  sent  with 
Valerianus,  bidding  him,  so  far  as  he  could,  go  around 
the  forest  and  unexpectedly  fall  upon  the  troops  of 
Niger  from  the  rear.  When  they  came  to  close  quar- 
ters, the  soldiers  of  Severus  placed  some  of  their 
shields  in  front  of  them  and  held  some  above  their 
heads,  making  a  testudo,  and  in  this  formation  they 
approached  the  enemy.  So  the  battle  was  a  drawn  one 
for  a  long  while,  but  eventually  Niger's  men  got  de- 
cidedly the  advantage  both  by  their  numbers  and  by 
the  topography  of  the  country.  They  would  have  been 
entirely  victorious,  had  not  clouds  gathered  out  of  a 
clear  sky  and  a  wind  arisen  from  a  perfect  calm,  while 
there  were  crashes  of  thunder  and  sharp  flashes  of 
lightning  and  a  violent  rain  beat  in  their  faces.  This 
did  not  trouble  Severus  's  troops  because  it  was  behind 

•    335 


—  8  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

them,  but  threw  Niger's  men  into  great  confusion  since 
it  came  right  against  them.  Most  important  of  all,  the 
opportune  character  of  this  occurrence  infused  courage 
in  the  one  side,  which  believed  it  was  aided  by  Heaven, 
and  fear  in  the  other,  which  felt  that  the  supernatural 
was  warring  against  them;  thus  it  made  the  former 
strong  even  beyond  its  own  strength  and  terrified  the 
latter  in  spite  of  real  power.  Just  as  they  were  fleeing 
Valerianus  came  in  sight.  Seeing  him,  they  turned 
about,  and  after  that,  as  Anullinus  beat  them  back,  re- 
treated once  more.  Then  they  wandered  about,  run- 
ning this  way  and  that  way,  to  see  where  they  could 
break  through. 

It  turned  out  that  this  was  the  greatest  slaughter  to 
take  place  during  the  war  in  question.  Two  myriads 
of  Niger's  followers  perished  utterly.  The  fact  was 
indicated  also  by  the  priest's  vision.  "While  Severus 
was  in  Pannonia,  the  priest  of  Jupiter  saw  in  a  vision 
a  black  man  force  his  way  into  the  emperor's  camps 
and  meet  his  death  by  superior  numbers.  And  by 
turning  the  name  of  Niger  into  Grreek  people  recog- 
nized that  he  was  the  one  meant  by  the  *'  black  "  per- 
son mentioned.  Directly  Antioch  had  been  captured 
(not  long  after)  Niger  fled  from  it,  making  the  Eu- 
phrates his  objective  point,  for  he  intended  to  seek 
refuge  among  the  barbarians.  His  pursuers,  however, 
overtook  him;  he  was  taken  and  had  his  head  struck 
oflF.  This  head  Severus  sent  to  Byzantium  and  caused 
to  be  reared  on  a  cross,  that  the  sight  of  it  might 
incline  the  Byzantines  to  his  cause.    The  next  move  of 

336 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Severus  was  to  mete  out  justice  to  those  who  had   -^-  ^-  i^* 

(a.  «.  047) 

belonged  to  Niger's  party.  [Of  the  cities  and  indi- 
viduals he  chastised  some  and  rewarded  others.  He 
executed  no  Eoman  senator,  but  deprived  most  of  them 
of  their  property  and  confined  them  on  islands.  He 
was  merciless  in  his  search  for  money.  Among  other 
measures  he  exacted  four  times  the  amount  that  any 
individuals  or  peoples  had  given  to  Niger,  whether 
they  had  done  so  voluntarily  or  under  compulsion. 
He  himself  doubtless  perceived  the  injustice  of  it,^  but 
as  he  required  great  sums,  he  paid  no  attention  to  the 
common  talk. 

Cassius  Clemens,  a  senator,  while  on  trial  before     —  9— 
Severus  himself,  did  not  hide  the  truth  but  spoke  with 
such  frankness  as  the  following  report  will  show: 

**  I,"  he  said,  '*  was  acquainted  with  neither  you 
nor  Niger,  but  as  I  found  myself  in  his  part  of  the 
world,  I  accepted  the  situation  heartily,  not  with  the 
idea  of  being  hostile  to  you  but  with  the  purpose  of 
deposing  Julianus.  I  have,  then,  committed  no  wrong 
in  this,  since  I  labored  originally  for  the  same  ends  as 
you,  nor  should  I  be  censured  for  failing  to  desert  the 
master  whom  I  had  once  secured  by  the  will  of  Heaven 
and  for  not  transferring  my  allegiance  to  you.  You 
would  not  yourself  have  liked  to  have  your  intimate 
circle  and  fellow  judges  here  betray  your  cause  and 
go  over  to  him.  Examine  therefore  not  our  bodies  nor 
our  names  but  the  events  themselves.  For  in  every 
point  in  which  you  condemn  us  you  will  be  passing  sen- 

1  The  MS.  text  is  faulty,  and  the  translation,  ventured  independently, 
corresponds  approximately  to  a  suggestion  by  van  Herwerden  in  Boisse- 
vain's  edition. 

VOL.  5  -  22.  337 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

r^'  ^'a^A  tence  upon  yourself  and  your  associates.  However 
secure  you  may  be  from  conviction  in  any  suit  or  by 
any  court  finding,  still,  in  the  report  of  men,  of  which 
an  eternal  memory  shall  survive,  you  will  be  repre- 
sented as  making  against  yourself  the  same  charges  as 
have  led  to  punishment^  in  the  case  of  others."— 
Severus  admired  this  man  for  his  frankness  and  al- 
lowed him  to  keep  half  his  property. 

[Many  who  had  never  even  seen  Niger  and  had  not 
cooperated  with  him  were  victims  of  abuse  on  the 
charge  that  they  had  been  members  of  his  party.] 
—  10—  The  Byzantines  performed  many  remarkable  deeds 
(a.  u.  948)  both  during  the  life  and  after  the  death  of  Niger. 
This  city  is  favorably  located  with  reference  both  to 
the  continents  and  to  the  sea  that  lies  between  them, 
and  is  strongly  intrenched  by  the  nature  of  its  position 
as  well  as  by  that  of  the  Bosporus.  The  town  sits  on 
high  ground  extending  into  the  sea.  The  latter,  rush- 
ing down  from  the  Pontus  with  the  speed  of  a  moun- 
tain torrent  assails  the  headland  and  in  part  is  di- 
verted to  the  right,  forming  there  the  bay  and  harbors. 
But  the  greater  part  of  the  water  passes  on  with  great 
energy  past  the  city  itself  toward  the  Propontis. 
Moreover,  the  place  had  walls  that  were  very  strong. 
Their  face  was  constructed  of  thick  squared  stones, 
fastened  together  by  bronze  plates,  and  the  inner  side 
of  it  had  been  strengthened  with  mounds  and  buildings 
so  that  the  whole  seemed  to  be  one  thick  wall  and  the 
top  of  it  formed  a  circuit  betraying  no  flaws  and  easy 
to  guard.     Many  large  towers  occupied  an  exposed 

1  Supplying,  with  Reiske,  aoi  ^  .  .  .  xoXaa^^vai. 
338 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

position  outside  it,  with  windows  set  close  together  on  ^-  ^-  i^^      i 

.  ,  ,  (a-   «.   948) 

every  side  so  tnat  those  assaulting  the  fortification  in 
a  circle  would  be  cut  off  between  them.  Being  built  at 
a  short  distance  from  the  wall  and  not  in  a  regular 
line,  but  one  here  and  another  there  over  a  rather 
crooked  route,  they  were  sure  to  command  both  sides 
of  any  attacking  party.  Of  the  entire  circuit  the  part 
on  the  land  side  reached  a  great  height  so  as  to  repel 
any  who  came  that  way:  the  portion  next  to  the  sea 
was  lower.  There,  the  rocks  on  which  it  had  been 
reared  and  the  dangerous  character  of  the  Bosporus 
were  effective  allies.  The  harbors  within  the  wall  had 
both  been  closed  with  chains  and  their  breakwaters 
carried  towers  projecting  far  out  on  each  side,  making 
approach  impossible  for  the  enemy.  And,  in  fine,  the 
Bosporus  was  of  the  greatest  aid  to  the  citizens.  It 
was  quite  inevitable  that  once  any  person  became  en- 
tangled in  its  current  he  should  willy-nilly  be  cast  up 
on  the  land.  This  was  a  feature  quite  satisfactory  to 
friends,  but  impossible  for  foes  to  deal  with. 

It  was  thus  that  Byzantium  had  been  fortified.  The  —  ii  _ 
engines,  besides,  the  whole  length  of  the  wall,  were  of 
the  most  varied  description.  In  one  place  they  threw 
rocks  and  wooden  beams  upon  parties  approaching 
and  in  another  they  discharged  stones  and  missiles 
and  spears  against  such  as  stood  at  a  distance.  Hence 
over  a  considerable  extent  of  territory  no  one  could 
draw  near  them  without  danger.  Still  others  had 
hooks,  which  they  would  let  down  suddenly  and  shortly 
after  draw  up  boats  and  machines.    Priscus,  a  fellow- 

339 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  195    citizen  of  mine,  had  designed  most  of  them,  and  this 

(a.  M.  948)  '  *  ' 

fact  both  caused  him  to  incur  the  death  penalty  and 
saved  his  life.  For  Severus,  on  learning  his  pro- 
ficiency, prevented  his  being  executed.  Subsequently 
he  employed  him  on  various  missions,  among  others  at 
the  siege  of  Hatra,  and  his  contrivances  were  the  only 
ones  not  burned  by  the  barbarians.  He  also  furnished 
the  Byzantines  with  five  hundred  boats,  mostly  of  one 
bank,  but  some  of  two  banks,  and  equipped  with  beaks. 
A  few  of  them  were  provided  with  rudders  at  both 
ends,  stern  and  prow,  and  had  a  double  quota  of  pilots 
and  sailors  in  order  that  they  might  both  attack  and 
retire  without  turning  around  and  damage  their  op- 
ponents while  sailing  back  as  well  as  while  sailing 
forward. 
— 12  —  Many,  therefore,  were  the  exploits  and  sufferings  oi 
the  Byzantines,  since  for  the  entire  space  of  three 
years  they  were  besieged  by  the  armaments  of  practi- 
cally the  whole  world.  A  few  of  their  experiences  will 
be  mentioned  that  seem  almost  marvelous.  They  cap- 
tured, by  making  an  opportune  attack,  some  boats  thai 
sailed  by  and  captured  also  some  of  the  triremes  that 
were  in  their  opponents*  roadstead.  This  they  did  by 
having  divers  cut  their  anchors  under  water,  after 
which  they  drove  nails  into  the  ship 's  bottom  and  with 
cords  attached  thereto  and  running  from  friendly  ter- 
ritory they  would  draw  the  vessel  towards  them. 
Hence  one  might  see  the  ships  approaching  shore  by 
themselves,  with  no  oarsman  nor  wind  to  urge  them 
forward.    There  were  cases  in  which  merchants  pur- 

340 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

posely   allowed   themselves   to   be   captured   by   the  -^-  ^-  195 

il  .  ,  ,.  .  (o-  u.  948) 

Byzantines,  though  pretending  unwilhngness,  and 
after  selling  their  wares  for  a  huge  price  made  their 
escape  by  sea. 

When  all  the  supplies  in  the  town  had  been  exhausted  a.  d,  i96 
and  the  people  had  been  set  fairly  in  a  strait  with  re- 
gard to  both  their  situation  and  the  expectations  that 
might  be  founded  upon  it,  at  first,  although  beset  by 
great  difficulties  (because  they  were  cut  off  from  all 
outside  resources),  they  nevertheless  continued  to  re- 
sist; and  to  make  ships  they  used  lumber  taken  from 
the  houses  and  braided  ropes  of  the  hair  of  their 
women.  Whenever  any  troops  assaulted  the  wall,  they 
would  hurl  upon  them  stones  from  the  theatres,  bronze 
horses,  and  whole  statues  of  bronze.  When  even  their 
normal  food  supply  began  to  fail  them,  they  proceeded 
to  soak  and  eat  hides.  Then  these,  too,  were  used  up, 
and  the  majority,  having  waited  for  rough  water  and  a 
squall  so  that  no  one  might  man  a  ship  to  oppose  them, 
sailed  out  with  the  determination  either  to  perish  or  to 
secure  provender.  They  assailed  the  countryside  with- 
out warning  and  plundered  every  quarter  indiscrimi- 
nately. Those  left  behind  committed  a  monstrous 
deed;  for  when  they  grew  very  faint,  they  turned 
against  and  devoured  one  another. 

This  was  the  condition  of  the  men  in  the  city.    The   —  is  — 
rest,  when  they  had  laden  their  boats  with  more  than 
the  latter  could  bear,  set  sail  after  waiting  this  time 
also  for  a  great  storm.    They  did  not  succeed,  how- 
ever, in  making  any  use  of  it.    The  Romans,  noticing 

341 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

(a.  u'  949)  ^^^^  their  vessels  were  overheavy  and  depressed  al- 
most to  the  water 's  edge,  put  out  against  them.  They 
assailed  the  company,  which  was  scattered  about  as 
wind  and  flood  chose  to  dispose  them,  and  really  en- 
gaged in  nothing  like  a  naval  contest  but  crushed  the 
enemy's  boats  mercilessly,  striking  many  with  their 
boat-hooks,  ripping  up  many  with  their  beaks,  and 
actually  capsizing  some  by  their  mere  onset.  The 
victims  were  unable  to  do  anything,  however  much  they 
might  have  wished  it :  and  when  they  attempted  to  flee 
in  any  direction  either  they  would  be  sunk  by  force  of 
the  wind,  which  encountered  them  with  the  utmost  vio- 
lence, or  else  they  would  be  overtaken  by  the  enemy 
and  destroyed.  The  inhabitants  of  Byzantium,  as  they 
watched  this,  for  a  time  called  unceasingly  upon  the 
gods  and  kept  uttering  now  one  shout  and  now  another 
at  the  various  events,  according  as  each  one  was  af- 
fected by  the  spectacle  or  the  disaster  enacted  before 
his  eyes.  But  when  they  saw  their  friends  perishing 
all  together,  the  united  throng  sent  up  a  chorus  of 
groans  and  wailings,  and  thereafter  they  mourned  for 
the  rest  of  the  day  and  the  whole  night.  The  entire 
number  of  wrecks  proved  so  great  that  some  drifted 
upon  the  islands  and  the  Asiatic  coast,  and  the  defeat 
became  known  by  these  relics  before  it  was  reported. 
The  next  day  the  Byzantines  had  the  horror  increased 
even  above  what  it  had  been.  For,  when  the  surf  had 
subsided,  the  whole  sea  in  the  vicinity  of  Byzantium 
was  covered  with  corpses  and  wrecks  with  blood,  and 
many  of  the  remains  were  cast  up  on  shore,  with  the 

342 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

result  that  the  catastrophe,  now  seen  in  its  details,  ap-  ^-  ^'g^^. 
peared  even  worse  than  when  in  process  of  consumma- 
tion. 

The  Byzantines  straightway,  though  against  their  — 14  — 
will,  surrendered  their  city.  The  Romans  executed  all 
the  soldiers  and  magistrates  except  the  pugilist  who 
had  greatly  aided  the  Byzantines  and  injured  the 
Romans.  He  perished  also,  for  in  order  to  make  the 
soldiers  angry  enough  to  destroy  him  he  immediately 
hit  one  with  his  fist  and  with  a  leap  gave  another  a 
violent  kick. 

Severus  was  so  pleased  at  the  capture  of  Byzantium 
that  to  his  soldiers  in  Mesopotamia  (where  he  was  at 
this  time)  he  said  unreservedly:  ''We  have  taken 
Byzantium,  too!  "  He  deprived  the  city  of  its  inde- 
pendence and  of  its  civil  rank,  and  made  it  tributary, 
confiscating  the  property  of  the  citizens.  He  granted 
the  town  and  its  territory  to  the  Perinthians,  and  the 
latter,  treating  it  after  the  manner  of  a  village,  com- 
mitted innumerable  outrages.  So  far  he  seemed  in  a 
way  to  be  justified  in  what  he  did.  His  demolition  of 
the  walls  of  the  city  grieved  the  inhabitants  no  more 
than  did  the  loss  of  that  reputation  which  the  appear- 
ance of  the  walls  had  caused  them  to  enjoy;  and  inci- 
dentally he  had  abolished  a  strong  Roman  outpost  and 
base  of  operations  against  the  barbarians  from  the 
Pontus  and  Asia.  I  was  one  that  viewed  the  walls 
after  they  had  fallen,  and  a  person  would  have  judged 
that  they  had  been  taken  by  some  other  people  than 
the  Romans.  I  had  also  seen  them  standing  and  had 
heard  them  ''  speak."    There  were  seven  towers  ex- 

343 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  196  tending  from  the  Thracian  gates  to  the  sea.  If  a  man 
approached  any  of  these  but  the  first,  it  was  silent ;  but 
if  he  shouted  a  few  words  at  that  one  or  threw  a  stone 
at  it,  it  not  only  echoed  and  spoke  itself  but  caused 
the  second  to  do  the  same  thing.  In  this  way  the  sound 
passed  through  them  all  alike,  and  they  did  not  inter- 
rupt one  another,  but  all  in  their  proper  turn,  one  re- 
ceiving the  impulse  from  the  one  before  it,  took  up  the 
echo  and  the  voice  and  sent  it  on. 


344 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

76 


345 


Severns's  war  against  the  Osrhoeni,  Adiabeni,  and  Arabians 
(chapters  1-3). 

Severus's  war  against  Albinus  Csesar  (chapters  4,  5). 

How  Albinus  was  vanquished  by  Sevenis  and  perished  (chap- 
ters 6,  7). 

The  arrogance  of  Sevems  after  his  victory  (chapters  7,  8). 

Severus's  Parthian  expedition  (chapter  9). 

How  he  besieged  the  Atreni,  but  found  his  endeavors  fruit- 
less (chapters  10-12). 

How  he  started  for  Egypt:  and  about  the  source  of  the  Nile 
(chapter  13). 

About  the  power  and  tyrannous  conduct  of  Flautianus  (chap- 
ters 14-16). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

Scapula  Tertullus,  Tineius  Clemens.     (A.  D.  195  =  a.  u.  948 
=  Third  of  Severus,  from  the  Calends  of  June.) 

C.  Domitius  Dexter  (II),  L.  Valerius  Messala  Friscui.    (A.  D. 
196  =  a.  u.  949  —  Fourth  of  Severus.) 

Ap.  Claudius  Lateranus,  Eufinus.     (A.  D.  197  =  a.  u.  950  = 
Fifth  of  Severus. 

Ti.  Satuminus,  C.  Gallus.    (A.  D.  198  ^^  a.  u.  951  =  Sixth  of 
Severus.) 

P.  Cornelius  Anullinus,  M.  Aufidius  Fronto.     (A.  D.  199== 
a.  u.  952  =  Seventh  of  Severus.) 

Ti.  Claudius  Severus,  C.  Aufidius  Victorinus.     (A.  D.  200  = 
a.  u.  953  =  Eighth  of  Severus.) 

L.  Annius  Fabianus,  HL.  Nonius  Mucianus.     (A.  D.  201  = 
a.  u.  954=:  Ninth  of  Severus.) 

L.  Septimius  Severus  Aug.  (Ill),  M.  Aurel.  Antoninus  Aug. 
(A.  D.  202  ==:  a.  u.  955  =  Tenth  of  Severus.) 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Of  such  a  nature  were  the  walls  of  Byzantium.  Dur-  ^^  — 
ing  the  progress  of  this  siege  Severus  out  of  a  desire  («•  w.  948) 
for  fame  had  made  a  campaign  against  the  barba- 
rians,— the  Osrhoeni,  the  Adiabeni,  and  the  Arabians. 
[The  Osrhoeni  and  Adiabeni  having  revolted  were  be- 
sieging Nisibis:  defeated  by  Severus  they  sent  an 
embassy  to  him  after  the  death  of  Niger,  not  to  beg 
his  clemency  as  wrongdoers  but  to  demand  reciprocal 
favors,  pretending  to  have  brought  about  the  outcome 
for  his  benefit.  It  was  for  his  sake,  they  said,  that 
they  had  destroyed  the  soldiers  who  belonged  to 
Niger's  party.  Indeed,  they  sent  a  few  gifts  to  him 
and  promised  to  restore  the  captives  and  whatever 
spoils  were  left.  However,  they  were  not  willing 
either  to  abandon  the  walled  towns  they  had  captured 
or  to  accept  the  imposition  of  tributes,  but  they  de- 
sired those  in  existence  to  be  lifted  from  the  country. 
It  was  this  that  led  to  the  war  just  mentioned.] 

When  he  had  crossed  the  Euphrates  and  invaded  —  2~« 
hostile  territory,  where  the  country  was  destitute  of 
water  and  at  this  summer  season  had  become  espe- 
cially parched,  he  came  dangerously  near  losing  great 
numbers  of  soldiers.  Wearied  as  they  were  by  their 
tramping  and  the  hot  sun,  clouds  of  dust  that  they 
encountered  harrassed  them  greatly,  so  that  they  could 
no  longer  walk  nor  yet  speak,  but  only  utter  the  word 
' '  Water,  water !  ' '  When  [moisture]  appeared,  on 
account  of  [its]  strangeness  it  attracted  no  more  at- 
tention than  if  it  had  not  been  found,  till  Severus  called 
for  a  cup,  and  having  filled  it  with  water  drank  it 

347 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

(a.'«.'948^)  ^owD.  in  fuU  view  of  all.  Upon  this  some  others  like- 
wise drank  and  were  invigorated.  Soon  after  Seve- 
rus  entered  Nisibis  and  himself  waited  there,  but 
despatched  Lateranus  and  Candidus  and  Laetus  sev- 
erally among  the  aforementioned  barbarians.  These 
upon  attaining  their  goals  proceeded  to  lay  waste  the 
land  of  the  barbarians  and  to  capture  their  cities. 
While  Severus  was  greatly  priding  himself  upon  this 
achievement  and  feeling  that  he  surpassed  all  man- 
kind in  both  understanding  and  bravery,  a  most  unex- 
pected event  took  place.  One  Claudius,  a  robber,  who 
overran  Judaea  and  Syria  and  was  sought  for  in  con- 
sequence with  great  hue  and  cry,  came  to  him  one  day 
with  horsemen,  like  some  military  tribune,  and  saluted 
and  kissed  him.  The  visitor  was  not  discovered  at  the 
time  nor  was  he  later  arrested.  [And  the  Arabians, 
because  none  of  their  neighbors  was  willing  to  aid 
them,  sent  an  embassy  a  second  time  to  Severus  mak- 
ing quite  reasonable  propositions.  Still,  they  did  not 
obtain  what  they  wanted,  inasmuch  as  they  had  not 
come  in  person.] 
—  3  —  The  Scythians,  too,  were  in  fighting  humor,  when  at 

(a.  tt.  949)  this  juncture  during  a  deliberation  of  theirs  thunder 
and  lightning-flashes  with  rain  suddenly  broke  over 
them,  and  thunderbolts  began  to  fall,  killing  their 
three  foremost  men.    This  caused  them  to  hesitate, 

Severus  again  made  three  divisions  of  his  army,  and 
giving  one  to  Laetus,  one  to  AnuUinus,  and  one  to 
Probus,  sent  them  out  against  ARCHE    .     .     .     .;* 

1  The  MS.  is  corrupt.     Adiabene,  Atrene  and  Arbelitis  have  all  been 
suggested  as  the  district  to  which  Dio  actually  referred  here. 

348 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

and  they,  invading  it  in  three  divisions,  subdued  it   ^-  ^-  i^e 

•^'  °  '  {a.  u.  949) 

not  without  trouble.  Severus  bestowed  some  dignity 
upon  Nisibis  and  entrusted  the  city  to  the  care  of  a 
knight.  He  declared  he  had  won  a  mighty  territory 
and  had  rendered  it  a  bulwark  of  Syria.  It  is  shown, 
on  the  contrary,  by  the  facts  themselves  that  the  place 
is  responsible  for  our  constant  wars  as  well  as  for 
great  expenditures.  It  yields  very  little  and  uses  up 
vast  sums.  And  having  extended  our  borders  to  in- 
clude men  who  are  neighbors  of  the  Medes  and  Par- 
thians  rather  than  of  ourselves,  we  are  always,  one 
might  say,  fighting  over  those  peoples. 


349 


{BOOK  76,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Before  Severus  had  had  time  to  recover  breath  —  4- 
from  his  conflicts  with  the  barbarians  he  found  a  civil 
war  on  his  hands  with  Albinus,  his  Caesar.  Severus 
after  getting  Niger  out  of  the  way  was  still  not  giving 
him  the  rank  of  Caesar  and  had  ordered  other  details 
in  that  quarter  as  he  pleased ;  and  Albinus  aspired  to 
the  preeminence  of  emperor.^  "While  the  whole  world 
was  moved  by  this  state  of  affairs  we  senators  kept 
quiet,  at  least  so  many  of  us  as  inclining  openly 
neither  to  one  man  nor  the  other  yet  shared  their  dan- 
gers and  hopes.  But  the  populace  could  not  restrain 
itself  and  showed  its  grief  in  the  most  violent  fashion. 
It  was  at  the  last  horse-race  before  the  Saturnalia, 
and  a  countless  throng  of  people  flocked  to  it.  I  too 
was  present  at  the  spectacle  because  the  consul  was  a 
friend  of  mine  and  I  heard  distinctly  everything  that 
was  said, —  a  fact  which  renders  me  able  to  write  a 
little  about  it. 

It  came  about  in  this  way.  There  had  gathered  (as 
I  said)  more  people  than  could  be  computed  and  they 
had  watched  the  chariots  contesting  in  six  divisions 
(which  had  been  the  way  also  in  Cleander's  time), 
applauding  no  one  in  any  manner,  as  was  the  custom. 
When  these  races  had  ceased  and  the  charioteers  were 
about  to  begin  another  event,  then  they  suddenly  en- 

1  Omitting  abroh   (as  Dindorf). 

351 


DIO'S  ROMAN    HISTORY 

joined  silence  upon  one  another  and  all  clapped  their 
hands  simultaneously,  shouting,  besides,  and  entreat- 
ing good  fortune  for  the  public  welfare.  They  first 
said  this,  and  afterward,  applying  the  terms  '  *  Queen  '  * 
and  '  *  Immortal  ' '  to  Eome,  they  roared :  '  *  How  long 
are  we  to  suffer  such  experiences?"  and  *'  Until  when 
must  we  be  at  war?"  And  after  making  a  few  other 
remarks  of  this  kind  they  finally  cried  out:  "  That's 
all  there  is  to  it!"  and  turned  their  attention  to  the 
equestrian  contest.  In  all  of  this  they  were  surely 
inspired  by  some  divine  aflflation.  For  not  otherwise 
could  so  many  myriads  of  men  have  started  to  utter 
the  same  shouts  at  the  same  time  like  some  carefully 
trained  chorus  or  have  spoken  the  words  without  mis- 
take just  as  if  they  had  practiced  them. 

This  manifestation  caused  us  still  greater  disturb- 
ance as  did  also  the  fact  that  so  great  a  fire  was  of  a 
sudden  seen  by  night  in  the  air  toward  the  north  that 
some  thought  that  the  whole  city  and  others  that  the 
sky  itself  was  burning.  But  the  most  remarkable  fact 
I  have  to  chronicle  is  that  in  clear  weather  a  fine  sil- 
very rain  descended  upon  the  forum  of  Augustus.  I 
did  not  see  it  in  the  air,  but  noticed  it  after  it  had  fallen^ 
and  with  it  I  silverplated  some  small  bronze  coins. 
These  retained  the  same  appearance  for  three  days: 
on  the  fourth  all  the  substance  rubbed  upon  them  had 
disappeared. 
5—  A  certain  Numerianus,  who  taught  children  their 
letters,  started  from  Rome  for  Galatia  with  I  know 
not  what  object,  and  by  pretending  to  be  a  Roman 
senator  sent  by  Severus  to  gather  an  army  he  col- 

352 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

lected  at  first  just  a  small  force  by  means  of  which  he 
destroyed  a  few  of  Albinus's  cavalry,  whereupon  he 
unblushingly  made  some  further  promises  in  behalf 
of  Severus.  Severus  heard  of  this  and  thinking  that 
he  was  really  one  of  the  senators  sent  him  a  message 
of  praise  and  bade  him  acquire  still  greater  power. 
The  man  did  acquire  greater  power  and  gave  many 
remarkable  exhibitions  of  ability  besides  obtaining 
seventeen  hundred  and  fifty  myriads  of  denarii,  which 
he  forwarded  to  Severus.  After  the  latter 's  victory 
Numerianus  came  to  him,  making  no  concealment,  and 
did  not  ask  to  become  in  very  truth  a  senator.  Indeed, 
though  he  might  have  been  exalted  by  great  honors 
and  wealth,  he  did  not  choose  to  accept  them,  but 
passed  the  remainder  of  his  life  in  some  country  place, 
receiving  from  the  emperor  some  small  allowance  for 
his  daily  subsistence. 

The  struggle   between   Severus  and  Albinus  near     —  6— 

°°  A.  D.   197 

Lugdunum  is  now  to  be  described.  At  the  outset  there  (a.  «.  950) 
were  a  hundred  and  fifty  thousand  soldiers  on  each 
side.  Both  leaders  took  part  in  the  war,  since  it  was 
a  race  for  life  and  death,  though  Severus  had  pre^ 
viously  not  been  present  at  any  important  battle. 
Albinus  excelled  in  rank  and  in  education,  but  his  ad- 
versary was  superior  in  warfare  and  was  a  skillful 
commander.  It  happened  that  in  a  former  battle  Al- 
binus had  conquered  Lupus,  one  of  the  generals  of 
Severus,  and  had  destroyed  many  of  the  soldiers  at- 
tending him.  The  present  conflict  took  many  shapes 
and  turns.  The  left  wing  of  Albinus  was  beaten  and 
sought  refuge  behind  the  rampart,  whereupon  Sev- 
voL.  5  -  23.  353 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  197    ems 's  soldiers  in  their  pursuit  burst  into  the  enclosure 

(o.  u.  950)        .  ^ 

with  them,  slaughtered  their  opponents  and  plundered 
their  tents..  Meantime  the  soldiers  of  Albinus  arrayed 
on  the  right  wing,  who  had  trenches  hidden  in  front 
of  them  and  pits  in  the  earth  covered  over  only  on  the 
surface,  approached  as  far  as  these  snares  and  hurled 
javelins  from  a  distance.  They  did  not  go  very  far 
but  turned  back  as  if  frightened,  with  the  purpose  of 
drawing  their  foes  into  pursuit.  This  actually  took 
place.  Severus's  men,  nettled  by  their  brief  charge 
and  despising  them  for  their  retreat  after  so  short  an 
advance,  rushed  upon  them  without  a  thought  that  the 
whole  intervening  space  could  not  be  easily  traversed. 
When  they  reached  the  trenches  they  were  involved  in 
a  fearful  catastrophe.  The  men  in  the  front  ranks  as 
soon  as  the  surface  covering  broke  through  fell  into 
the  excavations  and  those  immediately  behind  stum- 
bled over  them,  slipped,  and  likewise  fell.  The  rest 
crowded  back  in  terror,  their  retreat  being  so  sudden 
that  they  themselves  lost  their  footing,  upset  those  in 
the  rear,  and  pushed  them  into  a  deep  ravine.  Of 
course  there  was  a  terrible  slaughter  of  these  soldiers 
as  well  as  of  those  who  had  fallen  into  the  trenches, 
horses  and  men  perishing  in  one  wild  mass.  In  the 
midst  of  this  tumult  the  warriors  between  the  ravine 
and  the  trenches  were  annihilated  by  showers  of  stones 
and  arrows. 

Severus  seeing  this  came  to  their  assistance  with 
the  Pretorians,  but  this  step  proved  of  so  little  benefit 
that  he  came  near  causing  the  ruin  of  the  Pretorians 
and  himself  ran  some  risk  through  the  loss  of  a  horse. 

354 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

When  he  saw  all  his  men  in  flight,  he  tore  off  his  rid-    ^-  ^- 1^7 

.  .  (a.  u.  950) 

ing  cloak  and  drawing  his  sword  rushed  among  the 
fugitives,  hoping  either  that  they  would  be  ashamed 
and  turn  back  or  that  he  might  himself  perish  with 
them.  Some  did  stop  when  they  saw  him  in  such  an 
attitude,  and  turned  back.  Brought  in  this  way  face 
to  face  with  the  men  close  behind  them  they  cut  down 
not  a  few  of  them,  thinking  them  to  be  followers  of 
Albinus,  and  routed  all  their  pursuers.  At  this  mo- 
ment the  cavalry  under  Laetus  came  up  from  the  side 
and  decided  the  rest  of  the  issue  for  them.  Laetus,  so 
long  as  the  struggle  was  close,  remained  inactive,  hop- 
ing that  both  parties  would  be  destroyed  and  that 
whatever  soldiers  were  left  on  both  sides  would  give 
him  supreme  authority.  When,  however,  he  saw  Sev- 
erus  's  party  getting  the  upper  hand,  he  contributed  to 
the  result.    So  it  was  that  Severus  conquered. 

Roman  power  had  suffered  a  severe  blow,  since  the 
numbers  that  fell  on  each  side  were  beyond  reckoning. 
Many  even  of  the  victors  deplored  the  disaster,  for 
the  entire  plain  was  seen  to  be  covered  with  the  bodies 
of  men  and  horses.  Some  of  them  lay  there  exhausted 
by  many  wounds,  others  thoroughly  mangled,  and  still 
others  unwounded  but  buried  under  heaps.  Weapons 
had  been  tossed  about  and  blood  flowed  in  streams, 
even  swelling  the  rivers.  Albinus  took  refuge  in  a 
house  located  near  the  Rhone,  but  when  he  saw  all  its 
environs  guarded,  he  slew  himself.  I  am  not  telling 
what  Severus  wrote  about  it,  but  what  actually  took 
place.  The  emperor  after  inspecting  his  body  and 
feasting  his  eyes  upon  it  to  the  full  while  he  let  his 

355 


—  7—. 


—  8 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A'  ^'  Q^m  tongue  indulge  in  appropriate  utterances,  ordered  it, 
—  all  but  the  head,—  to  be  cast  out,  and  that  he  sent 
to  Rome  to  be  exposed  on  a  cross.  As  he  showed 
clearly  by  this  action  that  he  was  very  far  from  being 
an  excellent  ruler,  he  alarmed  even  more  than  before 
the  populace  and  us  by  the  commands  which  he  issued. 
Now  that  he  had  vanquished  all  forces  under  arms  he 
poured  out  upon  the  unarmed  all  the  wrath  he  had 
nourished  against  them  during  the  previous  period. 
He  terrified  us  most  of  all  by  declaring  himself  the 
son  of  Marcus  and  brother  of  Commodus ;  and  to  Com- 
modus,  whom  but  recently  he  was  wont  to  abuse,  he 
gave  heroic  honors.  While  reading  before  the  senate 
a  speech  in  which  he  praised  the  severity  and  cruelty 
of  Sulla  and  Marius  and  Augustus  as  rather  the  safer 
course,  and  deprecated  the  clemency  of  Pompey  and 
Csesar  because  it  had  proved  their  ruin,  he  introduced 
a  defence  of  Commodus,  and  inveighed  against  the  sen- 
ate for  dishonoring  him  unjustly  though  the  majority 
of  their  own  body  lived  even  worse  lives.  * '  For  if  ' ', 
said  he,  "  this  is  abominable,  that  he  with  his  own 
hands  should  have  killed  beasts,  yet  at  Ostia  yester- 
day or  the  day  before  one  of  your  number,  an  old  man 
that  had  been  consul,  indulged  publicly  in  play  with  a 
prostitute  who  imitated  a  leopard.  '  He  fought  as  a 
gladiator,'  do  you  say?  By  Jupiter,  does  none  of  you 
fight  as  gladiator?  If  not,  how  is  it  and  for  what  pur- 
pose that  some  persons  have  bought  his  shields  and 
the  famous  golden  helmets?"  At  the  conclusion  of 
this  reading  he  released  thirty-five  prisoners  charged 
with  having  taken  Albinus's  side  and  behaved  toward 

356 


DIGS  ROMAN   HISTORY 

them  as  if  they  had  incurred  no  charge  at  all.    They  ,-^-  ^-  }^J^ 

•'  (a.  u.  950) 

were  among  the  foremost  members  of  the  senate.  He 
condemned  to  death  twenty-nine  men,  as  one  of  whom 
was  reckoned  Sulpicianus,  the  father-in-law  of  Per- 
tinax. 

T[  All  pretended  to  sympathize  with  Severus  but  were  confuted  as 
often  as  a  sudden  piece  of  news  arrived,  not  being  able  to  conceal 
the  sentiments  hidden  in  their  hearts.  When  off  their  guard  they 
started  at  reports  which  happened  to  assail  their  ears  without  warning. 
In  such  ways,  as  well  as  through  facial  expression  and  habits  of  behavior, 
the  feelings  of  every  one  of  them  became  manifest.  Some  also  by  an 
excess  of  affectation  only  betrayed  their  attitude  the  more. 

Severus  endeavored  in  the  case  of  those  who  were  lxxiv,  9,  5 

receiving  vengeance  at  his  hands^ 

to  employ  Erucius  Clarus^  as  informer  against  them, 
that  he  might  both  put  the  man  in  an  unpleasant  posi- 
tion and  be  thought  to  have  more  fully  justified  con-  ^ 
viction  in  view  of  his  witness 's  family  and  reputation. 
He  promised  Clarus  to  grant  him  safety  and  immunity. 
But  when  the  latter  chose  rather  to  die  than  to  make 
any  such  revelations,  he  turned  to  Julianus  and  per- 
suaded him  to  play  the  part.  For  this  willingness  he 
released  him  in  so  far  as  not  to  kill  nor  disenfranchise 
him;  but  he  carefully  verified  all  his  statements  by 
tortures  and  regarded  as  of  no  value  his  existing 
reputation.] 

[In  Britain  at  this  period,  because  the  Caledonians    Y^^\L 
did  not  abide  by  their  promises  but  made  preparations  («•  «•  950) 
to  aid  the  Maeatians,  and  because  Severus  at  the  time 
was  attending  to  the  war  abroad.  Lupus  was  compelled 

1  Some  words  appear  to  have  fallen  out  at  this  point  ( so  Dindorf ) . 
2.  C.  lulius  Erucius  Clarua  Vibianus. 

357 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  197    to  purchase  peace  for  the  Masatians  at  a  hiffh  fiffure, 

{a.  u.  950)  r-  -I  ^  o         o         > 

and  recovered  some  few  captives.] 
—  9—  The  next  thing  Severus  did  was  to  make  a  campaign 

A    D    198  .  ^  X       <j 

(a.  u.  951)  against  the  Parthians.  While  he  was  busied  with  civil 
wars,  they  had  been  free  from  molestation  and  had 
thus  been  able  by  an  expedition  in  full  force  to  capture 
Mesopotamia.  They  also  came  very  near  reducing 
Nisbis,  and  would  have  done  so,  had  not  Laetus,  who 
was  besieged  there,  preserved  the  place.  Though  pre- 
viously noted  for  other  political  and  private  and  pub- 
lic excellences,  in  peace  as  well  as  in  wars,  he  derived 
even  greater  glory  from  this  exploit.  Severus  on 
reaching  the  aforesaid  Nisibis  encountered  an  enor- 
mous boar.  With  its  charge  it  killed  a  horseman  who, 
trusting  to  his  own  strength,  attempted  to  run  it  down, 
and  it  was  with  difficulty  stopped  and  killed  by  many 
soldiers, —  thirty  being  the  number  required  to  stop 
it ;  the  beast  was  then  conveyed  to  Severus. 

The  Parthians  did  not  wait  for  him  but  retired 
homeward.  (Their  leader  was  Vologaesus,  whose 
brother  was  accompanying  Severus.)  Hence  Severus 
equipped  boats  on  the  Euphrates  and  reached  him 
partly  by  marching,  partly  by  sailing.  The  newly  con- 
structed vessels  were  exceedingly  manageable  and  well 
appointed,  for  the  forest  along  the  Euphrates  and 
those  regions  in  general  afforded  the  emperor  an  abun- 
dant supply  of  timber.  Thus  he  soon  had  seized 
Seleucia  and  Babylon,  both  of  which  had  been  aban- 
doned. Subsequently  he  captured  Ctesiphon  and  per- 
mitted his  soldiers  to  plunder  the  whole  town,  causing 

358 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

a  great  slaughter  of  men  and  taking  nearly  ten  myriads  A*  ^-  JP^^. 
alive.  However,  he  did  not  pursue  Vologaesus  nor  yet 
occupy  Ctesiphon,  but  as  if  the  sole  purpose  of  his 
campaign  had  been  to  plunder  it,  he  thereupon  de- 
parted. This  action  was  due  partly  to  lack  of  ac- 
quaintance with  the  country  and  partly  to  dearth  of 
provisions.  His  return  was  made  by  a  different  route, 
because  the  wood  and  fodder  found  on  the  previous 
route  had  been  exhausted.  Some  of  his  soldiers  made 
their  retreat  by  land  along  the  Tigris,  following  the 
stream  toward  its  source,  and  some  on  boats. 
Next,  Severus  crossed  Mesopotamia  and  made  an    —  lo  — 

'  ^  A.  D.  199(?) 

attempt  on  Hatra,  which  was  not  far  off,  but  accom- 
plished nothing.  In  fact,  even  the  engines  were 
burned,  many  soldiers  perished,  and  vast  numbers 
were  wounded.  Therefore  Severus  retired  from  the 
place  and  shifted  his  quarters.  While  he  was  at  war, 
he  also  put  to  death  two  distinguished  men.  The  first 
was  Julius  Crispus,  a  tribune  of  the  Pretorians.  The 
cause  of  his  execution  was  that  indignant  at  the  dam- 
age done  by  the  war  he  had  casually  uttered  a  verse 
of  the  poet  Maro,  in  which  one  of  the  soldiers  fighting 
on  the  side  of  Tumus  against  ^Eneas  bewails  his  lot 
and  says :  ' '  To  enable  Turnus  to  marry  Lavinia  we 
are  meanwhile  perishing,  without  heed  being  paid  to 
us."^  Severus  made  Valerius,  the  soldier  who  had 
accused  him,  tribune  in  his  place.  The  other  whom  he 
killed  was  Laetus,  and  the  reason  was  that  Lsetus  was 
proud  and  was  beloved  by  the  soldiers.  They  often 
said  they  would  not  march,  unless  Laetus  would  lead 

1  Two  and  a  half  lines  beginning  with  verse  371  in  Book  Eleven  of 
Virgil's  Aeneid. 

359 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

^■^  them.    The  responsibility  for  this  murder,  for  whicK 

he  had  no  clear  reason  save  jealousy,  he  fastened  upon 

the  soldiers,  making  it  appear  that  they  had  ventured 

upon  the  act  contrary  to  his  will. 

—  11  —         After  laying  in  a  large  store  of  food  and  preparing 

A.  D.  200(?)  •  1,      •  •      1    J  XX      1 

many  engines  he  m  person  agam  led  an  attack  upon 
Hatra.  He  deemed  it  a  disgrace,  now  that  other 
points  had  been  subdued,  that  this  one  alone,  occupy- 
ing a  central  position,  should  continue  to  resist.  And 
he  lost  a  large  amount  of  money  and  all  his  engines 
except  those  of  Priscus,  as  I  stated  earlier,*  besides 
many  soldiers.  Numbers  were  annihilated  in  foraging 
expeditions,  as  the  barbarian  cavalry  (I  mean  that  of 
the  Arabians)  kept  everywhere  assailing  them  with 
precision  and  violence.  The  archery  of  the  Atreni, 
too,  was  effective  over  a  very  long  range.  Some  mis- 
siles they  liurled  from  engines,  striking  many  of  Sev- 
erus's  men-at-arms,  for  they  discharged  two  missiles 
in  one  and  the  same  shot  and  there  were  also  many 
hands  and  many  arrows  to  inflict  injury.  They  did 
their  assailants  the  utmost  damage,  however,  when 
the  latter  approached  the  wall,  and  in  an  even  greater 
degree  after  they  had  broken  down  a  little  of  it.  Then 
they  threw  at  them  among  other  things  the  bituminous 
naphtha  of  which  I  wrote  above^  and  set  fire  to  the 
engines  and  all  the  soldiers  that  were  struck  with  it. 
Severus  observed  proceedings  from  a  lofty  tribunal. 
_12—  A  portion  of  the  outer  circuit  had  fallen  in  one  place 
and  all  the  soldiers  were  eager  to  force  their  way  in- 

1  Compare  Book  Seventy-four,  chapter  11. 

2  Compare  the  beginning  of  Book  Thirty-six   (supplied  from  Xiphil- 
inus). 

360 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

side  the  remainder,  when  Severns  checked  them  from  ^-  ^-  200(t) 
doing  so  by  giving  orders  that  the  signal  for  retreat 
be  sounded  clearly  on  all  sides.  The  fame  of  the  place 
was  great,  since  it  contained  enormous  offerings  to 
the  Sun  God  and  vast  stores  of  valuables ;  and  he  ex- 
pected that  the  Arabians  would  voluntarily  come  to 
terms  in  order  to  avoid  being  forcibly  captured  and 
enslaved.  When,  after  letting  one  day  elapse,  no  one 
made  any  formal  proposition  to  him,  he  commanded 
the  soldiers  again  to  assault  the  wall,  though  it  had 
been  built  up  in  the  night.  The  Europeans  who  had 
the  power  to  accomplish  something  were  so  angry  that 
not  one  of  them  would  any  longer  obey  him,  and  some 
others,  Syrians,  compelled  to  go  to  the  assault  in  their 
stead,  were  miserably  destroyed.  Thus  Heaven,  that 
rescued  the  city,  caused  Severus  to  recall  the  soldiers 
that  could  have  entered  it,  and  in  turn  when  he  later 
wished  to  take  it  caused  the  soldiers  to  prevent  him 
from  doing  so.  The  situation  placed  Severus  in  such. 
a  dilemma  that  when  some  one  of  his  followers  prom- 
ised him  that,  if  he  would  give  him  only  five  hundred 
and  fifty  of  the  Europeans,  he  would  get  possession  of 
the  city  without  any  risk  to  the  rest,  the  emperor  said 
within  hearing  of  all :  ''And  where  can  I  get  so  many 
soldiers?  "  (referring  to  the  disobedience  of  the  sol- 
diers). 

Having  prosecuted  the  siege  for  twenty  days  he    T"^'^„ 
next  came  to  Palestine  and  sacrificed  to  the  spirit  of  (a.  «.  953) 
Pompey :  and  into  [upper]  Egypt  [he  sailed  along  the 
Nile  and  viewed  the  whole  country,  with  some  small 
exceptions.    For  instance,  he  was  unable  to  pass  the 

361 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

<t.'  S'  953)  frontier  of  Ethiopia  on  account  of  pestilence.]  And 
he  made  a  search  of  everything,  including  what  was 
very  carefully  hidden^  for  he  was  the  sort  of  man  to 
leave  nothing,  human  or  divine,  uninvestigated.  Fol- 
lowing this  tendency  he  drew  from  practically  all  their 
hiding  places  all  the  books  that  he  could  find  contain- 
ing anything  secret,  and  he  closed  the  monument  of 
Alexander,  to  the  end  that  no  one  should  either  behold 
his  body  any  more  or  read  what  was  written  in  these 
books. 

This  was  what  he  did.  For  myself,  there  is  no  need 
that  I  should  write  in  general  about  Egypt,  but  what 
I  know  about  the  Nile  through  verifying  statements 
from  many  sources  I  am  bound  to  mention.  It 
clearly  rises  in  Mount  Atlas.  This  lies  in  Macen- 
nitis,  close  to  the  Western  ocean  itself,  and  towers  far 
above  all  mountains,  wherefore  the  poets  have  called 
it  "  Pillar  of  the  Sky  ".  No  one  ever  ascended  its 
summits  nor  saw  its  topmost  peaks.  Hence  it  is  al- 
ways covered  with  snow,  which  in  summer  time  sends 
down  great  quantities  of  water.  The  whole  country 
about  its  base  is  in  general  marshy,  but  at  this  season 
becomes  even  more  so,  with  the  result  that  it  swells 
the  size  of  the  Nile  at  harvest  time.  This  is  the  river's 
source,  as  is  evidenced  by  the  crocodiles  and  other 
beasts  that  are  born  alike  on  both  sides  of  it.  Let  no 
one  be  surprised  that  we  have  made  pronouncements 
unknown  to  the  ancient  Greeks.  The  Macennitae  live 
near  lower  Mauretania  and  many  of  the  people  who 
go  on  campaigns  there  also  visit  Atlas.  It  is  thus  that 
.  the  matter  stands. 

362 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

Plautianus,  who  enjoyed  the  special  favor  of  Sev-    7"^'*"^ 
erus  and  had  the  authority  of  prefect,  besides  pos-  <»•  «•  953) 
sessing  the  fullest  and  greatest  influence   on  earth, 
had  put  to  death  many  men  of  renown  and  his  own 

peers [After  killing  ^milius  Saturninus 

he  took  away  all  the  most  important  prerogatives  be^ 
longing  to  the  minor  officers  of  the  Pretorians,  his 
subordinates,  in  order  that  none  of  them  might  be 
so  elated  by  his  position  of  eminence  as  to  lie  in  wait 
for  the  captaincy  of  the  body-guards.  Already  it  was 
his  wish  to  be  not  simply  the  only  but  a  perpetual  pre- 
fect,] He  wanted  everything,  asked  everything  from 
everybody,  and  got  everything.  He  left  no  province 
and  no  city  unplundered,  but  sacked  and  gathered 
ever^^thing  from  all  sides.  All  sent  a  great  deal  more 
to  him  than  they  did  to  Severus.  Finally  he  sent  cen- 
turions and  stole  tiger-striped  horses  sacred^  to  the 
Sun  God  from  the  island  in  the  Ked  Sea.  This  mere 
statement,  I  think,  must  instantly  make  plain  all  his 
officiousness  and  greediness.  Yet,  on  second  thought, 
I  will  add  one  thing  more.  At  home  he  castrated  one 
hundred  nobly  born  Eoman  citizens,  though  none  of 
us  knew  of  it  until  after  he  was  dead.  From  this  fact 
one  may  comprehend  the  extent  alike  of  his  lawless- 
ness and  of  his  authority.  He  castrated  not  merely 
boys  or  youths,  but  grown  men,  some  of  whom  had 
wives;  his  object  was  that  Plautilla  his  daughter 
(whom  Antoninus  afterward  married)  should  be 
waited  upon  entirely  by  eunuchs  [and  also  have  them 
to  give  her  instruction  in  music  and  other  branches  of 
art.    So  we  beheld  the  same  persons  eunuchs  and  men, 

1  Supplying  Upouf  (Reiske's  conjecture). 

363 


—  15  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D.  200    fathers  and  impotent,  gelded  and  bearded.    In  view 

(a.  u.  9o3)  ^  '   ^ 

of  this  one  might  not  improperly  declare  that  Plau- 
tianus  had  power  beyond  all  men,  over  even  the  em- 
perors themselves.  For  one  thing,  his  portrait  statues 
were  not  only  far  more  numerous  but  also  larger  than 
theirs,  and  this  not  simply  in  outside  cities  but  in 
Rome  itself,  and  they  were  at  this  time  reared  not 
merely  by  individuals  but  by  no  less  a  body  than  the 
senate  itself.  All  the  soldiers  and  the  senators  took 
oaths  by  his  Fortune  and  all  publicly  offered  prayer 
for  his  preservation. 

The  person  principally  responsible  for  this  state  of 
affairs  was  Severus  himself.  He  yielded  to  Plautianus 
in  all  matters  to  such  a  degree  that  the  latter  occupied 
the  position  of  emperor  and  he  himself  that  of  prefect. 
In  short,  the  man  knew  absolutely  everything  that  Sev- 
erus said  and  did,  but  not  a  person  was  acquainted 
with  any  of  Plautianus 's  secrets.  The  emperor  made 
advances  to  his  daughter  on  behalf  of  his  own  son, 
passing  by  many  other  maidens  of  high  rank.  He  ap- 
pointed him  consul  and  virtually  showed  an  anxiety  to 
have  him  for  successor  in  the  imperial  office.  Indeed, 
once  he  did  say  in  a  letter :  "I  love  the  man  so  much 
that  I  pray  to  die  before  he  does."       o 

so  that  some  one  actually  dared  to  write 

to  him  as  to  a  fourth  Caesar. 

%  Though  many  decrees  in  his  honor  were  passed  by  the  senate  he 
accepted  only  a  few  of  them,  saying  to  the  senators :  "  It  is  through 
your  hearts  that  you  show  your  love  for  me,  not  through  your  decrees." 

At  temporary  stopping-places  he  endured  seeing 
him  located  in  superior  quarters  and  enjoying  better 
and  more  abundant  food  than  he.    Hence  in  Nicasa 

364 


DIO'S   KOMAN  HISTORY 

(my  native  country)  when  lie  once  wanted  a  hammer-  f^-  ^-  ^^^ 
fish,  large  specimens  of  which  are  found  in  the  lake, 
he  sent  to  Plautianus  to  get  it.  So  if  he  thought  at  all 
of  doing  aught  to  diminish  this  minister's  leadership, 
yet  the  opposite  party,  which  contained  far  greater 
and  more  brilliant  members,  saw  to  it  that  any  such 
plan  was  frustrated.  On  one  occasion  Severus  went 
to  visit  him,  when  he  had  fallen  sick  at  Tyana,  and  the 
soldiers  attached  to  Plautianus  would  not  allow  the 
visitor's  escort  to  enter  with  him.  Moreover,  the  per- 
son who  arranged  cases  to  be  pled  before  Severus  was 
once  ordered  by  the  latter  in  a  moment  of  leisure  to 
bring  forward  some  case  or  other,  whereupon  the  fel- 
low refused,  saying :  ' '  I  can  not  do  this,  unless  Plau- 
tianus bid  me."  So  greatly  did  Plautianus  have  the 
mastery  in  every  way  over  the  emperor  that  he  [fre- 
quently treated]  Julia  Augusta  [in  an  outrageous 
way, —  for  he  detested  her  cordially,— and]  was  al- 
ways abusing  [her  violently]  to  Severus,  and  con- 
ducted investigations  against  her  as  well  as  tortures 
of  noble  women.  For  this  reason  she  began  to  study 
philosophy  and  passed  her  days  in  the  company  of 
learned  men.—  As  for  Plautianus,  he  proved  himself 
the  most  licentious  of  men,  for  he  would  go  to  ban- 
quets and  vomit  meantime,  inasmuch  as  the  mass  of 
foods  and  wine  that  he  swallowed  made  it  impossible 
for  him  to  digest  anything.  And  whereas  he  made  use 
of  lads  and  girls  in  perfectly  notorious  fashion,  he 
would  not  permit  his  own  wife  to  see  or  be  seen  by  any 
person  whomsoever,  not  even  by  Severus  or  Julia  [to 
say  nothing  of  others]. 

365 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A~D^200  ^^  ^^^^  period  there  took  place  also  a  gymnastic* 
(a.  u.  953)  contest,  at  which  so  great  a  multitude  assembled  under 
compulsion  that  we  wondered  how  the  race-course 
could  hold  them  all.  And  in  this  contest  Alamanni^ 
women  fought  most  ferociously,  with  the  result  that 
jokes  were  made  about  other  ladies,  who  were  very 
distinguished.  Therefore,  from  this  time  on  every 
woman,  no  matter  what  her  origin,  was  prohibited 
from  fighting  in  the  arena. 

On  one  occasion  a  good  many  images  of  Plautianus 
were  made  (what  happened  is  worth  relating)  and 
Severus,  being  displeased  at  their  number,  melted 
down  some  of  them.  As  a  consequence  a  rumor  pene- 
trated the  cities  to  the  effect  that  the  prefect  had  been 
overthrown  and  had  perished.  So  some  of  them  de- 
molished his  images, —  an  act  for  which  they  were 
afterward  punished.  Among  these  was  the  governor 
of  Sardinia,  Kacius  Constans,  a  very  famous  man, 
whom  I  have  mentioned,  however,  for  a  particular 
reason.  The  orator  who  accused  Constans  had  made 
this  statement  in  addition  to  others:  '^  Sooner  may 
the  sky  collapse  than  Plautianus  suffer  any  harm  at  the 
hands  of  Severus,  and  with  greater  cause  might  any 
one  believe  even  that  report,  were  any  story  of  the 
sort  circulated."  Now,  though  the  orator  made  this 
declaration,  and  though  moreover  Severus  himself 
volubly  affirmed  it  to  us,  who  were  helping  him  try  the 
case,  and  stated  ''it  is  impossible  for  Plautianus  to 
come  to  any  harm  at  my  hands, ' '  still,  this  very  Plau- 

1  Reading  yu/ivtxatv  lor  yuvatxwv^  which  is  possibly  corrupt. 

2  Reading  'AXafidwai  for  aXtOfievai,  which  is  undoubtedly  corrupt. 

366 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

tianus  did  not  live  the  year  out,  but  was  slain  and  all  ^-  ^-  ^po 

*^  '  (a.  u.  953) 

his  images  destroyed. —  Previous  to  this  a  vast  sea- 
monster  had  come  ashore  in  the  harbor  named  for 
Augustus,  and  had  been  captured.  A  representation 
of  him,  taken  into  the  hunting-theatre,  admitted  fifty 
bears  in  its  interior.  Again,  for  many  days  a  comet 
star  had  been  seen  in  Rome  and  was  said  to  portend 
nothing  favorable. 


367 


DIO'S 

ROMAN   HISTORY 

77 


vol..  5  —  24  369 


Festivities  on  account  of  Sevems's  decennial,  the  marriage  of 
Antoninus  and  victories  (chapter  1). 

Death  of  Plantianns  (chapters  2-4). 

The  friends  and  children  of  Plantianns  are  persecuted  by 
Severus  (chapters  5-9). 

About  Bulla  Felix,  a  noble  bri^nd  (chapter  10). 

Sevems's  campaigni  in  Britain:  an  account  of  the  Britoni 
(chapters  11,  12). 

After  traversing  the  whole  of  Britain  Severus  makes  peace 
(chapter  13). 

How  Antoninus  desired  to  slay  his  father  (chapter  14). 

Death  of  Severus  Augustus  and  a  summary  view  of  his  life 
(chapters  15-17). 

DURATION  OF  TIME. 

L.  Septimins  Severus  Aug.  (HE),  M.  Aur.  Antoninus  Aug. 
(A.  D.  202  =  a.  u.  955  =  Tenth  of  Severus,  from  the  Calends  of 
June.) 

P.  Septimins  Geta,  Fulvius  Plantianns  (II).  (A.  D.  203  = 
a.  u.  956  =i  Eleventh  of  Severus.) 

L.  Fabius  Septimius  Cilo  (II),  L.  Flavins  Libo.  (A.  D.  204  = 
a.  u.  957  =  Twelfth  of  Severus.) 

M.  Aur.  Antoninus  Aug.  (II),  P.Septimius  Geta  Caesar.  (A.  D. 
205  =  a.  u.  958  =  Thirteenth  of  Severus.) 

Nummius  Albinus,  Fulv.  ^milianus.  (A.  D.  206  =  a.  u.  959 
=  Fourteenth  of  Severus.) 

Aper,  Maximus.  (A.  D.  207  =  a.  u.  980  =  Fifteenth  of  Sev- 
erus.) 

M.  Aur.  Antoninus  Aug.  (Ill),  P.  Septim.  Geta  Caesar  (11). 
(A.  D.  208  ==  a.  u.  961  =  Sixteenth  of  Severus.) 

Civica  Pompeianus,  LoUianus  Avitus.  (A.  D.  209  =  a.  u.  962 
=:  Seventeenth  of  Severus.) 

M.'  Acilius  Faustinus,  Triarius  Rufinus.  (A.  D.  210  =  a.  u. 
963  =  Eighteenth  of  Severus.) 

Q.  Epid.  Ruf.  LoUianus  Gentianus,  Pomponius  Bassus.  (A.  D. 
211  =  a.  u.  964  =  Nineteenth  of  Severus,  to  Feb.  4th.) 


(BOOK  77,  BOISSEVAIN.) 

Sevems  to  celebrate  the  first  decade  of  his  rei^  pre-     —  i  — 

*      ^.  A.  D.  202 

sented  to  the  entire  populace  accustomed  to  receive  (a.  «.  965) 
dole  and  to  the  soldiers  of  the  pretorian  guard  gold 
pieces  equal  in  number  to  the  years  of  his  sovereignty. 
He  took  the  greatest  delight  in  this  achievement,  and,  as 
a  matter  of  fact,  no  one  had  ever  before  given  so  much 
to  whole  masses  of  people.  Upon  this  gift  five  hundred 
myriads  of  denarii  were  expended.  Another  event  was 
the  marriage  between  Antoninus,  son  of  Severus,  and 
Plautilla,  the  daughter  of  Plautianus.  The  latter  gave 
as  much  for  his  daughter's  dowry  as  would  have  suf- 
ficed for  fifty  women  of  royal  rank.  We  saw  tl;e  gifts 
as  they  were  being  carried  through  the  Forum  into  the 
palace.  We  were  banqueted,  likewise,  in  the  meantime, 
partly  in  royal  and  partly  in  barbarian  fashion  on 
whatever  is  regularly  eaten  cooked  or  raw,  an4  we 
received  other  animal  food  also  alive.  At  this  time, 
too,  there  occurred  all  sorts  of  spectacles  in  honor  of 
Severus 's  return,  the  completion  of  his  first  decade, 
and  his  victories.  At  these  spectacles  sixty  wild  boars 
of  Plautianus  upon  a  given  signal  began  a  combat  with 
one  another,  and  there  were  slain  (besides  many  other 
beasts)  an  elephant  and  a  crocotta.^    The  last  named 

1  Hesychius  says  of  this  beast  merely  that  it  is  a  quadruped  of 
Ethiopia.     Strabo  calls  it  a  cross  between  wolf  and  dog. 

Pliny  (Natural  History,  VIII,  21  (30) )  gives  the  following  descrip- 
tion: 

"  Crocottas  are  apparently  the  offspring  of  dog  and  wolf ;  they  crush 
all  their  food  with  their  teeth  and  forthwith  gulp  it  down  to  be  assimi- 
lated by  the  belly." 

Again,  of  the  Leucrocotta: 

"A  most  destructive  beast  about  the  size  of  an  ass,  with  legs  of  a 

371 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

i'^'  ^'aKK^  animal  is  of  Indian  origin,  and- was  then  for  the  first 
time,  so  far  as  I  am  aware,  introduced  into  Eome.  It 
has  the  skin  of  lion  and  tiger  mingled  and  the  appear- 
ance of  those  animals,  as  also  of  the  wolf  and  fox,  curi- 
ously blended.  The  entire  cage  in  the  theatre  had 
been  so  constructed  as  to  resemble  a  boat  in  form,  so 
that  it  would  both  receive  and  discharge  four  hundred 
beasts  at  once,^  and  then,  as  it  suddenly  fell  apart, 
there  came  rushing  up  bears,  lionesses,  panthers^  lions, 
ostriches,  wild  asses,  bisons  (this  is  a  kind  of  cattle  of 
foreign  species  and  appearance),— the  result  being 
that  altogether  seven  hundred  wild  and  tame  beasts 
at  once  were  seen  running  about  and  were  slaughtered. 
For,  to  correspond  with  the  duration  of  the  festival, 
seven  days,  the  number  of  animals  was  also  seven 
times  one  hundred. 
—2—  On  Mount  Vesuvius  a  great  gush  of  fire  burst  out 
and  there  were  bellowings  mighty  enough  to  be  heard  in 
Capua,  where  I  live  whenever  I  am  in  Italy.  This  place 
I  have  selected  for  various  reasons,  chief  of  which  is 
its  quiet,  that  enables  me  to  get  leisure  from  city  affairs 
and  to  write  on  this  compilation.  As  a  result  of  the 
Vesuvian  phenomena  it  was  believed  that  there  would 
be  a  change  in  the  political  status  of  Plautianus.    In 

deer,  the  neck,  tail  and  breast  of  a  lion,  a  badger's  head,  cloven  hoof, 
mouth  slit  to  the  ears,  and,  in  place  of  teeth,  a  solid  line  of  bone." 

Also,  in  VIII,  30  (45),  he  says: 

"  The  lioness  of  Ethiopia  by  copulation  with  a  hysena  brings  forth 
the  crocotta." 

Capitolinus  (Life  of  Antoninus  Pius,  10,  9)  remarks  that  the  first 
Antoninus  had  exhibited  the  animal  in  Rome. 

Further,  see  ^lian,  VII,  22. 

2  These  cages  were  often  made  in  various  odd  shapes  and  opened 
automatically.     Compare  the  closing  sentences  of  the  preceding  book. 

372 


DIO'S   ROMAN  HISTORY 

very  tnith  Plautianus  had  grown  great  and  more  than  ^-  ^-  202 
great,  so  that  even  the  populace  at  the  hippodrome  ex- 
claimed :  ''  Why  do  you  tremble?  Why  are  you  pale? 
You  possess  more  than  the  three."  They  did  not  say 
this  to  his  face,  of  course,  but  differently.  And  by 
**  three  "  they  indicated  Severus  and  his  sons,  Antoni- 
nus and  Geta.  Plautianus 's  pallor  and  his  trembling 
were  in  fact  due  to  the  life  that  he  lived,  the  hopes  that 
he  hoped,  and  the  fears  that  he  feared.  Still,  for  a  time 
most  of  this  eluded  Severus 's  individual  notice,  or  else 
he  knew  it  but  pretended  the  opposite.  When,  how- 
ever, his  brother  Geta  on  his  deathbed  revealed  to  him 
the  whole  attitude  of  Plautianus,—  for  Geta  hated  the 
prefect  and  now  no  longer  feared  him,—  the  emperor 
set  up  a  bronze  statue  of  his  brother  in  the  Forum  and 
no  longer  held  his  minister  in  equal  honor ;  indeed,  the 
latter  was  stripped  of  most  of  his  power.  Hence 
Plautianus  became  violently  enraged,  and  whereas  he  (a.  «.  956) 
had  formerly  hated  Antoninus  for  slighting  his  daugh- 
ter, he  was  now  especially  indignant,  feeling  that  his 
son-in-law  was  responsible  for  his  present  disgrace, 
and  began  to  behave  more  harshly  toward  him.  For 
these  reasons  Antoninus  became  both  disgusted  with 
his  wife  (who  was  a  most  shameless  creature),  and 
offended  at  her  father  himself,  because  the  latter  kept 
meddling  in  all  his  undertakings  and  rebuking  him  for 
everything  that  he  did.  Conceiving  a  desire  to  be  rid 
of  the  man  in  some  way  or  other  he  accordingly  had 
Euodus,  his  nurse,  persuade  a  certain  centurion, 
Satuminus,  and  two  others  of  similar  rank  to  bring 

373 


—3 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D  203    jjjjjj  word  that  Plautianus  had  ordered  some  ten  cen- 

(a.  M.  956) 

turions,  to  whose  number  they  also  belonged,  to  kill 
both  Severns  and  Antoninus ;  and  they  read  a  certain 
writing  which  they  pretended  to  have  received  bearing 
upon  this  very  matter.  This  was  done  as  a  surprise  at 
the  observances  held  in  the  palace  in  honor  of  the 
heroes,  at  a  time  when  the  spectacle  had  ceased  and 
dinner  was  about  to  be  served.  That  fact  was  largely 
instrumental  in  showing  the  story  to  be  a  fabrication. 
Plautianus  would  never  have  dared  to  impose  such  a 
bidding  upon  ten  centurions  at  once,  certainly  not  in 
Rome,  certainly  not  in  the  palace,  nor  on  that  day,  nor 
at  that  hour;  much  less  would  he  have  written  it. 
Nevertheless,  Severus  believed  the  information  trust- 
worthy because  he  had  the  night  before  seen  in  a  dream 
Albinus  alive  and  plotting  against  him.  In  haste, 
therefore,  he  summoned  Plautianus,  as  if  upon  some 
other  business.  The  latter  hurried  so  (or  rather, 
Heaven  so  indicated  to  him  approaching  disaster)  that 
the  mules  that  were  carrying  him  fell  in  the  palace 
yard.  And  when  he  sought  to  enter,  the  porters  in 
charge  of  the  bolts  admitted  him  alone  inside  and 
would  permit  no  one  to  enter  with  him,  just  as  he  him- 
self had  done  in  the  case  of  Severus  at  Tyana.  He 
grew  a  little  suspicious  at  this  and  became  terrified; 
as  he  had,  however,  no  pretext  for  withdrawing,  he 
went  in.  Severus  conversed  with  him  very  mildly: 
* '  Why  have  you  seen  fit  to  do  this  f  For  what  reason 
have  you  wished  to  kill  us?"  He  gave  him  oppor- 
tunity to  speak  and  prepared  to  listen  to  his  defence. 

374 


—  4  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

In  the  midst  of  the  accused's  denial  and  surprise  at  ,^-  ^  203 

^  (a.  u.  956) 

what  was  said,  Antoninus  rushed  up,  took  away  his 
sword,  and  struck  him  with  his  fist.  He  was  ready  to 
put  an  end  to  Plautianus  with  his  own  hand  after  the 
latter  said ;  * '  You  wanted  to  get  the  start  of  me  in  any 
killing!  "  Being  prevented,  however,  by  his  father, 
Antoninus  ordered  one  of  his  attendants  to  slay 
Plautianus.  Somebody  plucked  out  a  few  hairs  from 
his  chin  and  carried  them  to  Julia  and  Plautilla  (who 
were  together)  before  they  had  heard  a  word  of  the 
affair,  and  said :  *  *  Behold  your  Plautianus ! ' '  This 
speech  aroused  grief  in  one  and  joy  in  the  other. 

Thus  the  man  who  had  possessed  the  greatest  influ- 
ence of  all  my  contemporaries,  so  that  everybody  both 
feared  and  trembled  before  him  more  than  before  the 
very  emperors,^  the  man  who  had  hung  poised  upon 
greater  hopes  than  they,  was  slain  by  his  son-in-law 
and  thrown  from  the  top  of  the  palace  into  some  street. 
Later,  at  the  order  of  Severus,  he  was  taken  up  and 
buried. 

Severus  next  called  a  meeting  of  the  senate  in  the  —  5  — 
senate-house.  He  uttered  no  accusation  against 
Plautianus,  but  himself  deplored  the  weakness  of 
human  nature,  which  was  not  able  to  endure  excessive 
honors,  and  blamed  himself  that  he  had  so  honored  and 
loved  the  man.  Those,  however,  who  had  informed  him 
of  the  victim's  plot  he  bade  tell  us  everything;  but  first 
he  expelled  from  the  senate-chamber  some  whose  pres- 
ence was  not  necessary,  and  by  revealing  nothing  to 
them  intimated  that  he  did  not  altogether  trust  them. 

1  Reading  aoToxpardpwv  (emendation  of  H.  Stephanus). 

375 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

A.  D  203  Many  were  brouglit  into  danger  by  the  Plautianus 
episode  and  some  actually  lost  their  lives.  But  Coera- 
nus  was  accustomed  to  declare  (what  most  people  are 
given  to  pretending  with  reference  to  the  fortunate) 
that  he  was  his  associate.  As  often  as  these  friends  of 
the  prefect  were  wont  to  be  called  in  before  the  others 
desiring  to  greet  the  great  man,  it  was  his  custom  to 
accompany  them  as  far  as  the  bars.  So  he  did  not 
share  his  secrets,  but  remained  in  the  space  midway, 
giving  Plautianus  the  impression  that  he  was  outside 
and  those  outside  the  idea  that  he  was  within.  This 
caused  him  to  be  the  object  of  greater  suspicion,—  a 
feeling  which  was  strengthened  by  the  fact  that  Plau- 
tianus once  in  a  dream  saw  fishes  issue  from  the  Tiber 
and  fall  at  his  feet,  whereupon  he  declared  that  Coer- 
anus  should  rule  the  land  and  water.  This  man,  after 
being  confined  to  an  island  for  seven  years,  was  later 
recalled,  was  the  first  Egyptian  to  be  enrolled  in  the 
senate,  and  became  consul,  like  Pompey,  without  hold- 
ing any  previous  office.  Cascilius  Agricola,  however, 
numbered  among  the  deceased 's  foremost  flatterers  and 
second  to  no  man  on  earth  in  rascality  and  licentious- 
ness, was  sentenced  to  death.  He  went  home,  and  after 
drinking  his  fill  of  chilled  wine,  shattered  the  cup  which 
had  cost  him  five  myriads,  and  cutting  his  veins  fell  dead 
—6—  upon  the  fragments.  As  for  Saturninus  and  Euodus, 
they  were  honored  at  the  time  but  were  later  executed 
by  Antoninus.  "While  we  were  engaged  in  voting  eulo- 
gies to  Euodus,  Severus  restrained  us  by  saying :  ' '  It 
is  disgraceful  that  in  one  of  your  decrees  there  should 
be  inscribed  such  a  statement  respecting  a  man  that  is 

376 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

a  Caesarian. ' '  It  was  not  the  only  instance  of  sucli  an  at-  ^-  ^  203 

•^  (a.  u.  956) 

titude,  but  he  also  refused  to  allow  all  the  other  impe- 
rial freedmen  either  to  be  insolent  or  to  swagger;  for 
this  he  was  commended.  The  senate  once,  while  chant- 
ing his  praises,  uttered  without  reserve  no  less  a  senti- 
ment than  this:  ''All  do  all  things  weU  since  you  rule 
well!  " 

Plautilla  and  Plautius,  the  children  of  Plautianus, 
were  temporarily  allowed  to  live,  being  banished  to 
Lipara;  but  in  the  reign  of  Antoninus  they  were  de- 
stroyed, though  they  had  been  existing  in  great  fear 
and  wretchedness  and  though  their  life  was  not  even 
blessed  by  a  goodly  store  of  necessities. 

The  sons  of  Severus,  Antoninus  and  Geta,  felt  as  if  —7—1 
they  had  got  rid  of  a  pedagogue  in  Plautianus,  and 
their  conduct  was  from  this,  time  on  irresponsible. 
They  outraged  women  and  abused  boys,  they  embezzled 
moneys  and  made  friends  of  the  gladiators  and  char- 
ioteers, emulating  each  other  in  the  similarity  of  their 
deeds  and  full  of  strife  in  their  respective  rivalries. 
If  one  attached  himself  to  any  cause,  the  other  would 
be  sure  to  choose  the  opposite  side.  Finally,  they  were 
pitted  against  each  other  in  some  kind  of  exercise  with 
teams  of  ponies  and  drove  with  such  fierce  opposition 
that  Antoninus  fell  out  of  the  two^wheeled  car  and 
broke  his  leg.  [During  his  son's  sickness  that  fol- 
lowed this  accident  Severus  neglected  not  one  of  his 
duties,  but  held  court  and  managed  all  affairs  per- 
taining to  his  office.  For  this  he  was  praised.  But 
he  was  blamed  for  murdering  Plautianus  Quintillus.* 

1  This  person's  name  is  properly  M.  Plautius  Quintillus. 

377 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

i^'  ^  n2L   He  executed  also  many  of  tlie  senators,  some  of  wliom 

{a.  u.  956)  •'  ' 

had  been  accused  before  him,  and  made  their  defence, 
and  had  been  convicted.  But  Quintillus],  a  man  of 
noblest  birth,  for  a  long  term  of  years  counted  among 
the  foremost  members  of  the  senate,  standing  at  the 
gates  of  old  age,  one  who  lived  in  the  country,  inter- 
fered in  no  one 's  business  and  did  naught  amiss,  never- 
theless became  the  prey  of  sycophants  and  was  put  out 
of  the  way.  As  he  was  near  death  he  called  for  his 
funeral  garments,  which  he  had  long  since  kept  in  readi- 
ness. On  seeing  that  they  had  fallen  to  pieces  through 
lapse  of  time,  he  said :  ' '  Why  did  we  delay  this  ?  '  ^ 
And  as  he  perfumed  the  place  with  burning  incense, 
he  remarked:  *'  I  offer  the  same  prayer  as  Servianus 
offered  over  Hadrian."^—  Besides  his  death  there  were 
also  gladiatorial  contests,  in  which  among  other  fea- 
tures ten  tigers  were  slaughtered  at  once. 

After  this  came  the  denouement  of  the  Apronianus 
affair,—  a  startling  story  even  in  the  hearing.  He  in- 
curred censure  because  his  nurse  is  said  to  have  seen 
once  in  a  vision  that  he  should  enjoy  sovereignty,  and 
because  he  was  believed  to  employ  some  magic  to  this 
end.  He  was  condemned  while  absent  in  his  governor- 
ship of  Asia.  When  the  evidence  taken  in  his  case  was 
read  to  us,  there  was  found  written  there  this  state- 
ment,— that  one  person  in  charge  of  the  investigation 
had  enquired  who  had  told  the  dream  and  who  had 
heard  it,  and  that  the  man  interrogated  had  said  among 
other  things :  * '  I  saw  a  certain  baldheaded  senator 
taking  a  peep  there."    On  hearing  this  we  all  became 

1  Compare  Book  Sixty-nine,  chapter  17. 

378 


—8  — 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

terror-stricken,  for  neither  had  the  man  spoken  nor   a.  d.  203 

'  ^  (a.  u.    956) 

Severus  written  any  one's  name.  In  their  state  of 
panic  even  those  who  had  never  visited  the  house  of 
Apronianus,  and  not  only  the  baldheaded  but  those 
whose  foreheads  were  indifferently  bare  grew  afraid. 
No  one  felt  easy  save  those  who  had  unusually  thick 
hair.  We  all  looked  around  at  such  men,  and  a  whisper 
ran  about:  ''It's  so-and-so.  No,  it's  so-and-so."  I 
will  not  conceal  how  I  was  then  affected,  however 
absurd  it  may  be.  I  felt  with  my  hand  to  see  whether 
I  had  any  hair  on  my  head;  and  a  number  of  others 
behaved  in  the  very  same  way.  We  were  very  careful 
to  direct  our  gaze  upon  baldish  persons  as  if  we  could 
thereby  divert  our  own  danger  upon  them.  This  we 
did  until  it  was  further  read  that  the  particular  bald- 
head  in  question  wore  a  purple  toga.  When  this  state- 
ment came  out,  we  turned  our  eyes  upon  Baebius  Mar- 
cellinus.  He  had  been  asdile  at  the  time  and  was 
extremely  bald.  So  he  stood  up  and  coming  forward 
said :  * '  He  will  certainly  be  able  to  point  me  out,  if  he 
has  seen  me."  We  commended  this  speech,  the  in- 
former was  brought  in  while  the  senator  stood  by,  and 
for  a  long  time  was  silent,  looking  about  for  the  man 
to  point  out.  Finally,  following  the  direction  of  an 
almost  imperceptible  nod  that  somebody  gave,  he  said 
that  this  was  he. 

Thus  was  Marcellinus   convicted   of  a  baldhead's      —  9  — 
peeping,^  and  bewaUing  his  fate  he  was  conducted  out 

1  The  phrase  ^aXaxpou  Tzapaxv<p£w<i  has  a  hiunorous  ring  to  it, 
and  I  am  inclined  to  believe,  especially  considering  the  situation,  that 
Dio  had  in  his  mind  while  writing  this  the  familiar  proverb  ovoo  itapa- 
xb(p£(u<i^  a    famous    response   given   by    a   careless    ass-driver,   whose 

379 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

1^'  ^'  ?2?  N  0^  ^^  senate-house.  When  he  had  passed  through  the 
Forum,  he  refused  to  advance  farther,  but  right  where 
he  was  took  leave  of  his  children,  four  in  number,  and 
uttered  this  most  affecting  speech:  '*  There  is  only 
one  thing  that  I  am  sorry  for,  children;  it  is  that  I  must 
leave  you  behind  alive. ' '  Then  he  had  his  head  cut  off 
before  Severus  learned  even  that  he  had  been  con- 
demned. 

Just  vengeance,  however,  befell  Pollenius  Sebennus, 
who  had  preferred  the  charge  that  caused  his  death. 
He  was  delivered  by  Sabinus  to  the  Norici,  for  whom 
he  had  shown  scant  consideration  during  his  governor- 
ship of  them,  and  went  through  a  most  disgraceful 
experience.  We  saw  him  stretched  on  the  ground, 
pleading  piteously,  and  had  he  not  obtained  mercy, 
thanks  to  his  uncle  Auspex,^  he  would  have  perished 
pitiably.  This  Auspex  was  the  cleverest  imaginable 
man  for  jokes  and  chit-chat,  for  despising  all  mankind, 
gratifying  his  friends,  and  making  reprisals  upon  his 
enemy.  Mkny  bitter  and  witty  epigrams  of  his  spoken 
to  various  people  are  reported,  and  many  to  Severus 
himself.  Here  is  one  of  the  latter.  When  the  emperor 
was  enrolled  in  the  family  of  Marcus,  Auspex  said: 
**  I  congratulate  you,  Caesar,  upon  having  found  a 
father. ' '  This  implied  that  up  to  this  time  his  obscure 
origin  had  made  him  as  good  as  fatherless. 

animal  being  several  rods  in  advance  of  its  lagging  master  had  stuck 
its  head  into  an  open  doorway  and  thereby  scattered  the  nucleus  of 
a  promising  aviary.  The  fellow  was  haled  to  court  to  answer  to  a 
charge  of  contributory  negligence  and  when  some  bystander  asked  him 
for  what  misdeed  he  had  been  brought  to  that  place,  he  rejoined  with 
a  great  air  of  injured  innocence :  "  For  an  ass's  peeping  ! " 
a  A.  Pollenius  Auapem. 

380 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

It  was  at  this  period  tliat  one  Bulla,  an  Italian,  estab-  »  ~~d  ^JJTfl  ^ 
lished  a  robber  band  of  about  six  hundred  men  and  for  ( ?) 
two  years  continued  to  plunder  Italy  under  the  very 
noses  of  the  emperors  and  of  so  great  bodies  of  soldiers. 
Pursuit  was  instituted  by  numerous  persons,  and  Sev- 
erus  emulously  followed  his  trail,  but  the  fellow  was 
never  really  seen  when  seen,  never  found  when  found, 
never  apprehended  when  caught.  This  was  due  to 
his  great  bribes  and  his  cleverness.  He  got  wind  of 
everybody  that  was  setting  out  from  Rome  and  every- 
body that  was  putting  into  port  at  Brundusium,  learn- 
ing who  and  how  many  they  were,  and  what  and  how 
much  they  had  with  them.  His  general  method  was  to 
take  a  part  of  what  they  had  and  then  let  them  go  at 
once.  Artisans,  however,  he  detained  for  a  time  and 
after  making  use  of  their  skill  dismissed  them  with 
something  extra  as  a  present.  Once  two  of  his  robbers 
had  been  captured  and  were  to  be  given  to  beasts, 
whereupon  the  chief  paid  a  visit  to  the  keeper  of  the 
prison,  pretending  that  he  was  the  governor  of  his 
native  place  ( ?)  and  needed  some  such  men,  and  in  this 
way  he  secured  and  saved  them.  Again,  he  approached 
the  centurion  who  was  charged  with  abolishing  brig- 
andage and  in  disguise  accused  his  own  self ;  he  further 
promised,  if  the  centurion  would  accompany  him,  to 
deliver  the  robber  to  him.  So,  pretending  that  he  was 
leading  him  to  Felix  (this  was  another  name  of  the 
chief) ,  he  brought  him  to  a  hill-encompassed  spot,  suita- 
ble for  ambuscade,  and  easily  seized  him.  Later  he 
assumed  the  garb  of  a  magistrate,  ascended  the  tri- 

381 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTORY 

bunal,  and  having  called  the  centurion  caused  his  head 
to  be  shaved,  and  said:  *'  Take  this  message  to  your 
masters :  *  Feed  your  slaves,  if  you  want  to  make  an 
end  of  brigandage. ' ' '  Bulla  had,  indeed,  a  very  great 
number  of  Csesarians,  some  who  had  been  poorly  paid 
and  some  who  had  gone  absolutely  without  pay. 

Severus,  informed  of  these  events  one  at  a  time,  was 
moved  to  anger  to  think  that  while  having  other  men 
win  victory  in  warfare  in  Britain,  he  himself  in  Italy 
had  proved  no  match  for  a  robber.  At  last  he  de- 
spatched a  tribune  from  his  body-guard  with  many 
horsemen  and  threatened  him  with  terrible  punishments 
if  he  should  not  bring  the  culprit  alive.  Then  this  com- 
mander ascertained  that  the  chief  was  maintaining  re- 
lations of  intimacy  with  the  wife  of  another,  and 
through  the  agency  of  her  husband  persuaded  her  on 
promise  of  immunity  to  cooperate  with  them.  As  a 
result  the  elusive  leader  was  arrested  while  asleep  in  a 
cave.  Papinianus  the  prefect  asked  him :  '  *  For  what 
reason  did  you  become  a  robber?  "  The  other  re- 
joined: "  For  what  reason  are  you  a  prefect?  "  And 
thereafter  by  solemn  proclamation  he  was  given  to 
beasts.  His  robber  band  broke  up,  for  ^he  entire 
strength  of  the  six  hundred  lay  in  him. 

Severus,  seeing  that  his  children  were  departing 
from  their  accustomed  modes  of  life  and  that  his  le- 
gions were  becoming  enervated  by  idleness,  set  out  on 
a  campaign  against  Britain,  though  he  knew  that  he 
should  not  return.  He  knew  this  chiefly  from  the  stars 
imder  which  he  had  been  bom,  for  he  had  them  painted 

382 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

upon  the  ceilings  of  the  two  halls  in  the  palace  where  ,^-  ^-  ^p,^, 

^  ^  ^  {a.  u.  961) 

he  was  wont  to  hold  court.  Thus  they  were  visible  to 
all,  save  the  portion  which  *  *  regarded-the-hour  ' '  when 
he  first  saw  the  light  (i.  e.,  his  horo-scope).  This  he 
had  not  engraved  in  the  same  way  in  both  the  rooms.— 
He  knew  it  also  by  the  report  of  the  seers.  And  a 
thunderbolt  struck  a  statue  of  his  standing  near  the 
gates  through  which  he  intended  to  march  out  and  look- 
ing off  along  the  road  leading  to  his  destination,  and  it 
had  erased  three  letters  from  his  name.  For  this 
reason,^  as  the  seers  indicated,  he  did  not  come  back 
again  but  departed  from  life  two  years  after  this.  He 
took  with  him  very  great  sums  of  money. 

There  are  two  principal  races  of  the  Britons,— the  —12  — 
Caledonians  and  the  Maeatians.  The  titles  of  the  rest 
have  all  been  reduced  to  these  two.  The  Maeatians  live 
near  the  cross  wall  which  cuts  the  island  in  two,  and 
the  Caledonians  are  behind  them.  Both  inhabit  wild 
and  waterless  mountains,  desolate  and  swampy  plains, 
holding  no  walls,  nor  cities,  nor  tilled  fields,  but  living 
by  pasturage  and  hunting  and  a  few  fruit  trees.  The 
fish,  which  are  inexhaustible  and  past  computing  for 
multitude,  they  do  not  taste.  They  dwell  coatless  and 
shoeless  in  tents,  possess  their  women  in  common,  and 
rear  all  the  offspring  as  a  community.  Their  form  of 
government  is  mostly  democratic  and  they  are  very 
fond  of  plundering. 

Consequently  they  choose  their  boldest  spirits  as  leaders. 

1  The  significance  of  this  happening  is  explained  as  follows.  Taking 
the  Greek  form  of  Severus,  nameljSEBHPOZ  and  erasing  the  first 
three  letters  you  have  le{tHP0S=HFQ2:=heT6s,  "hero."  When  a 
thunderbolt  substitutes  the  word  "  hero "  for  the  emperor's  name,  the 
supposition  naturally  arises  that  the  ruler  will  soon  be  numbered  among 
the  heroes,  that  is,  that  he  will  cease  to  exist  as  a  mortal  man. 

383 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

,'^'  ^' ^^,^.       They  ^o  into  battle  on  chariots  with  small,  swift 

(a.  u.  961)  .'     o  ^  7        ^ 

horses.  There  are  also  infantry,  very  quick  at  running 
and  very  firm  in  standing  their  ground.  Their  weapons 
are  shield  and  short  spear,  with  a  bronze  apple  at- 
tached to  the  end  of  the  ground-spike,  so  that  when 
the  instrument  is  shaken  it  may  clash  and  inspire  the 
enemy  with  terror.  They  also  have  daggers.  They  can 
endure  hunger  and  cold  and  any  kind  of  wretchedness. 
They  plunge  into  the  swamps  and  exist  there  for  many 
days  with  only  their  heads  above  water,  and  in  the 
forests  they  support  themselves  upon  bark  and  roots 
and  in  alP  cases  they  have  ready  a  kind  of  food  of  which 
a  piece  the  size  of  a  bean  when  eaten  prevents  them 
from  being  either  hungry  or  thirsty.  Of  such  a  nature 
is  the  island  of  Britain,  and  such  are  the  inhabitants 
that  the  enemy's  country  has.  For  it  is  an  island,  and 
the  fact  (as  I  have  stated)^  was  clearly  proved  at  this 
time.  The  length  of  it  is  seven  thousand  one  hundred 
and  thirty-two  stades.  Its  greatest  breadth  is  two 
thousand  three  hundred  and  ten,  and  its  least  is  three 
— 13  —  hundred.  Of  all  this  we  hold  a  little  less  than  a  half. 
So  Severus,  desiring  to  subjugate  the  whole  of  it,  in- 
vaded Caledonia.  While  traversing  the  territory  he 
had  untold  trouble  in  cutting  down  the  forests,  reducing 
the  levels  of  heights,  filling  up  the  swamps,  and  bridg- 
ing the  rivers.  He  fought  no  battle  and  beheld  no  ad- 
versary in  battle  array.  The  enemy  purposely  put 
sheep  and  cattle  in  front  of  them  for  the  soldiers  to 

1  The  reading  is  a  little  doubtful.     Possibly  "  in  such  cases  "  (     Ttapd 
Tobra     ) .      { Boissevain. ) 

2  Compare  Book  Thirty-nine,  chapter  50,  which,  in  turn,  refers  to  Book 
Sixty-six,  chapter  20. 

384 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

seize,  in  order  that  the  latter  might  be  deceived  for  a    -^-  ■^- ^''^ 

'  °  (a.  u.  961) 

longer  time  and  wear  themselves  out.  The  Romans  re- 
ceived great  damage  from  the  streams  and  were  made 
objects  of  attack  when  they  were  scattered.  After- 
ward, being  unable  to  walk,  they  were  slain  by  their 
own  friends  to  avoid  capture,  so  that  nearly  as  many 
as  fifty  thousand  died. 

But  the  emperor  did  not  desist  till  he  had  approached 
the  extremity  of  the  island.  Here  he  observed  very 
accurately  to  how  slight  a  degree  the  sun  declined  be- 
low the  horizon^  and  the  length  of  days  and  nights  both 
summer  and  winter.  Thus  having  been  conveyed 
through  practically  the  whole  of  the  hostile  region,— 
for  he  was  really  conveyed  in  a  covered  chair  most  of 
the  way  on  account  of  his  weakness,—  he  returned  to  a.  d.  210 
friendly  territory,  first  forcing  the  Britons  to  come  to 
terms  on  condition  that  he  should  abandon  a  good  part 
of  their  territory. 

Antoninus  also  disturbed  him  and  involved  him  in  —14— 
vain  worry  by  his  intemperate  life,  by  his  evident  in- 
tention to  murder  his  brother  if  the  chance  should  pre- 
sent itself,  and  finally  by  plotting  against  his  own 
father.  Once  he  leaped  suddenly  out  of  his  quarters, 
shouting  and  bawling  and  feigning  to  have  been 
wronged  by  Castor.  This  man  was  the  best  of  the 
Caesarians  attending  upon  Severus,  had  been  trusted 
with  his  opinions,  and  had  been  assigned  the  duties  of 
chamberlain.  Certain  soldiers  with  whom  previous  ar- 
rangements had  been  made  hereupon  gathered  and 

1  Compare  Tacitus,  Agricola,  chapter  12  (two  sentences,  Diemm    .    , 
affirmant ) . 


VOL.   5 — 25. 


385 


lA\^ 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

1^'  ^'  QR^\  joined  the  outcry ;  but  tliey  were  checked  in  short  order, 
as  Severus  himself  appeared  on  the  scene  and  punished 
the  more  unruly  among  them. 

On  another  occasion  both  were  riding  to  meet  the 
Caledonians  for  the  purpose  of  receiving  them  and 
holding  a  conference  about  a  truce,  and  Antoninus  un- 
dertook to  kill  his  father  outright  with  his  own  hand. 
They  were  going  along  on  their  horses,  for  Severus,  al- 
though his  feet  were  rather  shrunken^  by  an  ailment, 
nevertheless  was  on  horseback  himself  and  the  rest  of 
the  army  was  following:  the  enemy's  force,  too,  was 
likewise  a  spectator.  At  this  juncture,  in  the  midst  of 
the  silence  and  order,  Antoninus  reined  up  his  horse 
and  drew  his  sword,  apparently  intending  to  strike  his 
father  in  the  back.  Seeing  this,  the  other  horsemen  in 
the  detachment  raised  a  cry  of  alarm,  which  scared  the 
son,  so  that  he  did  nothing  further.  Severus  turned  at 
their  shout  and  saw  the  sword ;  however,  he  uttered  not 
a  syllable  but  ascended  the  tribunal,  finished  what  he 
had  to  do,  and  returned  to  the  general's  tent.  Then  he 
called  his  son  and  Papinianus  and  Castor,  ordered  a 
sword  to  be  placed  within  easy  reach,  and  upbraided  the 
youth  for  having  dared  to  do  such  a  thing  at  all  and 
especially  for  having  been  on  the  point  of  committing 
so  great  a  crime  in  the  presence  of  all  the  allies  and  the 
enemy.  Finally  he  said :  *  *  Now  if  you  desire  to  slay 
me  and  have  done,  put  an  end  to  me  here.  You  are 
strong :  I  am  an  old  man  and  prostrate.  If  you  have 
no  objection  to  this,  but  shrink  from  becoming  my  ac- 

1  Reading  'utzotet^xux;  ( suggestion  of  Boissevain,  who  does  not  regard 
Naber's  emendation,  Mnemosyne,  XVI^  p.  113,  as  feasible). 

386 


DIO'S   ROMAN   HISTORY 

tual  murderer,  there  stands  by  your  side  Papinianus  ,^-  ^'^}P, 

'  "^    *'  ^  {a.  u.  963) 

the  prefect,  whom  you  may  order  to  put  me  out  of  the 
way.  He  will  certainly  do  anything  that  you  command, 
since  you  are  emperor."  Though  he  spoke  in  this 
fashion,  he  still  did  the  plotter  no  harm,  in  spite  of  the 
fact  that  he  had  often  blamed  Marcus  for  not  ending 
the  life  of  Commodus  and  that  he  had  himself  often 
threatened  his  son  with  this  treatment.  Such  words, 
however,  were  invariably  spoken  in  a  fit  of  anger:  on 
this  occasion  he  allowed  his  love  of  offspring  to  get  the 
better  of  his  love  of  country ;  yet  in  doing  so  he  simply 
betrayed  his  other  child,  for  he  well  knew  what  would 
happen. 

Upon  another  revolt  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  island     —15  — 
he  summoned  the  soldiers  and  bade  them  invade  the 
rebels'  country,  killing  whomsoever  they  should  en- 
counter.   He  added  these  verses: 

"  Let  none  escape  utter  destruction 
At  our  hands.    Yea,  whatso  is  found  in  the  womb  of  the  mother, 
Child  iinborn  though  it  be,  let  it  not  escape  utter  destruction ! "  1 

When  this  had  been  done  and  the  Caledonians  as  well 
as  the  Maeatians  revolted,  he  proceeded  with  prepara- 
tions to  make  war  upon  them  in  person.  While  he  was 
thus  engaged  his  sickness  carried  him  off  on  the  fourth    ,   t^  „,, 

°    ^  A.  D.  211 

of  February.  Antoninus,  it  is  said,  contributed  some-  («•  "•  964) 
thing  to  the  result.  Before  he  closed  his  eyes  he  is  re- 
puted to  have  spoken  these  words  to  his  children  (I  shall 
use  the  exact  phraseology  without  embellishment) : 
**  Be  harmonious,  enrich  the  soldiers,  scorn  everybody 
else."    After  this  his  body  arrayed  in  military  garb 

1  Homer's  Iliad,  VI,  verse  57,  with  a  slight  change  at  the  end. 

387 


—  16  — 


DIO'S  ROMAN   HISTdRY 

,^'  ^'^}a\  "^as  placed  upon  a  pyre,  and  as  a  mark  of  honor  tlie 

(a,  u.  964)  X  ./       7 

soldiers  and  his  children  ran  about  it.  Those  present 
who  had  any  -military  gifts  threw  them  upon  it  and  the 
sons  applied  the  fire.  Later  his  bones  were  put  in  a  jar 
of  purple  stone,  conveyed  to  Rome,  and  deposited  in  the 
tomb  of  the  Antonines.  It  is  said  that  Severus  sent 
for  the  jar  a  little  before  his  death  and  after  feeling  it 
over  remarked:  *'  Thou  shalt  hold  a  man  that  the 
world  could  not  hold. ' ' 

He  was  slow-moulded  but  strong,  though  he  eventu- 
ally grew  very  weak  from  gout :  mentally  he  was  very 
keen  and  very  firm.  He  wished  for  more  education  than 
he  got  and  for  this  reason  he  was  sagacious  rather  than 
a  good  talker.  Toward  friends  not  forgetful,  to 
enemies  most  oppressive,  he  was  capable  of  everything 
that  he  desired  to  accomplish  but  careless  of  everything 
said  about  him.  Hence  he  gathered  money  from  every 
source  (save  that  he  killed  no  one  to  get  it)  [and  met 
all  necessary  expenditures  quite  ungrudgingly.  He  re- 
stored very  many  of  the  ancient  burldings  and  in- 
scribed upon  them  his  own  name  to  signify  that  he  had 
repaired  them  so  as  to  be  new  structures,  and  from  his 
private  funds.  Also  he  spent  a  great  deal  uselessly 
upon  renovating  and  repairing  other  places],  erecting, 
for  instance,  to  Bacchus  and  Hercules  a  temple  of  huge 
size.  Yet,  though  his  expenses  were  enormous,  he  left 
behind  not  merely  a  few  myriad  denarii,  easily  reck- 
oned, but  a  great  many.  Agaia,  he  rebuked  such  per- 
sons as  were  not  chaste,  even  going  to  the  extent  of  en- 
acting certain  laws  in  regard  to  adultery,  with  the  re- 

388 


DIO'S  ROMAN  HISTORY 

suit  that  there  were  any  number  of  prosecutions  for  a.  d.  211 
that  offence.  When  consul  I  once  found  three  thousand 
entered  on  the  docket.  But  inasmuch  as  very  few  per- 
sons appeared  to  conduct  their  cases,  he  too  ceased  to 
trouble  his  head  about  it.  Apropos  of  this,  a  quite 
witty  remark  is  reported  of  the  wife  of  Argentocoxus, 
a  Caledonian,  to  Julia  Augusta,  when  the  latter  after 
the  treaty  was  joking  her  about  the  free  intercourse  of 
her  sex  in  Britain  with  men.  Thereupon  the  foreigner 
asserted :  *  *  We  fulfill  the  necessities  of  nature  in  a 
much  better  way  than  you  Eomau  women.  We  have 
dealings  openly  with  the  best  men,  whereas  you  let 
yourselves  be  debauched  in  secret  by  the  vilest. "  This 
is  what  the  British  woman  said. 

The  following  is  the  style  of  life  that  Severus  led  in  — 17  — 
time  of  peace.  He  was  sure  to  be  doing  something  be- 
fore dawn,  whUe  it  was  still  night,  and  after  this  he 
would  go  to  walk,  telling  and  hearing  of  the  interests 
of  the  empire.  Then  he  held  court,  and  separately  (un- 
less there  were  some  great  festival) ;  and  indeed,  he 
did  this  very  well.  Those  on  trial  were  allowed  plenty 
of  water^  and  he  granted  us,  his  coadjutors,  full  liberty 
to  speak.—  He  continued  to  preside  till  noonday.  Af- 
ter that  he  went  riding  as  much  as  he  could.  Next  he 
took  some  kind  of  exercise  and  a  bath.  He  then  con- 
sumed a  not  meagre  lunch,  either  by  himself  or  with  his 
children.  Next,  as  a  rule,  he  enjoyed  a  nap.  Later  he 
rose,  attended  to  his  remaining  duties  of  administra- 
tion, and  while  walking  about  occupied  himself  with 

1  The  water-clock  again.     Compare  Book  Seventy-one,  chapter  6. 

389 


DIO'S  ROMAN    HISTORY 

discussions  of  both  Greek  and  Latin  lore.  Then,  toward 
evening,  he  would  bathe  again  and  dine  with  his  at- 
tendants. Very  seldom  did  he  have  any  outsider  to 
dinner  and  only  on  days  when  it  was  quite  unavoidable 
did  he  arrange  expensive  banquets.—  He  lived  sixty- 
five  years,  nine  months,  and  twenty-five  days,  for  he 
was  bom  on  the  eleventh  of  April.  Of  this  he  had  ruled 
seventeen  years,  eight  months  and  three  days.  In  fine, 
he  showed  himself  so  active  that  even  expiring  he 
gasped :  '  *  Come,  give  it  to  us,  if  we  have  anything  to 
do!" 


390 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SLIPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY